Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n communion_n schism_n separation_n 6,688 5 9.9679 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B07998 Anti-Mortonus or An apology in defence of the Church of Rome. Against the grand imposture of Doctor Thomas Morton, Bishop of Durham. Whereto is added in the chapter XXXIII. An answere to his late sermon printed, and preached before His Maiesty in the cathedrall church of the same citty.. Price, John, 1576-1645. 1640 (1640) STC 20308; ESTC S94783 541,261 704

There are 68 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

to_o resist_v all_o novelty_n with_o such_o constancy_n as_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o the_o severity_n of_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o one_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o permit_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o who_o the_o church_n have_v long_o since_o condemn_v come_v to_o be_v bear_v again_o 6._o eugenius_n another_o successor_n to_o aurelius_n be_v press_v by_o the_o lieutenant_n of_o hunericus_n lord_n of_o africa_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o public_a disputation_n with_o the_o arian_n answer_v 2._o answer_v victor_n vtic._n l._n 2._o he_o will_v not_o do_v it_o without_o write_v to_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n 7._o s._n fulgentius_n say_v 11._o say_v de_fw-fr incarn_n &_o great_a c._n 11._o which_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n holdesh_n and_o teach_v and_o with_o her_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n do_v both_o without_o hesitation_n believe_v to_o justice_n and_o also_o doubt_v not_o to_o confess_v to_o salvation_n and_o when_o the_o same_o saint_n be_v go_v to_o the_o wildrnesse_n of_o thebais_n in_o egypt_n to_o fast_o pat._n fast_o author_n aquavitae_fw-la s._n fulg._n c._n 12._o to_o 6._o bibliothec_n pat._n he_o desist_v from_o his_o intent_n when_o come_v to_o sicily_n he_o understand_v from_o eulalius_n b._n of_o syracuse_n that_o those_o country_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n lest_o desire_v a_o more_o perfect_a life_n he_o shall_v run_v hazard_n of_o lose_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o instead_o of_o gong_a into_o egypt_n he_o go_v in_o pilgrimage_n to_o rome_n to_o visit_v the_o sepulcher_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n peter_n &_o paul_n 8._o the_o african_a bishop_n consult_v s._n leo_n the_o great_a in_o their_o doubt_n of_o faith_n and_o s._n leo_n write_v to_o they_o a_o famous_a decretal_a epistle_n 87._o epistle_n leo_fw-la ep_n 87._o 9_o almost_o all_o the_o african_a bishop_n 220._o in_o number_n be_v banish_v into_o sardinia_n by_o thrasimundus_n the_o arian_n king_n symmachus_n pope_n relieve_v &_o maintain_v they_o at_o his_o own_o charge_n roman_n charge_n paul_n diac._n l._n 17._o rerum_fw-la roman_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o his_o communion_n 10._o possessor_n a_o famous_a african_a bishop_n write_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n ep._n add_v hormisd_v it_o be_v fit_a and_o expedient_a that_o we_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o herd_n as_o often_o as_o the_o health_n of_o the_o member_n be_v treat_v of_o for_o who_o have_v great_a solicitude_n of_o his_o subject_n or_o from_o who_o be_v more_o to_o be_v require_v the_o stability_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v waver_v then_o from_o the_o precedent_n of_o that_o seat_n who_o first_o governor_n hear_v from_o christ._n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 11._o victor_n bishop_n of_o utica_n report_v vandal_n report_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr persecut_n vandal_n that_o the_o arian_n in_o africa_n do_v call_v the_o catholic_n roman_n as_o you_o now_o call_v we_o romanist_n which_o they_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n then_o because_o the_o african_a catholic_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n 12._o and_o that_o the_o possession_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o of_o appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v not_o interrupt_v by_o the_o sixth_o conncell_n of_o carthage_n be_v prou●d_v out_o of_o ferrandus_fw-la a_o deacon_n of_o that_o church_n 60._o church_n breviar_n can._n art_n 59_o &_o 60._o which_o live_v soon_o after_o that_o time_n &_o have_v register_v in_o his_o collection_n of_o canon_n this_o as_o the_o five_o &_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n that_o a_o condemn_a bishop_n may_v if_o he_o will_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o that_o during_o the_o appeal_n no_o other_o can_v be_v ordain_v in_o his_o place_n by_o these_o and_o many_o other_o evidence_n which_o may_v be_v produce_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o this_o controversy_n of_o appeal_v the_o african_n be_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o therefore_o to_o affirm_v as_o you_o do_v that_o they_o remain_v in_o the_o state_n of_o separation_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 100_o year_n until_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n for_o all_o the_o example_n here_o allege_v be_v of_o african_a bishop_n that_o live_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o 100_o year_n after_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n against_o this_o truth_n confirm_v by_o so_o many_o evident_a and_o undeniable_a proof_n that_o the_o african_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o aurelius_n primate_n of_o africa_n and_o s._n augustine_n sever_v by_o schism_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o urge_v the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o african_a church_n be_v in_o his_o day_n reconcile_v unto_o they_o roman_z in_o the_o body_n of_o your_o counsel_n say_v 148._o say_v pag._n 148._o you_o there_o be_v 1057._o be_v apud_fw-la suriumtom_n 2._o council_n pag._n 384._o so_o you_o quote_v he_o false_o for_o it_o be_v tom._n 1._o council_n pag._n 1057._o extant_a the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o about_o the_o year_n 606._o the_o same_o pope_n complain_v that_o aurelius_n with_o his_o fellow-bishop_n of_o africa_n with_o who_o s._n augustine_n do_v consent_n have_v by_o the_o instigation_n of_o satan_n for_o so_o the_o epistle_n speak_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n until_o now_o after_o a_o hundred_o year_n space_n eulalius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n acknowledge_v his_o offence_n seek_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o far_o the_o epistle_n of_o your_o pope_n do_v you_o belicue_v this_o epistle_n concern_v the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n then_o have_v you_o best_o stand_v aside_o a_o while_n for_o scare_v of_o knock_n for_o behold_v there_o be_v at_o hand_n child_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n angry_a fellow_n that_o lie_v about_o they_o 1._o bellarmine_n 25._o bellarmine_n bellar._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n c._n 25._o i_o great_o suspect_v say_v he_o that_o this_o epistle_n be_v counterfeit_a 2._o it_o be_v full_a of_o fraud_n say_v epistolam_fw-la say_v binius_fw-la tom._n 1._o conc._n in_o hanc_fw-la epistolam_fw-la binius_fw-la 3._o which_o say_v baronius_n some_o wicked_a impostor_n have_v feign_v etc._n etc._n do_v not_o you_o believe_v this_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o be_v true_a then_o harken_v to_o your_o 89._o your_o lindan_n panopl_n l._n 4._o c._n 89._o lindan_n this_o epistle_n say_v he_o be_v not_o supposititious_a but_o true_a etc._n etc._n thus_o you_o and_o then_o find_v in_o baronius_n that_o during_o those_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v whole_a troop_n and_o armias_fw-la of_o african_a martyr_n and_o holy_a confessor_n you_o triumph_v and_o bid_v we_o take_v 150._o take_v pag._n 150._o this_o your_o syllogism_n to_o ruminate_v upon_o no_o true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n diverse_a true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n ergo_fw-la diverse_a die_a out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n die_v not_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n thus_o you_o dispute_v in_o your_o fancy_n victorious_o as_o have_v by_o this_o your_o discourse_n and_o syllogism_n knock_v the_o roman_a church_n on_o the_o heal_n i_o shall_v first_o discover_v the_o weakness_n and_o vanity_n of_o your_o syllogism_n then_o show_v the_o multiplicity_n of_o your_o falsity_n and_o fraud_n suppose_a and_o cunning_o contrive_v into_o your_o relation_n of_o the_o story_n last_o lay_v open_v the_o reason_n why_o that_o epistle_n may_v be_v suspect_v yea_o reject_v as_o be_v counterfeit_n in_o your_o sollogisme_n i_o grant_v the_o mayor_n proposition_n that_o no_o true_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n in_o your_o minor_a or_o assumption_n diverse_a true_a christian_a martyr_n die_v out_o of_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o distinguish_v sundry_a kind_n of_o disobedience_n first_o there_o be_v disobedience_n heretical_a which_o resist_v the_o doctrine_n &_o decree_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n yea_o deni_v the_o prime_a article_n of_o christian_a unity_n the_o headship_n and_o supreme_a authority_n of_o her_o bishop_n in_o the_o state_n of_o this_o disobedience_n there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a martyrdom_n no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n second_o there_o be_v disobedience_n schismatical_a which_o believe_v firm_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o her_o bishop_n except_v against_o the_o present_a
word_n say_v sanders_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v have_v the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o order_v as_o he_o shall_v think_v best_a so_o that_o whereas_o you_o cite_v sanders_n say_v all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n his_o true_a word_n import_v the_o direct_a contradictory_n non_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la africani_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n do_v not_o oppose_v the_o roman_a bishop_n you_o also_o allege_v he_o de_fw-fr visibili_fw-la monarch_n pag._n 368._o n._n 411._o where_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o your_o purpose_n but_o only_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o eulalia_n of_o carthage_n his_o recantation_n we_o anathematise_v all_o those_o that_o proud_o lift_v up_o their_o neck_n against_o the_o holy_a roman_a and_o apostolical_a church_n from_o these_o word_n can_v you_o gather_v your_o dismal_a assertion_n that_o all_z the_o african_a bishop_n from_o the_o day_n of_o cyprian_a until_o boniface_n the_o second_o that_o be_v for_o three_o hundred_o year_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o sever_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o jesuite_n salmeron_n say_v no_o more_o then_o canonem_fw-la then_o salmeron_n tom_n 12._o tract_n 68_o §._o ad_fw-la canonem_fw-la that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n the_o african_a bishop_n begin_v to_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o pope_n innocent_a and_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n they_o be_v bitter_a and_o displease_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v so_o nor_o that_o they_o withdraw_v their_o communion_n and_o obedience_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n yea_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n though_o he_o and_o fourscore_o african_a bishop_n be_v displease_v with_o pope_n stephen_n because_o he_o do_v strong_o and_o constant_o oppose_v their_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o anabaptism_n yet_o they_o never_o proceed_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n contrariwise_o the_o very_a same_o fourscore_o bishop_n who_o have_v make_v a_o decree_n for_o anabaptism_n meet_v together_o again_o as_o s._n hierome_n do_v testify_v decretum_fw-la testify_v hieron_n dialog_n count_v lucifer_n illi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la rebaptizandos_fw-la haereticos_fw-la cum_fw-la cypriano_n statuerunt_fw-la ad_fw-la antiquam_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la reu●luti_fw-la nowm_fw-la emis●re_fw-la decretum_fw-la and_o repeal_v their_o decree_n which_o may_v have_v cause_v their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o false_a be_v it_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n until_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o even_o those_o very_a bishop_n of_o those_o day_n be_v not_o sever_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o grant_v it_o be_v true_a no_o more_o be_v prove_v then_o that_o aurelius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n superbir●_n cepit_fw-la be_v somewhat_o arrogant_a and_o proud_a against_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o eulalius_n of_o carthage_n do_v against_o the_o example_n of_o his_o other_o predecessor_n imitate_v aurelius_n therein_o as_o he_o do_v testify_v say_v in_o the_o say_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n that_o he_o feel_v himself_o peccatis_fw-la aurelij_fw-la praegravatum_fw-la overburdened_n with_o the_o sin_n of_o aurelius_n but_o that_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o africa_n namely_o those_o many_o martyr_n that_o suffer_v persecution_n under_o the_o arian_n wandalls_n be_v taint_v with_o this_o bitterness_n of_o distaste_n and_o schismatical_a dis-union_n against_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v a_o fable_n by_o yourself_o new_o coin_a and_o vent_v abroad_o now_o to_o the_o three_o point_n propose_v although_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n do_v not_o justify_v your_o slander_n against_o all_o the_o bishop_n &_o martyr_n of_o africa_n that_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o argument_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o evince_v that_o the_o same_o be_v counterfeit_a the_o relation_n thereof_o be_v incoherent_a first_o you_o etc._n you_o pag._n 148._o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o wherein_o about_o the_o year_n 606._o the_o same_o pope_n complain_v etc._n etc._n say_v that_o the_o reunion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n happen_v about_o the_o year_n 606._o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o these_o thing_n hang_v not_o together_o and_o consequent_o be_v false_a for_o boniface_n the_o second_o die_v in_o the_o year_n 531._o that_o be_v almost_o a_o hundred_o year_n before_o the_o year_n 606._o second_o the_o say_a epistle_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o affirm_v that_o eulalius_n his_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v perform_v in_o the_o day_n of_o justine_n the_o emperor_n &_o destinavimus_fw-la &_o justini_n elementissimi_fw-la principis_fw-la orientis_fw-la sacrarum_fw-la literarum_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la ad_fw-la vo●_n destinavimus_fw-la that_o this_o emperor_n write_v letter_n to_o the_o say_v boniface_n about_o it_o now_o justine_n the_o emperor_n be_v dead_a three_o or_o four_o year_n before_o romiface_n the_o second_o be_v choose_v pope_n three_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n be_v write_v to_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n but_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o the_o day_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v not_o name_v eulalius_n but_o timothaeus_n a_o heretic_n and_o a_o adversary_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o see_v this_o difficulty_n and_o to_o avoid_v it_o fear_v not_o to_o do_v against_o the_o command_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n joan._n ghost_n vide_fw-la titulum_fw-la psalmi_n 58._o &_o augu._n tract_n 117._o in_o joan._n ne_fw-fr corrumpaes_fw-fr tituli_fw-la inscriptionem_fw-la for_o the_o title_n of_o that_o epistle_n in_o surius_n be_v epistola_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la bonifacij_fw-la ad_fw-la eulalium_fw-la alexandrinum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la x_o episcopum_fw-la pag._n 248._o in_o mark_fw-mi at_o x_o you_o change_v it_o and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v epistola_fw-la bonifacij_fw-la ad_fw-la alexandrum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o bishop_n alexander_n nor_o do_v you_o tell_v we_o of_o what_o church_n or_o see_v this_o your_o alexander_n be_v bishop_n four_o in_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o second_o gilimer_n the_o arian_n wandal_n be_v king_n of_o africa_n during_o who_o reign_n there_o be_v no_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o carthage_n seqq_fw-la carthage_n see_v baron_n anno_fw-la 620._o &_o seqq_fw-la nor_o in_o any_o church_n of_o africa_n but_o only_a arian_n final_o your_o apostata-bishop_n of_o spalleto_n antonius_n de_fw-fr dominis_n in_o his_o 34._o his_o de_fw-fr repub._n eccles._n lib._n 4._o c._n 8._o n._n 34._o london-writing_n which_o he_o publish_v under_o your_o nose_n &_o with_o your_o so_o great_a approbation_n and_o applause_n do_v so_o lay_v about_o he_o against_o the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n that_o you_o who_o be_v so_o stiff_a a_o defender_n thereof_o have_v best_a to_o stand_v aside_o for_o fear_v of_o knock_n in_o the_o controversy_n about_o appellation_n say_v he_o abrupta_fw-la he_o communio_fw-la inter_fw-la africam_fw-la &_o romam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la abrupta_fw-la the_o communion_n between_o africa_n and_o rome_n be_v never_o break_v as_o baronius_n and_o binius_fw-la do_v prove_v very_o well_o the_o reconciliation_n or_o recantation_n make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n unto_o boniface_n the_o second_o which_o some_o one_o have_v feign_a impostura_fw-la feign_a mara_fw-mi est_fw-la impostura_fw-la be_v a_o mere_a imposture_n as_o the_o say_a author_n demonstrate_v thus_o he_o may_v you_o not_o number_v this_o man_n among_o the_o child_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n and_o angry_a fellow_n who_o do_v so_o peremptory_o aver_v the_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n to_o be_v a_o mere_a forgery_n and_o a_o grand_a imposture_n with_o great_a reason_n than_o you_o have_v do_v bellarmine_n for_o only_o say_v i_o suspect_v it_o be_v counterfeit_a in_o fine_a these_o argument_n abundant_o show_v that_o this_o epistle_n of_o boniface_n may_v be_v question_v and_o reject_v and_o yet_o all_o the_o other_o epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n set_v down_o in_o the_o body_n of_o our_o counsel_n cell_n subsist_v firm_a against_o which_o the_o like_a implicancy_n and_o incoherency_n can_v be_v urge_v as_o for_o bishop_n lindan_n he_o speak_v against_o they_o who_o discard_v this_o epistle_n voluntary_o and_o without_o evident_a proof_n say_v that_o they_o may_v aswell_o infringe_v the_o credit_n of_o any_o ancient_a history_n which_o his_o inference_n be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o they_o who_o refuse_v it_o as_o counterfeit_v not_o voluntary_o but_o constrain_v by_o the_o pregnant_a incompossibility_n thereof_o with_o other_o know_a undeniable_a truth_n chap._n xxviii_o whether_o the_o britan_n
pope_n be_v the_o schismatic_n and_o not_o the_o council_n but_o i_o wonder_v not_o that_o you_o take_v part_n with_o schismatic_o belike_o you_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o some_o obstinate_a puritan_n in_o parliament_n stand_v out_o against_o his_o majesty_n he_o and_o not_o they_o be_v the_o rebel_n for_o the_o case_n be_v alike_o save_v only_o that_o this_o be_v a_o temporal_a cause_n and_o that_o a_o spiritual_a but_o you_o demand_v 360._o demand_v pag._n 360._o with_o nilus_n and_o erasmus_n to_o what_o end_n general_a counsel_n shall_v be_v call_v with_o so_o much_o cost_n trouble_n and_o labour_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o s._n peter_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n call_v a_o council_n at_o antioch_n 15.6.7_o antioch_n act._n 15.6.7_o if_o you_o desire_v more_o reason_n you_o have_v they_o in_o bellarmine_n 7._o bellarmine_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 7._o who_o have_v answer_v this_o argument_n but_o you_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o sect_n ix_o doctor_n mortons_n instance_n of_o france_n and_o england_n to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o some_o of_o your_o novellist_n a_o pamphlet_n entitle_v fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetendarum_fw-la &_o fugiendarum_fw-la stuff_v with_o so_o many_o lie_v that_o the_o author_n be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v his_o name_n know_v it_o be_v prohibit_v prohib_fw-la prohibit_v indic_n libro_fw-la prohib_fw-la and_o therefore_o what_o you_o report_v out_o of_o it_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v but_o your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o admit_v within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o french_a be_v yet_o at_o liberty_n to_o believe_v as_o much_o thereof_o as_o they_o listen_v be_v a_o famous_a untruth_n for_o although_o that_o kingdom_n have_v not_o admit_v general_o all_o the_o decree_n make_v by_o that_o council_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n have_v so_o have_v that_o most_o christian_a kingdom_n with_o they_o admit_v and_o embrace_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n with_o all_o his_o catholic_a subject_n believe_v they_o no_o less_o steadfast_o than_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o you_o admit_v not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o fin_n 361._o out_o of_o b._n gardiner_n oration_n of_o true_a obedience_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o england_n be_v agree_v upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o steadfast_a consent_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n for_o albeit_o some_o person_n infect_v with_o lutheranisme_n &_o some_o flatterer_n for_o their_o own_o end_n soothe_a king_n henry_n in_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o face_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o general_o catholic_a as_o for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 1000_o year_n before_o it_o have_v be_v and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n b._n fisher_n &_o sir_n thomas_n more_o write_v most_o learned_a book_n which_o be_v yet_o and_o will_v ever_o be_v most_o high_o esteem_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o that_o what_o they_o write_v with_o their_o pen_n they_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o cardinal_n pole_n a_o man_n of_o so_o great_a worth_n that_o he_o want_v but_o two_o voice_n for_o the_o popedom_n not_o only_o write_v most_o learned_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o suffer_v and_o his_o friend_n for_o his_o sake_n great_a vexation_n and_o persecution_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n henry_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n and_o that_o many_o person_n of_o worth_n suffer_v imprisonment_n and_o death_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n among_o which_o be_v all_o the_o charterhouse_n monk_n of_o london_n with_o their_o prior_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o famous_a untruth_n to_o say_v it_o be_v then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o no_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n moreover_o you_o know_v this_o oration_n of_o b._n gardiner_n to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n prohib_o church_n in_o indic_n lib._n prohib_o and_o that_o he_o ashamed_a of_o it_o retract_v it_o which_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o object_v chap._n xliv_o whether_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n have_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n in_o which_o to_o free_v yourself_o from_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n &_o heresy_n you_o brand_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o both_o &_o labour_n to_o prove_v that_o luther_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o separation_n be_v more_o justifiable_a than_o luther_n be_v in_o his_o departure_n from_o she_o and_o may_v more_o just_o plead_v soul_n salvation_n than_o any_o of_o they_o that_o remain_v in_o union_n with_o she_o your_o chapter_n you_o divide_v into_o four_o part_n and_o these_o part_n into_o thesis_n which_o i_o shall_v examine_v the_o more_o brief_o because_o many_o of_o your_o proof_n be_v repetition_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n already_o answer_v sect_n i._o whether_o any_o protestant_n have_v hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o luther_n fall_n be_v whole_o extinguish_v your_o first_o thesis_n be_v 364._o be_v pag._n 364._o many_o papist_n in_o their_o adversnesse_n to_o protestant_n who_o they_o seek_v to_o traduce_v do_v impute_v unto_o they_o this_o faithless_a paradox_n as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v sometime_o extinguish_v a_o false_a doctrine_n say_v you_o which_o protestant_n never_o teach_v if_o protestant_n never_o teach_v this_o faithless_a doctrine_n why_o do_v luther_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o erect_v your_o new_a church_n say_v 497._o say_v praef._n in_o 1._o tom_n &_o cont_n reg._n angl._n foe_o 497._o he_o have_v none_o to_o assist_v he_o but_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o alone_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n forsake_v of_o all_o why_o do_v caluin_n say_v 141._o say_v ep._n 141._o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o since_o we_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o all_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v now_o in_o our_o very_a beginning_n disagree_v among_o our_o self_n why_o do_v he_o say_v sadolet_n say_v respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n it_o be_v public_a and_o notorious_a to_o all_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a that_o when_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v prostrate_v his_o glory_n extinguish_v religion_n abolish_v the_o church_n destroy_v and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n utter_o overthrow_v why_o do_v milius_n say_v 137._o say_v august_n confess_v explic_a art_n 7._o de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 137._o if_o there_o have_v be_v right_a believer_n before_o luther_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o lutheran_n reformation_n why_o morgensterne_n 141._o morgensterne_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n p._n 141._o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n any_o have_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o luther_n shall_v receive_v it_o from_o they_o and_o not_o they_o from_o luther_n it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o before_o luthert_n time_n all_o church_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o cimmerian_a darkness_n and_o that_o luther_n be_v divine_o raise_v up_o to_o discover_v the_o same_o and_o to_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o in_o regard_n thereof_o luther_n boast_v say_v 1525._o say_v ep._n ad_fw-la argentin_n anno_o 1525._o christum_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la primò_fw-la vulgatum_fw-la audemus_fw-la gloriari_fw-la why_o do_v camierus_fw-la say_v 1601._o say_v ep._n jesuit_n part_n altera_fw-la geneu_fw-fr 1601._o that_o error_n do_v not_o only_o possess_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o apostasy_n be_v fall_v from_o christ_n why_o do_v simon_n the_o voyon_n a_o genevian_a minister_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o doctor_n lect._n doctor_n praefat._n ad_fw-la lect._n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 605._o falsehood_n prevail_v and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a
individual_a person_n v._o g._n vrban_n the_o eight_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o true_a head_n of_o the_o church_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 692._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v at_o any_o time_n a_o body_n headless_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 693._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v at_o any_o time_n a_o false_a head_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 696._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n at_o any_o time_n be_v divide_v into_o many_o head_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 700._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v doubtful_o head_v sect._n 6._o pag._n 702._o of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n define_v a_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 704._o the_o same_o matter_n prosecute_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n sect._n 8._o pag._n 706._o doctor_n mortons_n instance_n of_o france_n and_o england_n to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 709._o chap._n xxxxiv_n whether_o luther_n &_o his_o follower_n have_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 711._o whether_o any_o protestant_n have_v hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o luther_n fall_n be_v whole_o extinguish_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o catholic_a church_n assemble_v in_o a_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n sect._n 2._o p._n 714._o whether_o protestant_n hold_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v invisible_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 720._o what_o cause_n may_v suffice_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 725._o of_o luther_n excommunication_n and_o his_o conference_n with_o the_o devil_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 731._o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v as_o subject_a to_o error_n as_o any_o other_o church_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 735._o whether_o there_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n any_o prophecy_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 740._o whether_o luther_n be_v just_o excommunicate_v sect._n 8._o p._n 741._o of_o the_o first_o occasion_n of_o luther_n revolt_n from_o the_o church_n and_o that_o doctor_n morton_n to_o defend_v his_o doctrine_n against_o indulgence_n falsifi_v sundry_a author_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 744._o the_o cause_n give_v by_o doctor_n morton_n in_o excuse_n of_o luther_n departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 10._o pag._n 749._o whether_o protestant_n have_v any_o professor_n of_o their_o faith_n before_o luther_n sect._n 11._o pag._n 751._o that_o all_o change_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v note_v in_o the_o person_n time_n and_o place_n of_o their_o beginning_n sect._n 12._o pag._n 757._o the_o lineal_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a and_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 13._o pag._n 760._o of_o the_o conformity_n of_o protestant_n and_o donatist_n in_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 14._o pag._n 763._o that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o now_o roman_z church_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o salvation_n sect._n 15._o pag._n 765._o chap._n i._o general_n principle_n premise_v for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o the_o ensue_a apology_n sect_n i._o the_o importance_n of_o the_o subject_n though_n there_o be_v many_o question_n in_o religion_n controvert_v between_o protestant_n and_o we_o yet_o none_o more_o important_a or_o more_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v then_o that_o of_o the_o church_n protestant_n agree_v with_o we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v &_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n extant_a on_o earth_n one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o 3.15_o the_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o pillar_n and_o touchstone_n of_o truth_n which_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n must_v hear_v and_o 18.17_o and_o math._n 18.17_o obey_v which_o be_v the_o second_o eve_n frame_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o our_o second_o adam_n christ_n who_o whosoever_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o mother_n can_v have_v he_o to_o be_v his_o 10._o his_o s._n aug._n de_fw-fr symb._n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o father_n she_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o 5.23_o our_o ephes_n 5.23_o lord_n out_o of_o which_o say_v s._n augustine_n 〈◊〉_d augustine_n ep._n 50._o ad_fw-la 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a ghost_n impart_v life_n to_o no_o man_n she_o be_v the_o vineyard_n seqq_n vineyard_n math._n 20.1_o &_o seqq_n in_o which_o he_o that_o labour_v not_o shall_v not_o receive_v the_o wage_n of_o everlasting_a life_n she_z the_o ark_n of_o no_n euang_n no_n s._n hiero._n ep_v 57_o s._n gaudent_fw-la tract_n 2._o the_o lect_n euang_n in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o or_o out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o depart_v shall_v perish_v she_o be_v the_o wellspring_n of_o truth_n thessaly_n truth_n lactant._n 4_o divin_v iustit_fw-la ●_o ult._n orig._n hom_n 15._o in_o math._n theod_n in_o c._n 2.2_o ad_fw-la thessaly_n the_o house_n of_o faith_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n in_o which_o man_n prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o their_o sacrifice_n accept_v all_o other_o congregation_n be_v synagogue_n of_o satan_n &_o denn_n of_o devil_n she_o be_v the_o garden_n of_o god_n 4.12.13.15_o god_n cant._n 4.12.13.15_o in_o which_o whosoever_o grow_v not_o be_v not_o a_o flower_n plant_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o weed_n to_o be_v pluck_v up_o and_o cast_v into_o hell_n fire_n final_o she_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 1.13_o christ_n 2._o reg_n 7.12_o 1_o paralip_n 17.11_o psal_n 44.7_o luc._n 1.33_o colos●_n 1.13_o in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n people_n whosoever_o say_v 3._o say_v eb._n 152._o add_v popul_n fact_n donas_fw-la &_o cont_n ep_v parmen_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 3._o s_n augustine_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n although_o he_o think_v himself_o to_o liu●_n never_o so_o laudable_o for_o this_o only_a crime_n that_o he_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o christ_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o and_o speak_v of_o emeritus_n a_o heretical_a med_n heretical_a serm._n super_fw-la gestis_fw-la cum_fw-la emerito_fw-la post_fw-la med_n bishop_n he_o can_v have_v salvation_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n out_o of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n but_o salvation_n he_o may_v have_v honour_n he_o may_v have_v sacrament_n he_o may_v sing_v alleluia_n he_o may_v answer_v amen_o he_o may_v have_v the_o gospel_n he_o may_v have_v and_o preach_v belief_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o salvation_n he_o can_v find_v no_o where_o but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n wherefore_o since_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o be_v most_o necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o inquire_v and_o learn_v which_o and_o where_o be_v that_o temple_n of_o god_n that_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n that_o store-house_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o second_o eve_n our_o spiritual_a mother_n that_o know_v she_o &_o resort_v to_o she_o he_o may_v be_v cherish_v in_o her_o lap_n and_o nourish_v at_o her_o breast_n with_o the_o milk_n of_o her_o wholesome_a doctrine_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o catholic_n be_v that_o these_o foresay_a a●tributs_n agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o no_o other_o congregation_n in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o therefore_o she_o alone_o be_v the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v may_v &_o in_o which_o whosoever_o be_v not_o can_v be_v save_v upon_o this_o our_o doctrine_n you_o pass_v a_o censure_n suitable_a to_o your_o modesty_n videlicet_fw-la that_o it_o be_v false_a imposterous_a scandalous_a schismatical_a heretical_a blasphemous_a every_o way_n damnable_a 5.182.419_o damnable_a pag._n 5.182.419_o presumgtuous_a 336._o presumgtuous_a pag._n 336._o impious_a 95._o impious_a pag_n 95._o execrable_a 127._o execrable_a pag_n 127._o damnable_o heretical_a 91._o heretical_a pag_n 91._o pernicious_a antichristian_a 99_o antichristian_a pag_n 99_o sacrilegious_a 336._o sacrilegious_a pag._n 336._o satanical_a idolatrous_a 387._o idolatrous_a pag._n 387._o this_o be_v your_o censure_n and_o to_o make_v it_o good_a you_o write_v a_o large_a volume_n which_o you_o entitle_v the_o grand_a imposture_n of_o the_o now_o roman_z church_n but_o mistake_v yourself_o in_o the_o name_n for_o the_o book_n be_v &_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v entitle_v the_o grand_a imposture_n of_o doctor_n thomas_n morton_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o this_o and_o all_o former_a age_n for_o upon_o due_a examination_n such_o he_o will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v that_o shall_v please_v to_o pass_v his_o eye_n over_o the_o ensue_a apology_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o after_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o he_o will_v rest_v convince_v that_o
ambrose_n to_o confute_v julian_n the_o pelagian_a heretic_n say_v 2._o say_v l._n 1._o cont_n julia._n pelag._n c._n 2._o here_o be_v ambrose_n of_o milan_n who_o thy_o master_n pelagius_n so_o high_o commend_v as_o to_o say_v that_o in_o his_o book_n chief_o the_o roman_a faith_n do_v shine_v so_o that_o his_o very_a enemy_n dare_v not_o reprehend_v his_o faith_n and_o most_o pure_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n who_o see_v not_o that_o s._n augustine_n here_o by_o the_o roman_a faith_n understand_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o therefore_o speak_v again_o of_o the_o great_a constancy_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n of_o his_o labour_n and_o danger_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o say_v 2._o say_v cont._n julian_n pelag._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o the_o roman_a world_n doubt_v not_o to_o magnify_v they_o with_o he_o where_o again_o by_o the_o roman_a world_n he_o understand_v all_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n the_o same_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o s._n hierome_n 1._o hierome_n apol._n advers_a ruffin_n l._n 1._o what_o faith_n say_v he_o do_v ruffinus_n call_v his_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v or_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o origen_n book_n if_o he_o answer_v that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v then_o be_v we_o catholic_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n to_o acatius_n bishop_n of_o berone_n and_o other_o his_o colleague_n to_o who_o he_o say_v 10._o say_v in_o synod_n ephes_n to_o 5._o c._n 10._o it_o become_v your_o holiness_n to_o ask_v these_o thing_n of_o god_n earnest_o and_o by_o manifest_a token_n to_o show_v yourselves_o approve_v priest_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o palladius_n chrysostomi_n palladius_n in_o vita_fw-la chrysostomi_n who_o write_v of_o theodorus_n tyanaeus_n that_o he_o fortify_v his_o bishopric_n with_o a_o wall_n of_o piety_n by_o persevere_v till_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a roman_n of_o who_o paul_n give_v testimony_n say_v your_o faith_n be_v renown_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o what_o victor_n of_o tunes_n report_v of_o vitalianus_n a_o scythian_a anastas_n scythian_a in_o anastas_n namely_o that_o he_o take_v arm_n against_o anastasius_n the_o emperor_n and_o will_v never_o promise_v peace_n unto_o he_o but_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v unite_v all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o roman_a which_o plain_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o abiur_v the_o memory_n of_o acatius_n say_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n epist_n ad_fw-la hormisd_v we_o hope_v to_o be_v in_o one_o communion_n with_o you_o declare_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a in_o which_o there_o be_v the_o integrity_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o perfect_a solidity_n and_o we_o promise_v not_o to_o recite_v hereafter_o in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o that_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n send_v to_o agapetus_n pope_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o 417.420_o by_o ep._n ad_fw-la agapet_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 417.420_o s._n augustine_n testify_v 157._o testify_v ep._n 157._o that_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la by_o mean_n of_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n have_v be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v yea_o even_o by_o two_o of_o they_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o pope_n zozimus_n and_o that_o s._n augustine_n by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a understand_v the_o catholic_a church_n possidius_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n declare_v 18._o declare_v in_o vita_fw-la aug._n c._n 18._o call_v the_o sentence_n pronounce_v by_o these_o pope_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la iudicium_fw-la the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n innocentius_n say_v he_o and_o zozimus_fw-la in_o their_o several_a time_n censure_v the_o pelagian_o and_o cut_v they_o of_o from_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n by_o their_o letter_n address_v to_o the_o african_a church_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n command_v they_o to_o be_v anathematise_v and_o avoid_v by_o all_o catholic_n and_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n honorius_n hear_v of_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n pronounce_v against_o they_o condemn_v they_o also_o by_o his_o law_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v rank_v among_o heretic_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o gelasius_n apocryph_n gelasius_n in_o decret_a de_fw-fr scriptor_n apocryph_n a_o african_a bear_v and_o it_o be_v think_v a_o disciple_n of_o s._n augustine_n testify_v that_o the_o holy_a roman_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n have_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o church_n by_o any_o synodical_a constitution_n but_o have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n prosper_n s._n augustine_n second_o soul_n say_v 5_o say_v l._n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o predict_v dei_fw-la part_n 4._o c._n 5_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n found_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n where_o they_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n they_o deliver_v it_o to_o their_o successor_n peaceable_a and_o free_a from_o division_n the_o christian_a that_o communicate_v with_o this_o general_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a but_o if_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o those_o two_o famous_a doctor_n of_o the_o african_a church_n s_o fulgentius_n and_o primasius_n with_o other_o their_o fellow-bishop_n 220._o in_o number_n who_o be_v banish_v by_o the_o arian_n king_n trasamundus_n out_o of_o africa_n into_o sardinia_n write_v from_o thence_o a_o synodical_a epistle_n to_o the_o catholic_n of_o africa_n in_o which_o they_o exhort_v they_o for_o the_o avoid_n of_o pelagianism_n to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o s._n augustine_n of_o which_o say_v they_o 152._o they_o extat_fw-la in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patr._n edit_fw-la colon._n to_o 6._o part_n 1._o pag._n 152._o hormisdas_n of_o bless_a memory_n a_o glorious_a bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v make_v mention_n with_o great_a commendation_n of_o catholic_a praise_n in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o consultation_n of_o possessor_n our_o holy_a brother_n and_o fellow-bishop_n his_o word_n be_v these_o what_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n hold_v and_o observe_v concern_v freewill_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n may_v be_v full_o know_v out_o of_o diverse_a book_n of_o bless_a augustine_n &_o chief_o those_o which_o he_o write_v to_o prosper_v &_o hilary_n these_o their_o word_n convince_v that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o ancient_a and_o holy_a pope_n hormisdas_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o africa_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v synonima_n betoken_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o set_v down_o the_o form_n of_o abjuration_n which_o all_o bishop_n return_v from_o schism_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o make_v express_v it_o in_o these_o word_n 30._o word_n l._n 1._o epist_n 30._o i_o bishop_n of_o n._n have_v discern_v the_o trap_n of_o division_n wherein_o i_o be_v catch_v be_o return_v by_o god_n grace_n with_o my_o pure_a and_o free_a will_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o i_o vow_v and_o promise_n that_o i_o will_v never_o return_v to_o schism_n but_o always_o remain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o profession_n show_v that_o as_o now_o it_o be_v so_o than_o it_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v no_o less_o than_o open_a schism_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o like_a profession_n make_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n be_v afterward_o send_v by_o adrian_n the_o second_o to_o the_o eight_o council_n general_a and_o be_v read_v in_o the_o first_o action_n be_v approve_v and_o praise_v by_o all_o the_o father_n thereof_o 199._o thereof_o act._n 1._o apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 3.881.913_o &_o
a_o person_n of_o so_o great_a dignity_n and_o very_o age_a he_o undertake_v so_o long_o so_o laborious_a and_o so_o dangerous_a a_o journey_n to_o declare_v unto_o anicetus_n the_o reason_n of_o his_o persist_v in_o the_o asian_a custom_n which_o if_o anicetus_n have_v then_o condemn_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o polycarpe_n will_v have_v depart_v from_o it_o as_o all_o orthodox_n bishop_n do_v when_o they_o see_v it_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o it_o declare_v to_o be_v heretic_n sect_n ii_o s._n cyprian_a object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o cyprian_a believe_v not_o any_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o repeat_v here_o 185.188_o here_o pag._n 185.188_o what_o you_o have_v say_v before_o of_o his_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n stephen_n &_o contemn_v the_o excommunication_n for_o which_o you_o bring_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o the_o testimony_n of_o cassander_n a_o heretic_n primae_fw-la classis_fw-la who_o work_n you_o know_v to_o be_v forbid_v and_o yet_o shame_v not_o to_o cite_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a author_n that_o you_o may_v call_v his_o lie_n our_o confession_n for_o that_o they_o be_v lie_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v 24._o prove_v chap._n 24._o and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o reprovable_a you_o be_v because_o s._n cyprian_n testimony_n which_o show_v he_o to_o have_v believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o she_o to_o be_v schismatic_n you_o shift_v off_o 186._o off_o pag._n 186._o with_o a_o answer_n of_o goulartius_n that_o cyprian_a speak_v they_o of_o his_o own_o only_a authority_n against_o schismatic_n who_o trouble_v his_o jurisdiction_n which_o to_o be_v a_o false_a and_o unconscionable_a answer_n you_o and_o your_o goulartius_n may_v learn_v from_o the_o centurist_n who_o reprehend_v s._n cyprian_a 10._o cyprian_a brerel_n protest_v apol._n tract_n 1._o sect_n 3._o subdiu_fw-la 10._o for_o teach_v that_o our_o lord_n have_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o peter_n that_o one_o chair_n by_o our_o lord_n voice_n be_v build_v upon_o peter_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o for_o call_v peter_n chair_n the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v and_o for_o teach_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n ought_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o other_o the_o mother_n and_o root_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o these_o testimony_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o centurist_n i_o add_v that_o cyprian_n 2._o cyprian_n l._n 4._o ep_n 2._o exhort_v antonianus_n in_o time_n of_o schism_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o hold_v fast_o his_o communion_n that_o be_v say_v he_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o express_o affirm_v eccles_n affirm_v l._n de_fw-fr vnit._n eccles_n that_o whoever_o resist_v the_o chair_n of_o peter_n nether_a hold_v the_o faith_n nor_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o speak_v of_o some_o certain_a heretic_n he_o object_v unto_o they_o their_o great_a boldness_n in_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o who_o perfidiousness_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o this_o you_o answer_v 186._o answer_v pag._n 186._o no_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n be_v more_o urge_v by_o you_o than_o s._n cyprian_n no_o epistle_n more_o insist_v upon_o than_o this_o no_o word_n more_o inculcate_v than_o these_o and_o we_o may_v add_v no_o father_n no_o epistle_n no_o sentence_n more_o egregious_o abuse_v and_o pervert_v for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o perfidiousness_n in_o doctrine_n but_o only_o in_o discipline_n by_o the_o false_a and_o perfidious_a report_n of_o schismatical_a fellow_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o sentence_n of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v pervert_v not_o we_o but_o you_o pervert_v it_o and_o so_o it_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o impartial_a judge_n that_o shall_v read_v the_o word_n not_o cut_v short_a as_o you_o rehearse_v they_o that_o the_o sense_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v but_o entire_a as_o i_o have_v set_v they_o down_o the_o novatians_n be_v not_o only_a schismatic_n but_o heretic_n as_o s._n cyprian_n in_o that_o epistle_n &_o else_o where_o often_o call_v they_o and_o in_o the_o word_n allege_v when_o he_o oppose_v their_o perfidiousness_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n by_o perfidiousness_n he_o understand_v error_n in_o doctrine_n or_o misbelief_n which_o be_v oposite_a to_o faith_n not_o perfidiousness_n in_o discipline_n for_o that_o have_v no_o opposition_n at_o all_o with_o faith_n wherefore_o he_o reprehend_v the_o novatians_n that_o have_v not_o only_o divide_v themselves_o by_o schism_n from_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v but_o also_o forsake_v the_o roman_a faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o dare_v notwithstanding_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o rome_n in_o hope_n to_o deceive_v that_o church_n and_o get_v their_o doctrine_n approve_v by_o she_o not_o consider_v that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o apostle_n misbelief_n can_v have_v no_o access_n to_o they_o which_o doctrine_n s._n hierome_n seem_v to_o have_v take_v from_o this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a when_o speak_v to_o ruffinus_n he_o say_v 1._o say_v apol._n advers_a ruffin_n l._n 1._o know_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n admit_v no_o delusion_n and_o that_o be_v fence_a by_o s._n paul_n authority_n it_o can_v be_v alter_v etc._n etc._n sect_n iii_o s._n athanasius_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n that_o s._n athanasius_n believe_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o prove_v 190._o prove_v pag._n 190._o for_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o liberius_n pope_n he_o regard_v not_o his_o excommunication_n this_o we_o deny_v it_o be_v peradventure_o true_a though_o not_o altogether_o certain_a 14._o certain_a onuphr_fw-ge in_o not_o ad_fw-la plati_fw-la ruffin_n l._n 1._o hist●c_fw-la 27._o sozom_n l._n 4._o c._n 14._o that_o liberius_n weary_v out_o with_o two_o year_n banishment_n and_o other_o vexation_n by_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n yield_v to_o sign_n the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o thereby_o become_v a_o schismatic_n but_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v athanasius_n be_v not_o report_v by_o any_o writer_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a but_o a_o fiction_n of_o you_o and_o be_v it_o true_a the_o excommunication_n have_v not_o only_o be_v injust_a as_o be_v pronounce_v against_o a_o innocent_a person_n and_o therefore_o no_o way_n obligatory_a but_o also_o invalid_a for_o as_o much_o as_o liberius_n by_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o catholic_n and_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o heretic_n be_v fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n and_o have_v no_o power_n to_o pronounce_v excommunication_n against_o athanasius_n or_o if_o he_o have_v pronounce_v it_o athanasius_n have_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v to_o prove_v that_o athanasius_n regard_v not_o the_o excommunication_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o while_n liberius_n be_v true_a pope_n he_o excommunicate_v athanasius_n and_o that_o athanasius_n refuse_v to_o obey_v which_o you_o prove_v not_o and_o therefore_o your_o objection_n be_v impertinent_a and_o your_o assertion_n false_a for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o athanasius_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n he_o appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o julius_n by_o the_o dignity_n and_o prerogative_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v restore_v he_o again_o to_o his_o church_n 7._o church_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 11._o sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o and_o what_o else_o do_v he_o mean_v when_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n writing_z to_z marcus_z pope_n endorse_v their_o letter_n to_o the_o holy_a and_o venerable_a lord_n of_o apostolical_a eminency_n mark_v father_n of_o the_o holy_a roman_a apostolic_a see_n and_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o in_o the_o letter_n we_o desire_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o your_o holy_a see_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o head_n of_o all_o church_n we_o may_v deserve_v to_o receive_v the_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n canon_n by_o these_o our_o legate_n for_o the_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v fence_a by_o your_o authority_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o ep._n again_o eadem_fw-la ep._n we_o be_v you_o and_o
day_n the_o roman_a church_n hold_v it_o canonical_a 222._o canonical_a pag._n 222._o be_v all_o repetition_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n which_o in_o their_o due_a place_n have_v be_v answer_v 6._o answer_v chap._n 22._o sect_n 3._o chap._n 25.26_o tot_fw-la chap._n 30._o sect_n 1._o chap._n 34._o sect_n 6._o but_o to_o they_o you_o add_v here_o a_o consideration_n of_o your_o judicious_a casaubon_n 223._o casaubon_n pag._n 223._o require_v we_o who_o account_n the_o only_a note_n of_o schism_n to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o pope_n thereof_o to_o answer_n why_o s._n augustine_n who_o in_o seven_o book_n beside_o many_o other_o place_n confute_v the_o schismatical_a donatist_n yet_o never_o speak_v word_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n whereby_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o truth_n your_o judicious_a casaubon_n show_v great_a lack_n of_o judgement_n in_o make_v this_o argument_n and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o read_v s._n augustine_n or_o if_o he_o have_v that_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v he_o or_o if_o he_o have_v read_v &_o do_v understand_v he_o than_o you_o know_v what_o he_o show_v in_o conceal_v the_o truth_n for_o throughout_o all_o those_o seven_o book_n against_o the_o donatist_n there_o be_v nothing_o which_o s._n augustine_n so_o often_o object_v nor_o so_o much_o urge_v against_o they_o as_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n repeat_v the_o same_o not_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o almost_o in_o every_o chapter_n of_o some_o of_o those_o book_n for_o when_o the_o donatist_n do_v strive_v to_o defend_v their_o heresy_n of_o rebaptisation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n answer_v saepè_fw-la answer_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 18.19_o l._n 2._o c._n 1.5.6.7.9_o contra_fw-la crescon_n l._n ●_o c._n 32._o l._n 2._o c._n 3._o &_o alibi_fw-la saepè_fw-la that_o cyprian_n patronage_n can_v not_o avail_v they_o because_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o s._n cyprian_a live_v &_o die_v and_o do_v he_o not_o in_o other_o his_o writing_n against_o the_o donatist_n often_o urge_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o say_v 165._o say_v ep._n 165._o he_o the_o order_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o much_o more_o assure_o and_o safe_o indeed_o do_v we_o begin_v our_o account_n from_o s._n peter_n himself_o to_o who_o as_o he_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n our_o lord_n say_v 16.18_o say_v math._n 16.18_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o linus_n succeod_v to_o peter_n cletus_n to_o linus_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o reckon_v all_o the_o pope_n unto_o anastasius_n who_o then_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n he_o conclude_v against_o the_o donatist_n in_o this_o order_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o one_o donatist_n to_o be_v find_v to_o which_o i_o add_v no_o nor_o yet_o one_o protestant_a and_o reckon_v the_o motive_n that_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o church_n among_o they_o he_o set_v down_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n there_o be_v say_v he_o 4._o he_o cont_n ep._n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o many_o thing_n which_o with_o great_a reason_n hold_v i_o in_o this_o catholic_a church_n 1._o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n confine_v to_o a_o few_o northern_a country_n in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o a_o certain_a authority_n begin_v by_o miracle_n which_o protestant_n confess_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v 3._o the_o succession_n of_o priest_n even_o from_o s._n peter_n until_o this_o present_a bishop_n wherefore_o since_o that_o church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n can_v be_v the_o protestan_a church_n which_o have_v no_o such_o succession_n but_o the_o roman_a it_o follow_v that_o s._n augustine_n hold_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o express_v to_o the_o donatist_n how_o much_o he_o grieve_v to_o see_v they_o lie_v cut_v of_o from_o this_o church_n he_o say_v donati_n say_v psal_n count_v part_n donati_n it_o greeve_v we_o to_o see_v you_o lie_v so_o cut_v of_o number_v the_o priest_n even_o from_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o consider_v in_o that_o rank_n of_o father_n who_o succeed_v who_o that_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o here_o again_o s._n augustine_n show_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n build_v upon_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n against_o which_o heresy_n &_o schism_n which_o be_v the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v and_o all_o that_o be_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v as_o branch_n out_o of_o from_o the_o vine_n and_o devoid_a of_o all_o spiritual_a life_n and_o as_o he_o hold_v all_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v in_o miserable_a state_n so_o contrary_o he_o hold_v all_o that_o live_v in_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v most_o happy_a and_o secure_a from_o error_n in_o faith_n for_o so_o he_o deem_v cecilian_a archbishop_n of_o carthage_n to_o be_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o plot_n and_o conspiracy_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o he_o he_o may_v say_v s._n augustine_n 162._o augustine_n ep._n 162._o contemn_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v unite_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n both_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v and_o to_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v first_o into_o africa_n these_o few_o passage_n among_o many_o other_o show_v that_o your_o judicious_a casaubon_n fail_v much_o in_o judgement_n and_o truth_n when_o he_o adventure_v to_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o work_n against_o the_o donatist_n never_o speak_v word_n of_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n nor_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o judgement_n whereby_o to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o truth_n and_o as_o he_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a against_o the_o donatist_n so_o have_v he_o testify_v that_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n take_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 91._o scripture_n aug._n ep._n 91._o the_o pelagian_o be_v condemn_v who_o therefore_o see_v themselves_o esteem_v as_o heretic_n throughout_o all_o the_o western_a church_n in_o which_o they_o live_v seek_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n hope_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o communion_n as_o the_o protestant_n of_o germany_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v 10._o do_v see_v justus_n caluinus_n apol._n pro_fw-la eccl._n rom._n pag._n 10._o who_o therefore_o we_o may_v check_v with_o s._n augustine_n word_n write_v against_o julian_n a_o chiese_n mantainer_n of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n i_o think_v say_v he_o 4._o he_o cont._n julia_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o suffice_v thou_o in_o which_o our_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o a_o most_o glorious_a martyrdom_n to_o the_o governor_n of_o which_o church_n bless_a innocentius_n if_o thou_o will_v have_v give_v care_n thou_o have_v ere_o this_o free_v thy_o dangerous_a youth_n from_o the_o pelagian_a snare_n for_o what_o answer_n can_v that_o holy_a man_n give_v to_o the_o african_a counsel_n but_o that_o which_o from_o ancient_a time_n the_o roman_a church_n with_o all_o other_o perseverant_o hold_v and_o else_o where_o he_o note_v 8._o note_v l._n 2._o the_o great_a christi_fw-la &_o pecc_fw-la orig_n c._n 8._o that_o albeit_o pelagius_n have_v draw_v other_o into_o error_n he_o can_v never_o deceive_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o most_o bless_a pope_n sozimus_n consider_v what_o opinion_n his_o predecessor_n worthy_a to_o be_v imitate_v have_v of_o his_o proceed_n and_o what_o judgement_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n to_o be_v commend_v in_o our_o lord_n have_v make_v of_o he_o but_o you_o object_n 225._o object_n pag._n 225._o it_o be_v mere_a sophistry_n to_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v profess_v of_o all_o christian_n at_o all_o time_n because_o the_o father_n require_v it_o in_o their_o time_n by_o this_o argument_n a_o pelagian_a a_o donatist_n a_o eutychian_a or_o any_o other_o heretic_n may_v justify_v his_o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v as_o you_o do_v that_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o she_o be_v not_o for_o all_o time_n
and_o practise_v the_o same_o authority_n 7._o not_o unlike_a to_o these_o be_v the_o answer_v you_o give_v to_o s._n athanasius_n 254._o athanasius_n pag._n 254._o s._n chrysostome_n 255._o chrysostome_n pag._n 255._o and_o theodoret_n who_o be_v injust_o depose_v from_o their_o bishopricke_n appeal_v to_o to_o julius_n innocentius_n and_o leo_n pope_n with_o manifest_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o the_o world_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v sect_n ii_o other_o of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n examine_v some_o eastern_a bishop_n who_o with_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perturbation_n of_o the_o people_n refuse_v to_o insert_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n into_o the_o dyptike_n or_o table_n of_o public_a record_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n excommunicate_v by_o innocentius_n with_o command_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o peace_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o they_o restore_v he_o this_o though_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o wrest_v it_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n among_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v alexander_z patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroë_n but_o these_o two_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n restore_v his_o name_n and_o perform_v what_o else_o innocentius_n in_o join_v they_o 11._o they_o spond_n anno_o 408._o n._n 11._o of_o these_o two_o you_o be_v silent_a they_o be_v not_o for_o your_o purpose_n but_o because_o some_o other_o stand_v out_o for_o a_o time_n you_o lay_v hold_v on_o they_o who_o upon_o due_a examination_n will_v prove_v as_o little_a to_o your_o purpose_n as_o the_o two_o you_o conceal_v your_o first_o example_n 258.259_o example_n pag._n 258.259_o be_v of_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o stand_v out_o until_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n but_o god_n that_o will_v not_o have_v a_o man_n so_o well_o deserve_v of_o his_o church_n to_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o excommunication_n ordain_v by_o his_o providence_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o theophilus_n can_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o body_n until_o a_o image_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o adore_v it_o do_v penance_n for_o his_o former_a error_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v restore_v himself_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n this_o his_o recantation_n be_v report_v by_o isidorus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o out_o of_o he_o by_o s._n john_n damascen_n fin_n damascen_n l._n 3._o the_o imag_n prope_fw-la fin_n wherefore_o your_o denial_n of_o it_o be_v a_o falsity_n frame_v without_o ground_n by_o yourself_o out_o a_o desire_n that_o theophilus_n shall_v have_v die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o live_v your_o second_o example_n 257._o example_n pag._n 257._o be_v of_o atticus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n persist_v sometime_o in_o his_o error_n but_o at_o length_n move_v by_o the_o example_n of_o theophilus_n and_o maximianus_n a_o bishop_n of_o macedonia_n make_v intercession_n for_o he_o 408._o he_o baron_fw-fr anno_o 408._o innocentius_n yield_v to_o absolve_v he_o provide_v that_o he_o will_v himself_o ask_v absolution_n and_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n hereupon_o atticus_n witness_n theodoret_n 34._o theodoret_n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 34._o send_v many_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o innocentius_n but_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o until_o partly_o by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o partly_o fear_v a_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n he_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o write_v letter_n to_o cyrill_v b._n of_o alexandria_n persuade_v he_o to_o do_v the_o like_a wherefore_o baronius_n true_o say_v 425._o say_v anno_fw-la 425._o that_o atticus_n restore_v chrysostome_n by_o the_o command_n and_o compulsion_n of_o innocentius_n and_o not_o by_o the_o distraction_n and_o tumultuosnesse_n of_o the_o people_n only_o as_o you_o comment_n for_o if_o he_o fear_v the_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v in_o regard_n the_o people_n be_v incense_v against_o he_o for_o not_o restore_v chrysostome_n as_o innocentius_n have_v command_v and_o if_o as_o you_o object_n 258._o object_n pag._n 258._o he_o call_v two_o bishop_n that_o have_v die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n schismatic_n he_o speak_v in_o passion_n see_v himself_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o know_v as_o you_o also_o do_v that_o he_o speak_v untrue_o for_o if_o it_o be_v think_v schism_n to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o say_v he_o do_v why_o do_v he_o so_o earnest_o desire_v and_o send_v so_o many_o embassage_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o her_o communion_n be_v be_v to_o make_v himself_o a_o schismatic_a nay_o be_v it_o not_o to_o free_v himself_o from_o schism_n why_o do_v not_o you_o imitate_v he_o your_o three_o example_n 259.260.261_o example_n pag._n 259.260.261_o be_v of_o cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o if_o for_o a_o time_n he_o obey_v not_o innocentius_n in_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n it_o be_v because_o he_o judge_v the_o command_n of_o innocentius_n to_o be_v against_o the_o canon_n witness_v his_o own_o word_n allege_v by_o yourself_o fin_n yourself_o pag._n 259._o fin_n but_o his_o judgement_n be_v erroneous_a and_o because_o what_o he_o do_v be_v out_o of_o a_o pious_a zeal_n as_o he_o conceive_v god_n reduce_v he_o by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n wherein_o he_o see_v himself_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o troop_n of_o saint_n that_o assist_v he_o therein_o but_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o he_o as_o one_o that_o have_v defend_v her_o honour_n against_o nestorius_n cyrill_fw-mi move_v with_o this_o vision_n condemn_v his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v chrysostome_n and_o call_v a_o provincial_a synod_n restore_v his_o name_n to_o the_o sacred_a record_n as_o the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v do_v to_o this_o you_o make_v two_o reply_n first_o 261._o first_o pag._n 261._o you_o call_v this_o a_o tale_n of_o nicephorus_n a_o fabulous_a author_n that_o live_v 800._o year_n after_o cyrills_n death_n but_o you_o wrong_v nicephorus_n for_o he_o report_v it_o out_o of_o nicetas_n that_o live_v almost_o 500_o year_n near_o cyril'_v time_n than_o himself_o and_o out_o of_o other_o ancient_a historian_n hoc_fw-la say_v he_o 28._o he_o l._n 14._o c._n 28._o in_o arcana_fw-la nicetae_n philosophi_fw-la historia_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la alios_fw-la inveni_fw-la 2._o you_o reply_v 261._o reply_v pag._n 261._o that_o cyril'_v restore_v chrysostome_n can_v any_o whit_n serve_v our_o turn_n because_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o by_o submission_n to_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o vision_n in_o a_o dream_n sure_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o a_o dream_n when_o you_o devise_v this_o answer_n for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n then_o that_o god_n by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n shall_v notify_v to_o cyril_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o resistance_n make_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o how_o great_a veneration_n do_v cyrill_n hold_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n he_o i_o say_v that_o be_v great_o exasperate_v against_o other_o bishop_n for_o the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n yet_o never_o let_v slip_n from_o his_o mouth_n any_o the_o least_o irreverent_a word_n against_o innocentius_n and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o he_o firm_o believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v when_o he_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n as_o vicar_n to_o celestine_n pope_n 1._o pope_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o without_o who_o order_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o nestorius_n so_o he_o execute_v on_o his_o person_n punctual_o what_o celestine_n command_v and_o final_o his_o belief_n be_v that_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o church_n see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o sect_n iii_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o acacius_n examine_v a_o cacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o simplicius_n pope_n profess_v that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n belong_v to_o he_o you_o answer_v 162._o answer_v pag._n 161._o fin_n 162._o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n be_v apply_v to_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o monarchical_a popedom_n this_o satisfi_v not_o for_o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n may_v be_v of_o
note_v the_o word_n in_o a_o distinct_a letter_n as_o the_o very_a phrase_n of_o his_o sanction_n manifest_o against_o his_o meaning_n for_o in_o that_o very_a sanction_n or_o decree_n he_o declare_v that_o the_o cause_n that_o move_v he_o to_o publish_v it_o be_v to_o disannul_v the_o attentat_n and_o innonation_n against_o the_o venerable_a church_n aswell_o those_o whereof_o the_o patriarch_n acacius_n have_v the_o priesthood_n as_o those_o place_v in_o other_o sundry_a province_n which_o second_o part_n about_o other_o church_n and_o province_n you_o 26●_n you_o pag._n 26●_n leave_v out_o in_o your_o marginal_a latin_a to_o deceive_v the_o reader_n in_o make_v he_o to_o think_v that_o constantinople_n be_v style_v absolute_o mother_n of_o all_o orthodoxal_a church_n that_o thereby_o you_o may_v more_o colourable_o elude_v the_o like_a title_n attribute_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o as_o nothing_o be_v relate_v or_o allege_v by_o you_o without_o fraudulency_n and_o falsehood_n sect_n iv_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n confute_v vincentius_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n agree_v in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n produce_v as_o witness_n felix_n and_o julius_n pope_n call_v they_o the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n and_o s._n cyprian_a and_o s._n ambrose_n the_o side_n of_o the_o world_n you_o to_o put_v off_o this_o testimony_n offer_v violence_n to_o vincentius_n his_o word_n 271._o word_n pag._n 271._o interpret_n he_o to_o mean_a by_o head_n of_o the_o world_n not_o the_o bishop_n but_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o know_v this_o to_o be_v a_o false_a comment_n you_o add_v as_o a_o second_o answer_n ibid._n answer_n ibid._n that_o if_o he_o understand_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n we_o must_v also_o believe_v that_o cyprian_a of_o carthage_n and_o ambrose_n of_o milan_n be_v always_o to_o continue_v the_o side_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o we_o deny_v for_o the_o church_n of_o charthage_n and_o milan_n have_v no_o promise_n from_o christ_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o they_o nor_o that_o their_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v as_o the_o roman_a have_v 2._o have_v see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 1._o &_o 2._o but_o to_o bolster_v up_o one_o falsity_n with_o another_o you_o say_v 271._o say_v pag._n 271._o if_o lyrinensis_n by_o head_n of_o the_o world_n understand_v the_o ecclesiastical_a orb_n he_o can_v mean_v no_o more_o then_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o western_a part_n thereof_o but_o this_o have_v be_v already_o disprove_v 3●_n disprove_v see_v chap._n 17._o sect_n 2._o chap._n 19_o sect_n 3._o chap._n 3●_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n greek_n and_o latin_a direct_o affirm_v that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o faithful_a whatsoever_o throughouth_n the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o his_o spiritual_a power_n extend_v even_o to_o they_o who_o the_o temporal_a force_n of_o rome_n can_v never_o subdue_v and_o to_o go_v no_o further_o for_o proof_n lyrinensis_n himself_o declare_v this_o 9.10.11_o this_o cap._n 9.10.11_o when_o he_o say_v that_o all_o priest_n in_o all_o place_n make_v resistance_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rebaptisation_n defend_v by_o agrippinus_n &_o cyprian_a but_o stephen_n b_o of_o rome_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n think_v it_o reason_n to_o excel_v all_o other_o in_o devotion_n towards_o the_o faith_n so_o much_o as_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o place_n and_o what_o else_o do_v he_o throughout_o that_o whole_a treatise_n but_o declaim_v against_o you_o who_o have_v bring_v novelty_n into_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o that_o ancient_a truth_n which_o you_o find_v in_o it_o when_o luther_n begin_v and_o when_o as_o caluin_n profess_v you_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a world_n sect_n v._o doctor_n morton_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o optatus_n contradict_v himself_o optatus_n prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o rome_n number_v they_o all_o from_o s._n peter_n to_o siricius_n that_o live_v in_o his_o time_n parmen_fw-la time_n l._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la and_o define_v all_o they_o to_o be_v schismatics_n and_o sinner_n that_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o only_a singular_a chair_n you_o answer_v 269._o answer_v pag._n 269._o that_o optatus_n by_o one_o chair_n mean_v not_o the_o particular_a chair_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n but_o the_o contrary_n be_v evident_a for_o he_o reckon_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o any_o other_o church_n but_o only_o in_o the_o roman_a and_o say_v parmen_fw-la say_v l._n 2._o cont_n parmen_fw-la that_o the_o episcopal_a chair_n be_v set_v up_o in_o rome_n for_o peter_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o that_o chair_n unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v to_o all_o and_o that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o against_o this_o only_a chair_n shall_v set_v up_o another_o what_o expression_n can_v be_v more_o effectual_a to_o prove_v you_o to_o be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n than_o these_o word_n of_o optatus_n who_o condemn_v the_o donatist_n ibid._n donatist_n ibid._n of_o bold_a and_o sacrilegious_a presumption_n for_o fight_v against_o this_o chair_n of_o peter_n as_o you_o do_v but_o you_o reply_v 269._o reply_v pag._n 269._o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v but_o a_o portion_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o therefore_o optatus_n object_v against_o the_o donatist_n their_o want_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n commend_v by_o s._n john_n in_o the_o revelation_n as_o well_o as_o with_o rome_n this_o you_o repeat_v afterward_o again_o 273._o again_o pag._n 273._o and_o have_v object_v the_o same_o before_o 230._o before_o pag._n 100_o 101._o 229._o 230._o your_o answer_n you_o have_v receive_v already_o 8._o already_o chap._n 15._o sect_n 9_o chap._n 34._o sect_n 8._o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o as_o he_o who_o shall_v object_v to_o rebel_n their_o want_n of_o union_n with_o their_o prince_n &_o his_o loyal_a subject_n do_v not_o thereby_o deny_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o prince_n over_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o his_o dominion_n so_o optatus_n object_v to_o the_o rebellious_a donatist_n the_o want_n of_o union_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o other_o orthodoxal_a church_n of_o asia_n subject_n to_o she_o do_v not_o thereby_o deny_v her_o authority_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n but_o you_o say_v 270._o say_v pag._n 270._o rome_n have_v depart_v from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolical_a profession_n as_o asia_n have_v do_v the_o departure_n from_o that_o must_v dissolve_v necessity_n of_o union_n with_o rome_n you_o grant_v then_o that_o the_o asian_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o apostolical_a profession_n as_o rome_n have_v do_v and_o rome_n if_o we_o believe_v you_o have_v fall_v so_o far_o that_o her_o doctrine_n be_v false_a impious_a heretical_a blasphemous_a damnable_a sacrilegious_a antichristian_a satanical_a etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la the_o asian_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o apostolical_a profession_n as_o rome_n have_v do_v their_o doctrine_n be_v also_o damnable_a heretical_a blasphemous_a satanical_a etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o afterward_o you_o say_v 407._o say_v pag._n 407._o the_o asian_o have_v continue_v visible_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o protestant_n stand_v in_o christian_a unity_n with_o they_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o when_o it_o be_v for_o your_o purpose_n the_o asian_o be_v true_o profess_v christian_n and_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o protestant_n stand_v in_o christian_a union_n with_o they_o and_o when_o it_o be_v not_o for_o your_o purpose_n they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolical_a profession_n as_o rome_n have_v do_v from_o whence_o it_o must_v follow_v that_o it_o be_v as_o unlawful_a to_o be_v in_o union_n with_o they_o as_o with_o rome_n who_o doctrine_n to_o you_o be_v heretical_a blasphemous_a etc._n etc._n sect_n vi_o other_o untruth_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v &_o his_o cavil_v against_o the_o title_n of_o holiness_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n you_o set_v down_o 273._o down_o pag._n 273._o this_o thesis_n as_o of_o bellarmine_n when_o the_o father_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v the_o word_n can_v be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v absolute_o and_o simple_o but_o with_o this_o cantion_n so_o long_o as_o the_o apostolical_a see_v continue_v at_o rome_n this_o be_v not_o a_o thesis_n of_o bellarmine_n but_o of_o a_o few_o other_o divines_n who_o hold_v that_o s._n peter_n fix_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n not_o by_o divine_a ordination_n but_o by_o his_o own_o
to_o go_v and_o siricius_n successor_n to_o damasus_n give_v to_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n power_n to_o judge_v his_o cause_n and_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o emperor_n favour_n he_o be_v not_o confirm_v in_o the_o patriarkship_n until_o at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o theophilus_n &_o chrysostome_n the_o pope_n have_v pardon_v his_o offence_n and_o he_o himself_o have_v send_v legate_n to_o obtain_v his_o confirmation_n if_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n what_o be_v and_o when_o you_o ask_v 297._o ask_v pag._n 297._o whether_o the_o christian_a church_n can_v be_v good_a catholic_n and_o in_o state_n of_o samation_n that_o communicate_v with_o flavianus_n at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o question_n spring_v from_o ignorance_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n be_v in_o agitation_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unlawful_a to_o communicate_v with_o he_o or_o with_o they_o that_o adhere_v either_o to_o he_o or_o paulinus_n and_o euagrius_n that_o for_o avoid_v of_o further_a schism_n the_o council_n of_o capua_n ordain_v that_o communion_n shall_v be_v deny_v to_o neither_o party_n sect_n xi_o doctor_n morton_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o doctrine_n charge_v ancient_a bishop_n with_o exercise_v act_n of_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n we_o have_v prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n because_o they_o have_v exercise_v act_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o great_a bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n you_o make_v your_o apposition_n as_o you_o say_v 297._o say_v pag._n 297._o by_o parallel_n and_o example_n of_o other_o bishop_n in_o antiquity_n execute_v act_n of_o confirm_v and_o depose_v bishop_n without_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v tacit_o to_o contradict_v yourself_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v confirm_v and_o depose_v bishop_n out_o of_o their_o own_o patriarkship_n to_o which_o you_o confine_v their_o authority_n but_o that_o they_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n our_o those_o bishop_n the_o falsity_n of_o this_o answer_n who_o see_v not_o for_o confirm_v and_o depose_n of_o bishop_n be_v a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o no_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o exercise_v out_o of_o the_o limit_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o therefore_o to_o say_v that_o either_o the_o pope_n or_o other_o bishop_n have_v execute_v act_n of_o confirm_v or_o depose_v bishop_n without_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n be_v to_o accuse_v they_o of_o pride_n and_o injustice_n in_o arrogate_a to_o themselves_o liberty_n to_o transgress_v the_o limit_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n execute_v act_n of_o authority_n where_o they_o have_v no_o right_n but_o as_o to_o deny_v the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o wrong_v they_o so_o to_o make_v good_a your_o denial_n of_o their_o authority_n you_o wrong_v the_o other_o bishop_n in_o who_o you_o instance_n the_o first_o be_v s._n athanasius_n b._n of_o alexandria_n who_o say_v you_o 300._o you_o pag._n 300._o appoint_v a_o bishop_n over_o the_o indian_n this_o bishop_n though_o you_o name_v he_o not_o be_v frumentius_n who_o have_v live_v among_o the_o indian_n and_o return_v from_o thence_o inform_v s._n athanasius_n of_o the_o great_a hope_n he_o conceive_v of_o their_o conversion_n to_o christ_n if_o preacher_n be_v send_v unto_o they_o the_o faith_n which_o frumentius_n preach_v be_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o he_o serve_v god_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o induce_v all_o christian_n that_o trade_v with_o the_o indian_n to_o do_v the_o like_a 2.3_o like_a ruffin_n l._n 2._o c._n 9_o sozom._n l._n 2._o c._n 2.3_o s._n athanasius_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o clergy_n create_v he_o bishop_n at_o alexandria_n and_o send_v he_o with_o other_o priest_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o indian_n and_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n where_o do_v you_o find_v in_o all_o this_o that_o s._n athanasius_n institute_v or_o confirm_v any_o bishop_n without_o the_o limit_n of_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n do_v he_o not_o consecrate_v frumentius_n bishop_n in_o his_o own_o church_n at_o alexandria_n do_v he_o send_v he_o to_o preach_v or_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n within_o the_o diocese_n of_o any_o other_o bishop_n no._n he_o send_v he_o to_o a_o barbarous_a people_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v then_o and_o be_v still_o lawful_a for_o any_o bishop_n in_o like_a case_n to_o do_v that_o be_v no_o where_o forbid_v nor_o contrary_a to_o any_o law_n divine_a or_o humane_a nor_o any_o way_n derogate_a from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n but_o most_o grateful_a to_o he_o who_o great_a desire_n be_v to_o reduce_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o who_o approbation_n for_o such_o enterprise_n be_v always_o just_o presume_v especial_o since_o thereby_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v increase_v and_o her_o jurisdiction_n enlarge_v as_o by_o the_o conversion_n of_o both_o indies_n in_o these_o late_a time_n we_o see_v your_o second_o example_n 300._o example_n pag._n 300._o be_v of_o theophilus_n b_o of_o alexandria_n labour_v to_o ordain_v chrysostome_n to_o be_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n for_o this_o you_o allege_v sozomen_n who_o say_v 2._o say_v l._n 8._o c._n 2._o that_o chrysostome_n be_v famous_a for_o his_o virtue_n &_o learning_n throughout_o all_o the_o roman_a empire_n by_o voice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n himself_o be_v choose_v archbishop_n of_o that_o imperial_a city_n but_o that_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n resist_v his_o ordination_n labour_v to_o promote_v to_o that_o dignity_n isidore_n a_o chaplain_n of_o his_o own_o this_o be_v the_o relation_n of_o sozomen_n why_o do_v you_o report_v it_o untrue_o your_o three_o example_n ibid._n example_n ibid._n be_v of_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n unto_o who_o say_v you_o meletius_n b._n of_o antioch_n and_o petrus_n of_o alexandria_n confirm_v the_o see_v and_o patriarkship_n of_o constantinople_n for_o this_o you_o bring_v theodoret_n 8._o theodoret_n l._n ●_o hist._n c._n 8._o and_o gregorius_n presbyter_n theodoret_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o only_o that_o albeit_o the_o canon_n to_o prevent_v ambition_n forbid_v the_o remove_n of_o bishop_n from_o one_o see_v to_o another_o yet_o the_o opinion_n of_o meletius_n be_v that_o in_o those_o circumstance_n gregory_n may_v hold_v the_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a damage_n that_o church_n sustain_v for_o want_v of_o a_o bishop_n in_o so_o dangerous_a a_o time_n but_o that_o meletius_n design_v or_o ordain_v he_o bishop_n theodoret_n say_v it_o not_o nor_o be_v it_o true_a for_o he_o be_v create_v bishop_n by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o theodoret_n in_o that_o chapter_n mention_v and_o the_o same_o be_v verify_v by_o other_o historian_n gregory_n say_v socrates_n 5._o socrates_n l._n 5._o c._n 5._o by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o many_o bishop_n be_v transfer_v from_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o city_n of_o nazianzum_fw-la to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o constantinople_n and_o sozomen_n 17._o sozomen_n l._n 6._o c._n 17._o gregory_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o many_o bishop_n be_v design_v b._n of_o constantinople_n for_o no_o catholic_a bishop_n nor_o church_n of_o orthodox_n people_n be_v in_o that_o city_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v whole_o explode_v how_o then_o can_v you_o say_v that_o meletius_n and_o petrus_n of_o alexandria_n confirm_v unto_o gregory_n nazianzen_n the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n especial_o since_o theodoret_n in_o that_o very_a chapter_n express_v the_o name_n of_o diverse_a of_o those_o bishop_n which_o in_o the_o general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n confer_v that_o dignity_n on_o he_o and_o repress_v the_o insolency_n of_o maximus_n who_o timothy_n b._n of_o alexandria_n will_v have_v intrude_v into_o that_o see_n your_o four_o example_n 300._o example_n pag._n 300._o be_v moses_n who_o be_v a_o man_n famous_a for_o miracle_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o certain_a exile_n it_o be_v true_a for_o the_o roman_n upon_o agreement_n of_o peace_n with_o mavia_n queen_n of_o the_o saracen_n who_o desire_v to_o have_v moses_n create_a bishop_n of_o her_o nation_n bring_v he_o to_o alexandria_n to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o lucius_n than_o patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n who_o be_v a_o arian_n heretic_n moses_n refuse_v to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o he_o and_o therefore_o the_o arian_n be_v enforce_v to_o permit_v he_o to_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a
thing_n uncertain_a many_o think_v it_o to_o be_v of_o damasus_n and_o his_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_a for_o the_o epistle_n speak_v of_o bonosus_n a_o archheretic_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o judge_n appoint_v in_o they_o council_n of_o capua_n which_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o time_n of_o damasus_n but_o of_o siricius_n successor_n to_o damasus_n it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a that_o the_o request_n of_o bovosus_fw-la which_o you_o object_v out_o of_o this_o epistle_n to_o have_v his_o cause_n hear_v again_o can_v not_o be_v to_o damasus_n his_o first_o condemnation_n be_v not_o until_o after_o damasus_n his_o death_n when_o you_o can_v show_v this_o epistle_n to_o be_v of_o damasus_n you_o shall_v receive_v a_o answer_n which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o give_v you_o now_o if_o i_o list_v to_o spend_v time_n in_o refute_v your_o tedious_a discourse_n of_o rack_a the_o verb_n competit_fw-la to_o a_o strict_a sense_n and_o which_o not_o one_o but_o many_o way_n be_v deficient_a as_o all_o your_o argument_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v your_o addition_n l._n addition_n pag._n 318._o mark_fw-mi l._n that_o if_o the_o epistle_n be_v not_o of_o damasus_n it_o be_v certain_o of_o some_o pope_n and_o that_o all_o hold_v it_o so_o be_v affirm_v by_o you_o gratis_o and_o as_o easy_o deny_v by_o i_o chap._n xl._n whether_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n sect_n i._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n the_o nine_o first_o section_n of_o your_o fourtenth_fw-mi chapter_n you_o spend_v in_o prove_v that_o the_o grecian_n egyptian_n aethiopian_n assyrian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n and_o other_o remote_a nation_n at_o this_o day_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o be_v accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n the_o foundation_n of_o your_o whole_a discourse_n you_o lay_v in_o these_o word_n 330._o word_n pag._n 330._o whatsoever_o christian_n have_v not_o ruinate_v any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o save_v faith_n set_v down_o in_o our_o ancient_a creed_n and_o be_v unite_v unto_o the_o true_a catholic_a head_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n by_o a_o live_a faith_n all_o protestant_n esteem_v they_o as_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o notwithstanding_o diverse_a their_o more_o tolerable_a error_n and_o superstition_n to_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n albeit_o no_o way_n subject_a or_o subordinate_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n these_o be_v your_o word_n which_o contain_v in_o themselves_o open_a implication_n namely_o that_o one_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_a head_n christ_n jesus_n by_o a_o live_a faith_n and_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o to_o be_v none_o else_o but_o the_o roman_a and_o that_o out_o of_o she_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n have_v be_v already_o prove_v 2.3.4_o prove_v chap._n 1._o sect_n 2.3.4_o from_o this_o false_a principle_n you_o deduce_v that_o the_o grecian_n asian_o egyptian_n assyrian_n aethiopian_n african_n melchites_n russian_n and_o armenian_n notwithstanding_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n true_o profess_v christian_n church_n 379._o church_n pag._n 379._o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n init_fw-la church_n pag._n 406._o fin_n 407._o init_fw-la faithful_a christian_n profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 417._o father_n pag._n 417._o &_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o rail_v bitter_o at_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o deny_v the_o same_o but_o how_o great_a ignorance_n and_o impiety_n you_o show_v and_o how_o many_o most_o shameful_a untruth_n you_o utter_v in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o declare_v some_o of_o they_o i_o shall_v present_v to_o the_o reader_n view_v and_o to_o proceed_v methodical_o i_o will_v reduce_v what_o i_o be_o to_o say_v to_o two_o head_n 1._o i_o will_v prove_v that_o as_o the_o christian_n of_o these_o remote_a nation_n ancient_o be_v so_o many_o of_o they_o at_o this_o day_n be_v accordant_a in_o belief_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o as_o to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 2._o that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o these_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n be_v not_o of_o one_o belief_n or_o communion_n with_o protestant_n but_o whole_o dissent_v from_o they_o holding_z most_o blasphemous_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n acknowledge_v for_o such_o by_o protestant_n themselves_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o you_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v faithful_a christian_n of_o the_o same_o belief_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n charge_v the_o ancient_a father_n with_o blasphemous_a heresy_n and_o make_v they_o incapable_a of_o salvation_n sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o grecian_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o successive_a time_n agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o particular_o at_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o afterward_o in_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n endeavour_v to_o give_v to_o their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o place_n of_o dignity_n in_o the_o church_n next_o after_o the_o pope_n and_o before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n we_o acknowledge_v but_o that_o they_o seek_v thereby_o to_o exempt_v themselves_o from_o their_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v effectual_o disprove_v 4._o disprove_v chap._n 17._o sect_n 5._o chap._n 19_o sect_n 4._o i_o speak_v not_o this_o to_o deny_v that_o ancient_o there_o be_v of_o the_o grecian_n many_o heretic_n which_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o by_o her_o authority_n be_v condemn_v and_o that_o eight_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o particular_a as_o also_o eutyches_n a_o archheretic_n of_o the_o same_o city_n be_v anathematise_v and_o east_n out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o heresy_n and_o whereas_o the_o western_a church_n by_o the_o example_n and_o diligence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v preserve_v from_o heresy_n the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n new_a heresy_n daily_o spring_v up_o be_v so_o pitiful_o tear_v and_o ten_o in_o piece_n that_o s._n hierome_n complain_v thereof_o to_o pope_n damasus_n say_v 57_o say_v ep._n 57_o because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o itself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o the_o people_n tear_n in_o little_a morsel_n the_o undevided_a coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v on_o high_a and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pit_n that_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v where_o the_o seal_a fountain_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n be_v i_o have_v therefore_o think_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v govern_v sometime_o by_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o acknowledge_v subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o sometime_o by_o heretic_n that_o oppose_v her_o authority_n until_o at_o length_n photius_n have_v injust_o drive_v ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n from_o his_o see_n and_o intrude_v himself_o into_o his_o place_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n often_o excommunicate_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o and_o john_n the_o eight_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o maintain_v his_o injust_a title_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o their_o obedience_n and_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n to_o persevere_v in_o that_o separation_n cavilled_a at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o write_v against_o it_o and_o the_o greek_n follow_v he_o in_o this_o error_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a man_n church_n yet_o not_o so_o but_o that_o they_o have_v often_o eleven_o time_n say_v s._n antoninus_n 23._o antoninus_n hist._n par_fw-fr 2._o tit_n 22._o c._n 23._o acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o reconcile_v themselves_o to_o she_o and_o especial_o thrice_o in_o most_o solemn_a manner_n in_o three_o several_a counsel_n of_o barium_n in_o apulia_n of_o lion_n in_o france_n and_o of_o florence_n in_o tuscany_n but_o still_o return_v to_o their_o error_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o dog_n to_o their_o vomit_n almighty_a god_n punish_v they_o with_o a_o heavy_a hand_n deliver_v they_o up_o to_o a_o miserable_a captivity_n &_o servitude_n under_o the_o turk_n and_o that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o
they_o sect._n 3._o pag._n 182._o doctor_n morton_n rail_v against_o the_o inquisition_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 187._o chap._n xv._o of_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a &_o the_o judgement_n of_o diverse_a father_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 195._o that_o the_o word_n catholic_a prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n the_o judgement_n of_o s._n hierome_n concern_v the_o church_n catholic_a sect._n 2._o pag._n 198._o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n gregory_n concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o his_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 201._o s._n dionyse_v his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 302._o s._n ignatius_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 5._o p._n 303._o s._n irenaeus_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 6._o p._n 304._o tertullian_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 308._o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 8._o pag._n 311._o other_o observation_n of_o doctor_n morton_n out_o of_o antiquity_n answer_v sect._n 9_o pag._n 312._o chap._n xvi_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n and_o church_n of_o rome_n pag._n 313._o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n against_o the_o precedent_a doctrine_n answer_v sect._n 1._o pag._n 318._o chap._n xvii_o the_o second_o general_a council_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n pag._n 324._o by_o what_o authority_n this_o council_n be_v call_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v primacy_n of_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n or_o of_o order_n only_o sect._n 2._o pag._n 328._o whether_o the_o name_n of_o brother_n colleague_n and_o fellow-minister_n which_o the_o pope_n give_v to_o other_o bishop_n and_o they_o to_o he_o argue_v they_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n with_o he_o sect._n 3._o pag._n 330._o a_o frivolous_a cavil_n of_o doctor_n morton_n against_o bellarmine_n answer_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 335._o of_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o second_o council_n general_a make_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 336._o that_o no_o canon_n of_o any_o council_n can_v be_v of_o force_n until_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a sect._n 6._o pag._n 338._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n know_v this_o canon_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 340._o chap._n xviii_o the_o three_o council_n general_a be_v the_o first_o of_o ephesus_n believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n over_o all_o bishop_n pag._n 343._o of_o the_o deposition_n and_o condemnation_n of_o nestorius_n by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n celestine_n and_o whether_o the_o style_n of_o ancient_a pope_n be_v to_o command_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 351._o of_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n treat_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 352._o whether_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o general_a council_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 353._o chap._n xix_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n pag._n 355._o that_o leo_n pope_n call_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o his_o authority_n and_o preside_v in_o it_o by_o his_o legate_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o leo_n pope_n depose_v eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n &_o restore_v theodoret_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 356._o whether_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n argue_v in_o he_o no_o more_o but_o a_o general_a care_n of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o belong_v to_o every_o bishop_n and_o to_o every_o christian_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 360._o whether_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v give_v to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n privilege_n equal_a with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 362._o falsification_n and_o untruth_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v &_o his_o argument_n answer_v sect._n 5._o pag._n 367._o chap._n xx._n the_o five_o council_n general_a believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n p._n 375._o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n and_o contradiction_n concern_v this_o council_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n further_o discover_v and_o his_o falsify_v of_o binius_fw-la sect._n 2._o pag._n 377._o of_o the_o matter_n treat_v in_o the_o five_o general_a council_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 381._o doctor_n mortons_n gloss_n upon_o the_o word_n obedience_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 383._o chap._n xxi_o of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n pag._n 385._o that_o it_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o fixth_a council_n condemn_v honoriu_n pope_n as_o a_o heretic_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 387._o chap._n xxii_o of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o general_a counsel_n pag._n 391._o that_o these_o two_o counsel_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v the_o eight_o general_a council_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 392._o whether_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n condemn_v the_o saturday-fast_a allow_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 394._o chap._n xxiii_o doctor_n morton_n defend_v the_o heretical_a custom_n of_o the_o asian_a bishop_n pag._n 397._o chap._n xxiv_o doctor_n morton_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n defend_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o rebaptization_n pag._n 402._o chap._n xxu._n other_o argument_n of_o doctor_n morton_n out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n answer_v pag._n 408._o chap._n xxvi_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pag._n 411._o chap._n xxvii_o appeal_v to_o rome_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o african_a council_n which_o be_v the_o six_o of_o carthage_n p._n 419._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n that_o the_o nicen_n canon_n be_v more_o than_o twenty_o in_o number_n and_o that_o the_o canon_n concern_v appeal_n to_o rome_n be_v true_a canon_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 421._o whether_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o canon_n for_o appeal_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o have_v be_v forgery_n in_o pope_n zosimus_n to_o allege_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o sardican_a council_n for_o a_o canon_n of_o nice_a sect._n 3._o pag._n 426._o untruth_n and_o falsification_n of_o d._n morton_n discover_v and_o his_o objection_n answer_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 429._o whether_o this_o controversy_n of_o appeal_n wrought_v in_o the_o african_n any_o separation_n of_o communion_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 437._o chap._n xxviii_o whether_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n not_o celebrate_v easter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n separate_v from_o her_o communion_n p._n 450._o chap._n xxix_o of_o the_o great_a reverence_n of_o ancient_a christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n to_o the_o pope_n pag._n 454._o chap._n xxx_o whether_o christian_a emperor_n have_v invest_v themselves_o in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n pag._n 461._o constantine_n the_o great_a invest_v not_o himself_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n doctor_n morton_n second_o example_n of_o theodosius_n examine_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 469._o doctor_n morton_n three_o instance_n of_o theodosius_n the_o young_a and_o honorius_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 471._o doctor_n morton_n four_o instance_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n examine_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 473._o doctor_n morton_n five_o instance_n of_o justinian_n examine_v sect._n 5._o pag._n 475._o chap._n xxxi_o of_o the_o authority_n and_o place_n of_o emperor_n in_o counsel_n pag._n 480._o chap._n xxxii_o whether_o pope_n have_v challenge_v civil_a subjection_n from_o emperor_n and_o king_n christian_n and_o heathen_a pag._n 483._o doctor_n morton_n first_o argument_n out_o of_o innocent_a the_o three_o examine_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n doctor_n morton_n second_o argument_n out_o of_o hieremy_n the_o prophet_n examine_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 486._o doctor_n morton_n three_o argument_n out_o of_o the_o example_n of_o diverse_a pope_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 490._o doctor_n morton_n contradict_v himself_o sect._n 4._o pag._n 494._o chap._n xxxiii_o
doctor_n mortons_n late_a sermon_n preach_v in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n of_o durham_n answer_v pag._n 495._o the_o sense_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n which_o doctor_n morton_n take_v for_o his_o text_n declare_v sect._n 1._o pag._n 496._o ancient_a pope_n object_v and_o falfify_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 2_o pag._n 501._o other_o father_n and_o catholic_a author_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 507._o doctor_n morton_n slaunder_v vrban_a pope_n and_o with_o he_o all_o catholic_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 510._o doctor_n morton_n object_v the_o bull_n of_o maundy-thursday_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 512._o other_o slanderous_a accusation_n of_o doctor_n morton_n answer_v sect._n 6._o pag._n 514._o the_o same_o matter_n prosecute_v sect._n 7._o pag._n 517._o chap._n xxxiv_o doctor_n mortons_n doctrine_n condemn_v the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o god_n pag._n 522._o s._n policarpe_a object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n s._n cyprian_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 523._o s._n athanasius_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 525._o s._n basils_n belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v and_o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n answer_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 528._o whether_o s._n hilary_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n sect._n 5._o p._n 533._o s._n hieroms_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o sect._n 6._o pag._n 536._o s._n ambrose_n his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 545._o s._n augustine_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o sect._n 8_o pag._n 552._o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o aries_n acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 558._o chap._n xxxv_o of_o title_n attribute_v to_o the_o pope_n p._n 561._o chap._n xxxvi_o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n discover_v pa._n 571._o some_o of_o his_o answer_n examine_v sect._n 1._o ibid._n other_o of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n examine_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 574_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o acacius_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 577._o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n confute_v sect._n 4._o pag._n 581._o doctor_n morton_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o optatus_n contradict_v himself_o sect._n 5._o pag._n 582._o other_o untruth_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v &_o his_o cavil_v against_o the_o title_n of_o holiness_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 583._o chap._n xxxvii_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n pag._n 587._o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n live_v within_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n sect._n 1._o pag._n 588._o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o the_o second_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 592._o chap._n xxxviii_o the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v by_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n pag._n 600._o the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n prove_v by_o the_o institution_n &_o confirmation_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o pall_n or_o mantle_n grant_v to_o archbishop_n sect._n 1._o p._n 601._o a_o shift_n of_o doctor_n morton_n reject_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 604._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o institute_v and_o confirm_v bishop_n prove_v by_o example_n sect._n 3_o pag._n 605._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n without_o a_o council_n prove_v by_o example_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 608._o the_o pope_n power_n of_o restore_a bishop_n without_o a_o council_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 611._o doctor_n morton_n to_o cross_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o restore_a bishop_n depose_v take_v part_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o justify_v their_o impious_a proceed_n against_o s._n athanasius_n &_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 612._o other_o passage_n of_o doctor_n morton_n examine_v sect._n 7._o pa._n 618._o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v excommunication_n and_o of_o heretic_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n sect._n 8._o p._n 621._o adrian_z and_o nicolas_n pope_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 623._o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o flavianns_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n sect._n 10._o pag._n 624._o doctor_n morton_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o doctrine_n charge_v ancient_a bishop_n which_o exercise_v act_n of_o authority_n out_o of_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n sect._n 11._o pag._n 631._o chap._n thirty-nine_o of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n pag._n 635._o whether_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o general_a council_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n other_o objection_n of_o doctor_n morton_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n answer_v sect._n 2._o pag._n 637._o example_n of_o innocent_a appellant_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 638._o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v the_o antiquity_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n from_o remote_a nation_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 639._o that_o s._n athanasius_n appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o theodoret_n to_o leo_n as_o to_o absolute_a judge_n and_o that_o by_o their_o authority_n both_o of_o they_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o church_n sect._n 5._o p._n 641._o that_o s._n chrysoftome_n appeal_v to_o innocentius_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o church_n of_o constantinople_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 643._o that_o flavianus_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 648._o of_o nilus_n equal_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o right_n of_o appeal_v sect._n 8._o pag._n 650._o the_o rest_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n argument_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n sect._n 9_o pag._n 653._o chap._n xl._n whether_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n pag._n 654._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o grecian_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o successive_a time_n agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o particular_o at_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 655._o that_o many_o of_o the_o grecian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n and_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n sect._n 3._o pag._n 662._o of_o the_o egyptian_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 663._o of_o the_o aethiopian_n sect._n 5._o pag._n 664._o of_o the_o armenian_n sect._n 6._o pag._n 665._o of_o the_o russian_n sect._n 7._o pag._n 666._o of_o the_o aslyrian_o sect._n 8._o ibid._n of_o the_o antiochian_o sect._n 9_o pag._n 668._o of_o the_o african_n sect._n 10_o pag._n 669._o of_o the_o asian_o sect._n 11._o ibid._n chap._n xxxxi_n that_o in_o the_o forename_a country_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o agree_v in_o faith_n &_o communion_n with_o protestant_n pag._n 669._o the_o grecian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n and_o doctor_n morton_n falsifi_v catholic_a author_n to_o excuse_v they_o sect._n 1._o pag._n 670._o of_o the_o lutheran_n of_o germany_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o sect._n 2._o pag._n 674._o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n produce_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n examine_v sect._n 3._o pag._n 678._o the_o egyptian_n aethiopian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n african_n and_o asian_o which_o call_v themselves_o christian_n and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 679._o chap._n xxxxii._n doctor_n mortons_n plea_n for_o his_o protestant_a church_n pag._n 683._o the_o small_a extent_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n prove_v she_o not_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n in_o doctrine_n sect._n 2._o pag._n 686._o doctor_n mortons_n pretend_a purity_n of_o manner_n in_o his_o protestant_a church_n ect_fw-la 3._o pag._n 687._o that_o protestant_n by_o schism_n have_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect._n 4._o pag._n 688._o chap._n xxxxiii_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n compare_v to_o the_o body_n thereof_o pag._n 691._o whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o council_n sect._n 1._o ibid._n whether_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o this_o
those_o monstrous_a title_n wherewith_o you_o slander_v our_o doctrine_n most_o fit_o agree_v to_o your_o own_o deliver_v in_o your_o grand_a imposture_n but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o join_v issue_n with_o you_o concern_v the_o particular_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o examine_v brief_o in_o general_a whether_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v live_v upon_o earth_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o now_o to_o be_v most_o glorious_a saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v of_o your_o belief_n concern_v the_o roman_a church_n or_o of_o we_o for_o they_o be_v light_n of_o the_o world_n 5.15_o world_n math._n 5.15_o who_o god_n have_v raise_v in_o all_o age_n and_o place_v on_o the_o candlestick_n of_o his_o church_n to_o enlighten_v our_o way_n and_o deliver_v unto_o we_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o his_o holy_a word_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v like_o child_n waver_v and_o carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o heretical_a 4.14_o heretical_a ephef_fw-fr 4.14_o doctrine_n i_o suppose_v that_o as_o there_o be_v no_o wiseman_n who_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v rank_v among_o they_o in_o the_o next_o world_n and_o to_o stand_v with_o they_o at_o the_o late_a day_n so_o there_o be_v none_o that_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v in_o this_o world_n a_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o a_o professor_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o bring_v they_o to_o that_o happiness_n especial_o know_v as_o we_o do_v that_o there_o be_v burr_n one_o church_n in_o which_o and_o one_o faith_n by_o which_o man_n may_v be_v save_v for_o to_o think_v that_o so_o many_o man_n so_o eminent_o learn_v and_o that_o use_v so_o great_a mean_n both_o of_o study_n and_o prayer_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heaven_n have_v all_o err_v not_o live_v in_o the_o true_a church_n which_o lead_v to_o salvation_n but_o in_o a_o err_a synagogue_n that_o lead_v to_o everlasting_a ruin_n and_o damnation_n be_v a_o conceit_n that_o i_o think_v no_o christian_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a no_o prudent_a man_n can_v harbour_v in_o his_o breast_n which_o yet_o he_o must_v do_v that_o will_v credit_v your_o doctrine_n as_o the_o ensue_a proof_n will_v declare_v sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v true_o call_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n although_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a church_n whether_o we_o regard_v the_o etymology_n or_o the_o most_o proper_a and_o usual_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a signify_v not_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o the_o universal_a spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o withal_o it_o be_v true_a that_o every_o particular_a church_n may_v in_o some_o sense_n be_v call_v catholic_a for_o as_o every_o particular_a orthodox_n man_n have_v the_o denomination_n of_o a_o catholic_a man_n because_o he_o profess_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n so_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n both_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o other_o orthodoxal_a may_v be_v call_v catholic_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o christian_n of_o smyrna_n write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o pontus_n 14._o pontus_n euseb_n l._n 4._o histor_n c._n 14._o address_v their_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o philomelium_n and_o to_o all_o other_o the_o holy_a &_o catholic_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n constantine_n atha●asij_fw-la constantine_n in_o apolog_n 2._o atha●asij_fw-la the_o emperor_n call_v the_o church_n of_o athanasius_n the_o catholic_a church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o it_o preserve_v entire_a while_o many_o other_o church_n of_o egypt_n be_v infect_v with_o arianisme_n and_o so_o likewise_o 4._o likewise_o cont._n ep_v fund_z c_o 4._o s._n augustine_n with_o who_o agree_v 1._o agree_v epist._n 1._o pacianus_n and_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n 18._o jerusalem_n cateche_n 18._o say_v that_o if_o a_o stranger_n come_v into_o a_o city_n infect_v with_o heresy_n and_o inquire_v for_o the_o catholic_a church_n even_o the_o heretic_n themselves_o will_v not_o direct_v he_o to_o any_o church_n of_o they_o but_o to_o a_o church_n in_o which_o catholic_n meet_v to_o serve_v god_n in_o this_o sense_n as_o other_o particular_a church_n so_o also_o the_o roman_a even_o as_o she_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n limit_v to_o the_o diocese_n of_o rome_n may_v have_v the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_a church_n but_o when_o we_o say_v no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n for_o catholic_n of_o other_o diocese_n may_v be_v save_v aswell_o as_o of_o the_o roman_a but_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o understand_v the_o universal_a church_n comprehend_v both_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n and_o all_o other_o particular_a church_n that_o profess_v subjection_n to_o she_o follow_v her_o doctrine_n and_o embrace_v her_o communion_n for_o all_o these_o by_o adherence_n to_o she_o and_o union_n with_o she_o make_v one_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o one_o holy_a catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n of_o which_o she_o be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o rest_n member_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v several_a dignity_n unite_v in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v bishop_n his_o jurisdiction_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o town_n within_o her_o territory_n of_o which_o the_o roman_a diocese_n consist_v as_o he_o be_v archbishop_n he_o have_v subject_a unto_o he_o some_o few_o other_o the_o chief_a of_o which_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ostia_n as_o he_o be_v patriarch_n the_o extent_n of_o his_o authority_n be_v over_o all_o the_o western_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o final_o as_o he_o be_v pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o chief_a vicar_n or_o lieutenant_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n he_o be_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n wheresoever_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v which_o therefore_o be_v absolute_o and_o without_o limitation_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o this_o transcendent_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v right_o style_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o therefore_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o pastor_n as_o people_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n owe_v subjection_n and_o obedience_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n and_o father_n of_o all_o bishop_n so_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n now_o that_o not_o only_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n but_o also_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o the_o roman_a as_o head_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o member_n be_v likewise_o right_o and_o in_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n style_v the_o roman_a church_n i_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n say_v 17._o say_v de_fw-fr percato_fw-la orig_n l._n 2._o c._n 17._o that_o against_o the_o pelagian_o not_o only_o the_o counsel_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o also_o universam_fw-la romanam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la the_o whole_a roman_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v most_o just_o incense_v where_o by_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o understand_v the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n as_o by_o the_o roman_a empire_n he_o understand_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o roman_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n and_o the_o same_o i_o prove_v by_o example_n for_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o jewish_a people_n or_o the_o jewish_a church_n we_o understand_v not_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n only_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o tribe_n that_o be_v join_v therewith_o s._n john_n baptist_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n s._n paul_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o benjamin_n and_o that_o holy_a widow_n anna_n mention_v by_o s._n luke_n 2.36_o luke_n cap._n 2.36_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o aser_n and_o yet_o they_o all_o be_v right_o call_v jew_n part_n of_o the_o jewish_a people_n and_o member_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o adherence_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o the_o principal_a tribe_n which_o be_v that_o of_o juda_n likewise_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v not_o comprehend_v the_o natural_a greek_n only_o for_o
the_o muscovite_n and_o russian_n though_o they_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nation_n and_o have_v their_o service_n in_o a_o different_a tongue_n be_v yet_o esteem_v and_o say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n because_o they_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n and_o what_o more_o usual_a to_o protestant_n themselves_n then_o to_o call_v catholic_n in_o what_o part_n of_o the_o world_n soever_o they_o live_v romanist_n and_o last_o to_o confirm_v this_o manner_n of_o speech_n with_o secular_a aswell_o as_o with_o ecclesiastical_a example_n who_o know_v not_o that_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o all_o writer_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v not_o understand_v the_o city_n and_o territory_n of_o rome_n only_o but_o also_o whatsoever_o other_o province_n subject_a to_o the_o roman_a emperor_n though_o never_o so_o distant_a from_o rome_n and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n when_o we_o say_v that_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o understand_v not_o the_o particular_a diocese_n of_o rome_n but_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n which_o make_v one_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n of_o which_o the_o roman_a be_v head_n and_o the_o rest_n member_n subject_a to_o she_o and_o because_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o all_o bishop_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o roman_a diocese_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n in_o regard_n whereof_o she_o may_v in_o a_o sense_n not_o improper_a be_v call_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o in_o a_o fleet_n of_o galley_n the_o chief_a galley_n which_o have_v command_v over_o the_o rest_n though_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a galley_n be_v call_v the_o general_n and_o in_o a_o army_n of_o man_n though_o the_o chief_a commander_n be_v a_o particular_a man_n and_o as_o a_o captain_n have_v a_o particular_a company_n of_o his_o own_o yet_o he_o be_v right_o call_v the_o general_n and_o as_o none_o can_v be_v a_o soldier_n of_o that_o fleet_n of_o galley_n unless_o he_o be_v in_o the_o chief_a galley_n or_o in_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n subordinate_a to_o she_o nor_o a_o soldier_n of_o that_o army_n unless_o he_o be_v of_o the_o general_n particular_a company_n or_o of_o some_o of_o the_o rest_n subject_n to_o he_o so_o none_o can_v be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n unless_o he_o be_v of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o some_o other_o subject_a to_o she_o and_o from_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o albeit_o every_o orthodox_n church_n may_v be_v call_v a_o catholic_a church_n and_o every_o orthodox_n man_n a_o catholic_a man_n yet_o this_o denomination_n agree_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n causal_o and_o original_o and_o to_o other_o man_n and_o church_n participative_o in_o regard_v whereof_o s._n cyprim_n 8._o cyprim_n l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o fall_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o original_n of_o sacerdotal_a unity_n from_o whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o every_o particular_a person_n that_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v right_o style_v catholic_a so_o all_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o her_o communion_n be_v schismatik_n or_o heretic_n sect_n iii_o that_o in_o the_o language_n of_o antiquity_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v two_o name_n signify_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o constant_a belief_n of_o all_o orthodox_n father_n and_o people_n aswell_o of_o the_o primitive_a as_o of_o the_o successive_a age_n since_o christ_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v and_o that_o out_o of_o she_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o salvation_n the_o whole_a scope_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n be_v to_o impugn_v this_o truth_n and_o the_o whole_a drift_n and_o subject_n of_o this_o apology_n shall_v be_v to_o maintain_v &_o defend_v the_o same_o truth_n and_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v have_v some_o little_a taste_n or_o prelibation_n of_o what_o shall_v be_v more_o large_o prove_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o in_o the_o frontispiece_n of_o this_o work_n the_o belief_n of_o some_o of_o the_o most_o famous_a and_o renown_a father_n of_o god_n church_n not_o in_o i_o but_o in_o their_o own_o clear_a express_a and_o unanswerable_a word_n first_o therefore_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o martion_n who_o have_v present_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v 4._o say_v cont._n marcio_n l._n 4._o c._n 4._o martion_n give_v his_o money_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o reject_v both_o it_o and_o he_o when_o he_o fall_v into_o heresy_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o that_o ancient_a learned_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o primate_n of_o africa_n s._n cyprian_n 2._o cyprian_n l._n 4._o ep_n 2._o who_o express_v to_o antonianus_n how_o great_a joy_n he_o conceive_v to_o understand_v that_o forsake_v the_o novatians_n he_o whole_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n adhere_v to_o cornelius_n pope_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n you_o write_v say_v he_o to_o antonianus_n that_o i_o will_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o your_o letter_n to_o cornelius_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v understand_v that_o you_o communicate_v with_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o speak_v to_o cornelius_n himself_o 8._o himself_o l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o and_o call_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o root_n and_o original_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o we_o that_o letter_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o all_o our_o colleague_n at_o rome_n that_o they_o shall_v firm_o embrace_v your_o communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o unity_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n hereby_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o s._n cyprian_n language_n and_o belief_n to_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n and_o the_o same_o appear_v by_o those_o african_n who_o novatus_fw-la have_v seduce_v to_o forsake_v cornelius_n the_o true_a p●pe_n and_o adhere_v to_o novatian_n the_o antipope_n for_o perceave_v that_o by_o fall_v from_o cornelius_n they_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o become_v schismatic_o they_o acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o make_v their_o recantation_n in_o these_o word_n report_v and_o commend_v by_o s._n cyprian_a 46._o cyprian_a ep._n 46._o we_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a catholic_a church_n choose_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o confess_v our_o error_n we_o have_v be_v seduce_v we_o have_v be_v circumvent_v by_o perfidiousnes_n &_o captious_a loquacity_n for_o although_o we_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v communication_n with_o a_o man_n novatian_n the_o antipope_n that_o be_v a_o schismatic_a and_o a_o heretic_n yet_o our_o mind_n be_v always_o sincere_a in_o the_o church_n for_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o lord_n christ_n who_o we_o have_v confess_v and_o one_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o these_o word_n s._n cyprian_n as_o you_o see_v together_o with_o those_o his_o african_n call_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o p●ofesseth_v that_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o he_o be_v to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o same_o appear_v by_o cornelius_n himself_o who_o speak_v of_o novatus_fw-la that_o have_v set_v up_o novatian_n a_o antipope_n in_o opposition_n to_o he_o say_v 35._o say_v apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 6._o hist_o c._n 35._o novatus_fw-la forsooth_o will_v have_v we_o to_o think_v that_o he_o have_v forget_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n where_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o understand_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o the_o same_o appear_v by_o s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la fratris_fw-la satyri_fw-la who_o report_v how_o his_o holy_a brother_n satyrus_n in_o his_o return_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v cast_v by_o shipwreck_n on_o the_o island_n of_o sardinia_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o luciferian_o and_o desire_v to_o communicate_v with_o none_o but_o catholic_n call_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o inquire_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v say_v s._n ambrose_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o s._n augustine_n have_v allege_v a_o sentence_n of_o s._n
can._n pag._n 199._o the_o same_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n which_o venerable_a bede_n give_v of_o oswin_n king_n of_o northumberland_n who_o by_o mean_n of_o a_o famous_a disputation_n hold_v between_o colman_n a_o scottish_a abbot_n and_o wilfrid_n a_o learned_a priest_n of_o the_o britan_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o certain_a point_n of_o religion_n wherein_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n at_o that_o time_n disagree_v be_v convert_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o thereupon_o with_o the_o advice_n of_o egbert_n king_n of_o kent_n send_v wigandus_n a_o priest_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v ordain_v archbishop_n there_o to_o the_o end_n that_o return_v he_o may_v ordain_v bishop_n throughout_o all_o britain_n for_o say_v bede_n oswin_n though_o bring_v up_o by_o the_o scot_n 29._o scot_n l._n 3._o hist._n angl._n c._n 29._o have_v right_o understand_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n these_o testimony_n sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n as_o also_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n of_o former_a age_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o to_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v to_o be_v no_o catholic_a but_o a_o schismatic_n and_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o like_a you_o that_o deny_v this_o truth_n be_v to_o the_o arian_n heretic_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o show_v that_o they_o know_v catholic_a and_o roman_a to_o be_v all_o one_o and_o that_o because_o they_o will_v not_o grace_v catholic_n with_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n they_o call_v they_o roman_n or_o romanist_n as_o at_o this_o day_n you_o call_v we_o show_v yourselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o the_o arian_n victor_n that_o famous_a african_a bishop_n of_o vrica_n write_v to_o this_o vandal_n this_o l._n 2._o de_fw-la persecut_fw-la vandal_n purpose_n that_o jocundus_n a_o arian_n speak_v to_o king_n theodoricus_n say_v thou_o may_v make_v a_o end_n of_o armogastus_fw-la with_o diverse_a affliction_n for_o if_o thou_o put_v he_o to_o death_n by_o the_o sword_n the_o romanist_n will_v proclaim_v he_o a_o martyr_n and_o of_o another_o martyr_n he_o report_v ibid._n report_v ibid._n that_o be_v question_v by_o the_o arian_n concern_v his_o faith_n he_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a say_v romanus_n sum_n i_o be_o a_o roman_n 471._o roman_n apud_fw-la baron_n amo_fw-la 471._o in_o like_a manner_n ermodius_n report_v of_o the_o nobility_n of_o the_o ligures_n that_o propose_v to_o ricimer_n a_o arian_n goth_n a_o man_n fit_a to_o solicit_v a_o peace_n they_o say_v si_fw-la catholicus_n est_fw-la &_o romanus_n if_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_a then_o be_v he_o a_o romanist_n and_o s._n gregory_n of_o tours_n report_v of_o a_o arian_n prince_n 25._o prince_n de_fw-fr glor_n mars_n c._n 25._o that_o think_v within_o himself_o be_v say_v it_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o roman_n so_o they_o call_v man_n of_o our_o religion_n to_o attribute_v it_o to_o chance_n and_o not_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o again_o he_o report_v this_o speech_n of_o one_o arian_n to_o ●n_v 361_o ●n_v ibid._n c._n 361_o other_o if_o thou_o will_v but_o harken_v to_o my_o counsel_n we_o will_v this_o day_n make_v ourselves_o merry_a laugh_v hearty_o at_o this_o romish_a priest_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o arian_n that_o be_v in_o france_n 79._o france_n ibid._n c._n 79._o what_o think_v you_o say_v one_o of_o they_o will_v these_o romanist_n now_o say_v and_o what_o think_v you_o now_o doctor_n morton_n what_o will_v you_o say_v do_v not_o these_o testimony_n convince_v that_o in_o the_o language_n and_o belief_n of_o antiquity_n catholic_a and_o roman_a do_v signify_v the_o same_o church_n the_o same_o faith_n and_o the_o same_o orthodoxal_a people_n or_o what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o you_o that_o either_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o not_o to_o know_v this_o or_o if_o you_o know_v it_o so_o malicious_a as_o to_o deny_v it_o to_o call_v it_o a_o insultation_n of_o we_o and_o to_o censure_v it_o as_o schismatical_a heretical_a temerarious_a impious_a sacrilegious_a antichristian_a &c._n &c._n sect_n iv_o that_o whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n this_o truth_n be_v evident_o deduce_v out_o of_o the_o premise_n already_o prove_v by_o this_o syllogistical_a argument_n whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n this_o mayor_n proposition_n you_o grant_v and_o it_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v 1._o prove_v hoc_fw-la cap._n sect_n 1._o but_o whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o also_o have_v be_v 3._o be_v hoc_fw-la cap._n sect_n 3._o and_o shall_v be_v throughout_o this_o whole_a apology_n effectual_o prove_v the_o consequent_a then_o be_v evident_a in_o barbara_n ergo_fw-la whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n but_o yet_o in_o further_a confirmation_n of_o this_o consequent_a it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o hear_v the_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o speak_v and_o testify_v the_o truth_n thereof_o in_o their_o own_o language_n for_o so_o teach_v that_o ancient_a and_o learned_a bishop_n s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v soon_o after_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v disciple_n to_o their_o disciple_n he_o prescribe_v a_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v and_o distinguish_v the_o catholic_a church_n from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n say_v 3._o say_v l._n 3._o c._n 3._o that_o all_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a from_o all_o place_n must_v necessary_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n that_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o the_o never-interrupted_n succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o that_o see_v which_o succession_n say_v he_o be_v ibid._n be_v ibid._n a_o convince_a demonstration_n that_o the_o same_o faith_n which_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v still_o conserve_v in_o that_o church_n and_o therefore_o 43._o therefore_o l._n 4._o c._n 43._o that_o all_o such_o as_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o this_o principal_a succession_n we_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o hold_v they_o as_o heretic_n of_o a_o perverse_a judgement_n or_o as_o schismatic_n and_o selfe-liking_a presumptuous_a fellow_n and_o as_o s._n irenęus_n allege_v this_o never_n interrupt_v succession_n of_o twelve_o bishop_n until_o his_o time_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o in_o the_o head_n church_n of_o the_o world_n which_o therefore_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n if_o i_o say_v he_o allege_v this_o against_o the_o heretic_n of_o those_o primitive_a time_n as_o a_o convince_a demonstration_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o that_o principal_a succession_n be_v to_o be_v find_v have_v thereby_o depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o forsake_v true_a faith_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n far_o great_a reason_n have_v tertullian_n praescrip_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n eusebius_n 6._o eusebius_n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 6._o s._n epiphanius_n 27._o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 27._o s._n jerome_n lucifer_n jerome_n dial._n count_v lucifer_n optatus_n s._n augustine_n parm._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o cont_n parm._n and_o other_o father_n of_o after_o age_n to_o all_o eage_n the_o same_o succession_n of_o long_a continuance_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n to_o convince_v they_o to_o be_v such_o and_o donati_n and_o ep._n 165._o &_o psal_n contra_fw-la part_n donati_n ●f_o diverse_a of_o these_o father_n as_o irenaeus_n tertullian_n eusebius_n s._n epiphanius_n optatus_n and_o s._n augustine_n have_v reckon_v up_o by_o name_n all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o their_o time_n we_o may_v now_o just_o reckon_v a_o ●ar_o great_a number_n of_o they_o continue_v until_o these_o our_o day_n ●gainst_a protestant_n to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o which_o only_o this_v never_o interrupt_v succession_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o wish_v they_o as_o s._n augustine_n donati_n augustine_n psal_n contra_fw-la part_n donati_n do_v the_o donatist_n not_o to_o lie_v cut_v of_o from_o this_o succession_n that_o be_v ●he_v rock_n against_o which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n prevail_v ●ot_n so_o teach_v s._n cyprian_n say_v 8._o say_v l._n 1._o ep_v 8._o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o ●ne_a christ._n &_o one_o chair_n build_v upon_o peter_n out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o gather_v scatter_v that_o be_v make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n ●s_v the_o novatians_n do_v against_o who_o he_o write_v and_o why_o do_v he_o rejoice_v ●_o rejoice_v l._n 4._o ep_n ●_o to_o hear_v that_o antonianus_n
communicate_v with_o cornelius_n pope_n but_o because_o as_o there_o he_o express_v to_o be_v in_o his_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o write_v to_o cornelius_n himself_o he_o call_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n 8._o peter_n l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o the_o root_n and_o mother_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o 3._o and_o l._n 1._o ep_v 3._o the_o principal_a chair_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v from_o whence_o he_o infer_v that_o whosoever_o depart_v from_o that_o ecclesiae_fw-la that_o l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la see_v hold_v not_o the_o faith_n nor_o be_v in_o the_o church_n so_o teach_v ancient_a pacianus_n 2._o pacianus_n ep._n 2._o for_o novatian_n as_o s._n cyprian_n affirm_v have_v make_v himself_o a_o adulterous_a and_o contrary_a head_n to_o cornelius_n the_o lawful_a pope_n and_o thereby_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n pacianus_n for_o that_o very_a cause_n pronounce_v he_o to_o have_v dye_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n although_o say_v be_v novatian_n have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o bone_n crown_v and_o why_o not_o because_o he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o concord_n out_o of_o that_o mother_n whereof_o whosoever_o will_v be_v a_o martyr_n must_v be_v a_o portion_n so_o teach_v optatus_n that_o learned_a bishop_n of_o milevis_n in_o africa_n when_o write_v against_o parmenianus_n the_o donatist_n he_o parmen_fw-la he_o l._n 2._o cont_n part_n parmen_fw-la say_v thou_o can_v not_o deny_v out_o that_o thou_o know_v the_o episcopal_a chair_n to_o have_v be_v first_o set_v up_o in_o rome_n for_o peter_n in_o which_o seat_n be_v place_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n peter_n from_o whence_o he_o have_v be_v also_o call_v cephas_n to_o the_o end_n that_o in_o this_o only_a chair_n unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v to_o all_o lest_o the_o other_o apostle_n may_v attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o particular_a chair_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v a_o schismatic_n and_o a_o sinner_n that_o will_v against_o the_o only_a chair_n set_v up_o another_o and_o again_o show_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v schismatic_n and_o out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n because_o they_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n he_o ibid._n he_o ibid._n say_v from_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o you_o attempt_v to_o usurp_v to_o yourselves_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n you_o that_o fight_v against_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n by_o your_o bold_a and_o sacrilegious_a presumption_n thus_o write_v optatus_n 1200._o year_n since_o and_o by_o his_o argument_n we_o may_v now_o prove_v protestant_n to_o be_v schismatic_n no_o less_o than_o he_o do_v the_o donatist_n so_o teach_v s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la profess_v that_o to_o communicate_v with_o catholic_a bishop_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o one_o and_o write_v to_o siricius_n pope_n and_o acknowledge_v all_o those_o to_o be_v heretic_n who_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v as_o such_o he_o say_v 81._o say_v l._n 10._o ep_n 81._o who_o your_o holiness_n have_v condemn_v know_v that_o we_o also_o hold_v they_o condemn_v according_a to_o your_o judgement_n so_o teach_v s._n hierome_n who_o write_v against_o lucifer_n the_o schismatical_a bishop_n of_o calaris_n in_o sardinia_n and_o the_o luciferian_o his_o follower_n that_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n say_v to_o lucifer_n 8._o lucifer_n epist._n 8._o i_o can_v dry_v up_o all_o the_o river_n of_o thy_o argument_n with_o the_o only_a sunshine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o because_o we_o have_v now_o reason_v long_o i_o will_v in_o few_o word_n declare_v plain_o unto_o thou_o my_o judgement_n which_o be_v that_o we_o be_v to_o remain_v in_o that_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n dure_v until_o this_o day_n and_o else_o where_o declare_v what_o church_n he_o mean_v he_o advise_v demetrias_n that_o if_o she_o will_v avoid_v the_o snare_n of_o heretic_n she_o hold_v fast_o the_o faith_n of_o innocentius_n pope_n son_n and_o successor_n in_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n to_o anastasius_n who_o have_v break_v the_o pestilent_a head_n and_o stop_v the_o hiss_a mouth_n of_o that_o hydra_n which_o attempt_v to_o pollute_v and_o corrupt_v the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o again_o write_v to_o d●masus_n pope_n he_o say_v 57_o say_v ep._n 57_o i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o your_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o peter_n chair_n i_o know_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o that_o rock_n whosoever_o be_v not_o in_o the_o ark_n shall_v perish_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o flood_n he_o that_o eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n be_v profane_a whosoever_o gather_v not_o with_o you_o scatters_z that_o be_v to_o say_v whosoever_o be_v not_o of_o christ_n be_v of_o antichrist_n so_o teach_v s._n basill_n in_o very_a deed_n say_v he_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o diac._n the_o ep._n 69._o per_fw-la sabin_n diac._n pope_n that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o thy_o piety_n be_v worthy_a of_o that_o most_o excellent_a voice_n which_o proclaim_v thou_o bless_v to_o wit_n that_o thou_o may_v discern_v betwixt_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_n &_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o pure_a and_o that_o without_o any_o diminution_n thou_o may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n it_o be_v then_o certain_a in_o s._n basils_n belief_n that_o the_o assurance_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o s._n peter_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v error_n and_o heresy_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o make_v to_o s._n peter_n in_o his_o own_o person_n only_o nor_o only_o for_o his_o time_n but_o in_o he_o to_o all_o his_o successor_n and_o to_o they_o in_o he_o be_v grant_v that_o admirable_a privilege_n of_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n pure_a and_o without_o any_o diminution_n so_o teach_v s._n maximus_n alias_o fin_fw-fr alias_o in_o ep_v ad_fw-la orientales_fw-la apud_fw-la s._n tho._n in_o opuse_n 1._o prope_fw-la fin_fw-fr maximianus_n all_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o have_v receive_v our_o lord_n sincere_o and_o all_o catholic_n throughout_o the_o whole_a earth_n that_o confess_v the_o true_a faith_n look_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o the_o roman_n as_o upon_o a_o sun_n and_o shall_v receive_v from_o she_o the_o light_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o not_o without_o cause_n for_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o that_o be_v read_v to_o have_v make_v a_o perfect_a confession_n of_o the_o faith_n our_o lord_n reveal_v it_o unto_o he_o math._n 16._o when_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n whereupon_o our_o lord_n say_v unto_o he_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o ibid._n and_o ibid._n again_o we_o profess_v the_o universal_a church_n to_o be_v frame_v and_o found_v upon_o the_o rock_n of_o peter_n confession_n according_a to_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o which_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remain_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o she_o keep_v her_o faith_n and_o confession_n so_o teach_v s._n augustine_n who_o among_o the_o argument_n which_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n reckon_v the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v even_o from_o s._n peter_n until_o his_o time_n i_o be_o keep_v say_v 4._o say_v l._n eont_a epist_n funda_fw-la c._n 4._o he_o in_o the_o church_n by_o the_o succession_n of_o priest_n from_o the_o very_o see_v of_o peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n after_o his_o resurrectien_n commit_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v even_o to_o the_o present_a bishop_n and_o exhort_v the_o donatist_n which_o brag_v that_o they_o also_o have_v bishop_n he_o 165._o he_o epist._n 165._o say_v if_o the_o order_n &_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v how_o much_o more_o assure_o &_o safe_o indeed_o do_v we_o begin_v our_o account_n from_o s._n peter_n himself_o unto_o who_o as_o he_o represent_v the_o whole_a church_n our_o lord_n say_v math._n 16._o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n for_o linus_n succeed_v to_o peter_n cletus_n to_o linus_n and_o have_v reckon_v up_o all_o the_o pope_n unto_o anastasius_n who_o then_o sit_v in_o s._n peter_n chair_n he_o conclude_v against_o the_o donatist_n in_o this_o order_n of_o succession_n there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o donatist_n to_o be_v find_v to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v no_o nor_o yet_o any_o protestant_n since_o therefore_o the_o church_n in_o
which_o there_o be_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n can_v be_v the_o protestant_a church_n which_o have_v no_o such_o succession_n but_o the_o roman_a it_o follow_v that_o s_o augustine_n hold_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o therefore_o he_o grieve_v to_o see_v the_o donatist_n lie_v cut_v off_o from_o she_o as_o branch_n from_o the_o vine_n be_v you_o ingraff_v on_o the_o vine_n say_v he_o to_o the_o donati_n the_o psal_n contra_fw-la part_n donati_n donatist_n it_o be_v a_o grief_n to_o we_o to_o see_v you_o so_o lie_v cut_v of_o number_n the_o priest_n even_o from_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o consider_v in_o that_o rank_n of_o father_n who_o succeed_v who_o that_o be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o and_o as_o in_o these_o word_n s._n augustine_n show_v the_o miserable_a estate_n of_o those_o then_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o declare_v the_o happiness_n and_o security_n of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o communion_n which_o she_o when_o speak_v of_o cecilianus_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o a_o numerous_a council_n of_o donatist_n bishop_n in_o africa_n he_o say_v 162._o say_v ep._n 162._o cecilianus_n may_v have_v contemn_v the_o conspire_a multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v unite_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n both_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o which_o the_o soveraygnty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v and_o to_o other_o country_n from_o whence_o the_o gospel_n come_v first_o into_o africa_n so_o teach_v possidius_n bishop_n of_o calama_n a_o familiar_a friend_n to_o s._n augustine_n who_o life_n he_o write_v and_o therein_o report_v 18._o report_v cap._n 18._o that_o when_o innocentius_n and_o zozimus_n have_v condemn_v the_o pelagian_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n honorius_n hear_v of_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n pronounce_v against_o they_o obey_v it_o &_o condemn_v also_o by_o his_o law_n ordain_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v rank_v among_o heretic_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o her_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o the_o emperor_n by_o their_o law_n second_v her_o judgement_n comdemn_v as_o heretic_n those_o who_o she_o have_v condemn_v so_o teach_v s._n cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n explicate_v those_o word_n of_o our_o 16._o our_o math._n 16._o saviour_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o according_a to_o this_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v math._n say_v apud_fw-la s._n thom._n in_o caten_v ad_fw-la cap._n 16._o math._n he_o ●he_v apostolical_a church_n of_o peter_n persever_v in_o her_o bishop_n pure_a &_o free_a from_o all_o seduction_n &_o circumuention_n above_o all_o prelate_n &_o bishop_n &_o above_o all_o primat_n of_o church_n and_o people_n most_o perfect_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o authority_n of_o peter_n and_o whereas_o other_o church_n have_v be_v stain_v with_o the_o error_n of_o some_o she_o alone_o remain_v establish_v firm_o &_o unconquerable_o silence_v and_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o all_o heretic_n &_o we_o upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n neither_o deceive_v nor_o drink_v with_o the_o wine_n of_o pride_n together_o which_v she_o confess_v and_o preach_v the_o form_n of_o truth_n and_o of_o holy_a apostolical_a tradition_n and_o 1._o and_o apud_fw-la s._n thom._n opusc_n 1._o again_o let_v we_o remain_v as_o member_n in_o our_o head_n the_o apostolical_a throne_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n from_o which_o it_o be_v our_o part_n to_o inquire_v what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o what_o to_o hold_v and_o last_o it_o be_v say_v the_o angelical_a ibid._n angelical_a ibid._n doctor_n prove_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o cyril_n say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o treasure_n therefore_o brethren_n if_o we_o will_v imitate_v christ_n let_v we_o as_o his_o sheep_n hear_v his_o voice_n remain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o peter_n and_o let_v we_o not_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o the_o wind_n of_o pride_n lest_o peradventure_o the_o crooked_a serpent_n for_o our_o contention_n cast_v we_o out_o as_o long_o since_o he_o cast_v eve_n out_o of_o paradyse_n so_o teach_v s._n peter_n for_o his_o golden_a eloquence_n surname_v chrysologus_fw-la exhort_v eutyches_n the_o archheretic_n to_o leave_v his_o heresy_n and_o learn_v the_o true_a faith_n from_o the_o church_n of_o eutych_n of_o epist._n ad_fw-la eutych_n rome_n we_o exhort_v thou_o reverend_a brother_n to_o lend_v a_o obedient_a ear_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o bless_a peter_n who_o live_v and_o rule_n in_o his_o own_o seat_n exhibit_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o so_o teach_v 5._o teach_v l._n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o prodict_n dei_fw-la part_n 4._o c._n 5._o s._n prosper_n the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n found_v the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n where_o they_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o deliver_v it_o to_o their_o successor_n a_o christian_a communicate_v with_o this_o general_a church_n be_v a_o catholic_a but_o if_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n so_o teach_v arnobius_n 106._o arnobius_n in_o psal_n 106._o explicate_v the_o necessity_n of_o remain_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o these_o few_o but_o effectual_a word_n he_o that_o go_v out_o from_o the_o church_n of_o peter_n perish_v for_o thirst_n whereupon_o erasmus_n say_v psalterium_fw-la say_v praefat._n instruct_v comment_fw-fr in_o psalterium_fw-la arnobius_n seem_v to_o yield_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o whosoever_o be_v out_o of_o she_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o teach_v john_n a_o ancient_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n orientales_fw-la constantinople_n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la orientales_fw-la who_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o hormisdas_n hormisd_v hormisdas_n in_o ep_v ad_fw-la hormisd_v pope_n acknowledge_v that_o in_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v always_o conserve_v inviolable_a and_o that_o they_o who_o consent_v not_o full_o with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o likewise_o teach_v s._n fulgentius_n bishop_n of_o ruspa_n and_o a_o famous_a doctor_n of_o the_o african_a church_n who_o together_o which_o other_o bishop_n his_o colleague_n make_v this_o answer_n to_o peter_n a_o deacon_n that_o have_v be_v send_v out_o of_o the_o 11._o the_o l._n the_o incarnate_a &_o great_a c._n 11._o east_n the_o roman_a church_n enlighten_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o two_o great_a light_n peter_n &_o paul_n as_o with_o radiant_a beam_n and_o honour_v with_o their_o body_n and_o which_o be_v also_o the_o top_n of_o the_o world_n without_o hesitation_n believe_v so_o to_o justice_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o confess_v so_o to_o salvation_n so_o he_o teach_v that_o no_o christian_n ought_v to_o make_v doubt_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n again_o a_o disciple_n of_o his_o that_o writ_n and_o dedicate_v his_o life_n to_o felicianus_fw-la his_o successor_n report_v that_o when_o fulgentius_n go_v to_o the_o 6._o the_o vita_fw-la s._n fulgent_n c_o 11._o extat_fw-la in_o biblioth_n pat._n edit_n colon._n tom_n 6._o wilderness_n of_o thebais_n to_o fast_o arrive_v at_o syracuse_n eulalius_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n dissuade_v he_o with_o these_o word_n thou_o do_v well_o in_o aspire_v to_o great_a perfection_n but_o thou_o know_v that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o that_o a_o perfidious_a dissension_n have_v separate_v those_o country_n into_o which_o thou_o be_v travel_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o bless_a peter_n wherefore_o son_n return_v home_o lest_o by_o seek_v a_o more_o perfect_a life_n thou_o run_v hazard_n of_o lose_v the_o true_a faith_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o all_o such_o as_o dissent_v from_o her_o doctrine_n be_v out_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o incapable_a of_o salvation_n so_o teach_v s._n leo_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n for_o his_o admirable_a learning_n wisdom_n and_o sanctity_n surname_v the_o great_a who_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o vienne_n say_v 89._o say_v epist._n 89._o christ_n from_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n as_o from_o a_o certain_a head_n pour_v his_o gift_n upon_o the_o
whole_a body_n of_o his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o solidity_n of_o that_o see_v may_v know_v himself_o to_o be_v no_o way_n partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n and_o ibid._n and_o ibid._n that_o whosoever_o go_v about_o to_o diminish_v the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n endeavore_v with_o most_o impious_a presumption_n to_o violate_v the_o most_o sacred_a strength_n of_o the_o rock_n peter_n frame_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v against_o hilary_n bishop_n of_o arles_n and_o all_o such_o as_o be_v refractory_a and_o disobedient_a to_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n and_o in_o they_o to_o peter_n himself_o he_o ibid._n he_o ibid._n add_v to_o who_o whosoever_o think_v the_o primacy_n to_o be_v deny_v can_v no_o way_n diminish_v their_o authority_n but_o puff_v up_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o pride_n plunge_v himself_o headlong_o into_o hell_n and_o 75._o and_o epist_n 75._o that_o he_o who_o dare_v oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n build_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o most_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n be_v either_o antichrist_n or_o a_o devil_n all_o these_o say_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o doctor_n and_o so_o great_a a_o saint_n i_o wish_v the_o protestant_a reader_n due_o to_o consider_v so_o teach_v the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n 3._o chalcedon_n act._n 3._o affirm_v peter_n the_o apostle_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o whosoever_o build_v not_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o peter_n see_v be_v not_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n nor_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v so_o teach_v s._n gregory_n the_o great_a who_o write_v to_o bonifacius_n 41._o bonifacius_n l._n 3._o ep_v 41._o say_v i_o admonish_v you_o that_o while_o you_o have_v time_n of_o life_n remain_v your_o soul_n be_v not_o find_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o bless_a peter_n to_o who_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v commit_v and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v give_v lest_o his_o favour_n be_v contemn_v here_o he_o there_o exclude_v you_o from_o the_o entrance_n into_o life_n so_o teach_v s._n i_o sidore_v a_o learned_a doctor_n and_o archbishop_n of_o seville_a toletanum_n seville_a ep._n ultima_fw-la ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la episcop_n toletanum_n say_v that_o albeit_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o power_n descend_v from_o s._n peter_n to_o all_o catholic_a bishop_n yet_o especial_o and_o by_o a_o fingular_a privilege_n it_o remain_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o a_o head_n high_o than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n whosoever_o therefore_o say_v he_o yield_v not_o obedience_n reverent_o to_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o head_n and_o make_v himself_o guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o acephalist_n that_o be_v of_o certain_a heretic_n who_o acknowledge_v no_o one_o particular_a head_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o church_n believe_v this_o as_o the_o creed_n of_o s._n athanasius_n and_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v it_o not_o can_v be_v save_v so_o teach_v s._n maximus_n martyr_n the_o great_a divine_a of_o his_o age_n &_o that_o write_v learned_o against_o the_o monothelite_n pestilent_a heretic_n that_o hold_v but_o one_o will_v and_o operation_n in_o christ_n and_o be_v anathematise_v in_o the_o six_o general_a council_n he_o among_o other_o eulogy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v diac._n have_v epist_n ad_fw-la marinum_fw-la diac._n this_o all_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o whosoever_o in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o world_n do_v confess_v christ_n our_o lord_n with_o a_o pure_a hart_n and_o orthodox_n faith_n look_v upon_o the_o most_o holy_a roman_a church_n and_o her_o confession_n and_o faith_n attentive_o as_o upon_o a_o sun_n of_o everlasting_a light_n receive_v from_o her_o the_o shine_a light_n of_o spiritual_a and_o holy_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n for_o from_o the_o first_o come_v of_o the_o word_n incarnate_a all_o the_o church_n of_o christian_n throughout_o the_o world_n have_v have_v from_o she_o their_o beginning_n their_o only_a and_o sure_a foundation_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v no_o way_n prevail_v according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o that_o she_o shall_v have_v the_o key_n of_o orthodoxal_a faith_n and_o confession_n and_o open_a to_o they_o that_o religious_o come_v to_o the_o same_o roman_a church_n seek_v true_a real_a and_o only_a piety_n and_o contrariwise_o shut_v and_o stop_v every_o heretical_a mouth_n that_o speak_v iniquity_n against_o heaven_n so_o teach_v s._n aldelmus_fw-la a_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n who_o venerable_a bede_n high_o commend_v for_o his_o eloquence_n for_o his_o great_a knowledge_n of_o humane_a literature_n of_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a rite_n among_o other_o his_o work_n which_o bede_n reckon_v he_o write_v a_o excellent_a book_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o britan_n who_o at_o that_o time_n differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n and_o of_o the_o same_o subject_n he_o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o geruntius_n in_o which_o he_o show_v the_o britan_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v in_o error_n gerunt_fw-la error_n epist_n ad_fw-la gerunt_fw-la if_o say_v he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n be_v by_o christ_n give_v to_o peter_n of_o who_o the_o poet_n say_v he_o be_v the_o porter_n of_o heaven_n that_o open_v the_o gate_n to_o the_o star_n who_o be_v he_o that_o despise_v the_o principal_a statute_n of_o that_o church_n and_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o command_v to_o be_v observe_v can_v enter_v into_o the_o gate_n of_o heavenly_a paradise_n and_o if_o peter_n by_o a_o happy_a lot_n and_o a_o peculiar_a privilege_n deserve_v to_o receyve_v the_o power_n &_o monarchy_n of_o bind_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n who_o refuse_v to_o observe_v the_o roman_a rite_n of_o easter_n can_v think_v that_o he_o be_v not_o rather_o to_o be_v strait_o tie_v with_o in_o soluble_a bond_n than_o any_o way_n to_o be_v absolve_v and_o the_o same_o he_o further_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o privilege_n of_o not_o err_v grant_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n when_o christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o peter_n as_o upon_o a_o impregnable_a rock_n so_o teach_v venerable_a bede_n pauli_n bede_n homil._n in_o die_v apost_n petri_n &_o pauli_n say_v therefore_o the_o bless_a peter_n confess_v christ_n with_o true_a faith_n and_o follow_v he_o with_o true_a love_n receive_v special_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o judicial_a power_n that_o all_o the_o faithful_a throughout_o the_o world_n may_v understand_v that_o whosoever_o do_v any_o way_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o society_n can_v neither_o be_v lose_a from_o the_o bond_n of_o their_o sin_n nor_o come_v within_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o speak_v of_o a_o conference_n hold_v between_o colmannus_fw-la a_o abbot_n and_o wilfridus_n a_o learned_a priest_n concern_v the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n colmannus_fw-la defend_v the_o jewish_a rite_n and_o wilfridus_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wilfridus_n say_v 25._o say_v beda_n in_o histor_n gent._n ang._n l._n 3._o c._n 25._o if_o you_o disdain_v to_o follow_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a yea_o and_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o all_o doubt_n you_o sin_n for_o be_v it_o that_o your_o columba_n be_v a_o holy_a man_n and_o of_o christ_n &_o likewise_o your_o father_n yet_o be_v their_o small_a number_n in_o a_o corner_n of_o a_o remote_a island_n to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n allege_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o peter_n and_o to_o give_v he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o win_v king_n that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o conference_n demand_v of_o the_o disputant_n whether_o both_o of_o they_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v principal_o speak_v to_o peter_n and_o whether_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o they_o answer_v yes_o the_o king_n ibid._n king_n ibid._n conclude_v and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o because_o peter_n be_v that_o porter_n i_o will_v not_o gainsay_v he_o but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o i_o
a_o other_o french_a lawyer_n who_o you_o call_v our_o noble_a historian_n whereas_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o history_n show_v he_o to_o have_v be_v a_o huguenot_n or_o little_o better_a nor_o be_v you_o content_v with_o cite_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a author_n but_o to_o help_v out_o the_o matter_n you_o falsify_v he_o most_o notorious_o as_o hereafter_o 9_o hereafter_o chap._n 44._o sect_n 9_o shall_v be_v prove_v a_o three_o sleight_n be_v to_o urge_v as_o catholic_a author_n some_o that_o be_v of_o suspect_a faith_n as_o 1._o erasmus_n 208._o erasmus_n pag_n 208._o who_o albeit_o in_o the_o end_n he_o abandon_v luther_n g._n luther_n 303._o u._n 306._o a_o 381._o g_o 380._o f._n g._n and_o die_v catholic_a as_o out_o of_o his_o own_o confession_n and_o osianders_n testimony_n brierley_n apol._n brierley_n aduertism_n before_o his_o protest_v apol._n have_v prove_v yet_o for_o some_o time_n he_o favour_v luther_n &_o in_o regard_n thereof_o be_v challenge_v by_o doctor_n humfroy_n and_o doctor_n reynolds_n for_o a_o man_n of_o your_o religion_n and_o by_o john_n fox_n canonize_v for_o a_o protestant_a saint_n decemb._n saint_n act_n and_o mon._n pa._n 402._o kalend._n 22._o decemb._n his_o rash_a and_o unaduised_a writing_n give_v occasion_n to_o lutheran_n and_o zwinglians_n to_o father_n on_o he_o diverse_a of_o their_o heretical_a tenant_n and_o therefore_o be_v general_o reprove_v by_o catholic_n &_o prohib_o &_o ind._n lib._n prohib_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n which_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o &_o therefore_o your_o persist_v still_o to_o allege_v he_o against_o we_o as_o a_o approve_a catholic_a author_n be_v inexcusable_a 2._o to_o this_o class_n may_v be_v reduce_v other_o who_o though_o catholic_n yet_o fall_v into_o some_o error_n as_o beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la claudius_n espencaus_n papyrius_n massonius_n joannes_n ferus_fw-la and_o gulielmus_fw-la barklaius_fw-la of_o which_o the_o four_o first_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v you_o ignorant_a thereof_o for_o speak_v of_o rhenanus_fw-la you_o say_v 101._o say_v pag._n 101._o rhenanus_fw-la writ_n so_o while_o he_o have_v the_o use_n of_o his_o tongue_n but_o since_o you_o have_v gag_v he_o by_o your_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la by_o what_o authority_n then_o do_v you_o ungagge_v he_o who_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o mother_n have_v so_o just_o gag_v and_o though_o william_n barkley_n be_v not_o register_v in_o the_o index_n as_o a_o condemn_a author_n his_o book_n be_v set_v forth_o since_o the_o index_n be_v make_v yet_o bellarmine_n praesat_fw-la bellarmine_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la papae_fw-la advers_o barclaium_n in_o praesat_fw-la have_v produce_v against_o his_o doctrine_n the_o agree_a consent_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a divine_n of_o italy_n france_n spain_n england_n and_o scotland_n as_o also_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a pope_n and_o general_a counsel_n and_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n have_v censure_v he_o for_o that_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o a_o lawyer_n he_o presume_v to_o write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la papa_n in_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la which_o contain_v diverse_a error_n &_o be_v leave_v imperfect_a at_o his_o death_n be_v afterward_o publish_v without_o name_n of_o author_n printer_n or_o place_n of_o impression_n for_o although_o some_o copy_n say_v it_o be_v print_v at_o mussipont_n yet_o bellarmine_n convince_v that_o to_o be_v a_o ibid._n a_o ibid._n untruth_n &_o john_n barkeley_n son_n to_o william_n have_v confess_v the_o same_o parenesis_n same_o in_o praef_n parenesis_n give_v notice_n to_o all_o man_n that_o it_o be_v publish_v in_o england_n by_o protestant_n and_o have_v withal_o acknowledge_v his_o father_n to_o have_v err_v in_o that_o book_n and_o retract_v his_o own_o defence_n thereof_o all_o this_o may_v have_v move_v you_o to_o forbear_v the_o allege_v of_o barkeleys_n book_n against_o us._n and_o so_o much_o the_o urge_v in_o this_o your_o grand_a imposture_n the_o very_a same_o passage_n of_o he_o which_o your_o ancient_a antagonist_n 202._o antagonist_n f._n person_n treatise_n to_o mitigation_n chap._n 6._o pag._n 202._o here_o tofore_o show_v you_o to_o have_v object_v in_o a_o other_o treatise_n of_o you_o corrupt_o against_o our_o common_a belief_n and_o practice_n falsify_v and_o sophisticate_a both_o his_o and_o our_o meaning_n and_o the_o like_a abuse_n he_o show_v you_o to_o have_v offer_v to_o ibid._n to_o ibid._n tolosanus_n who_o testimony_n you_o yet_o again_o impertinent_o produce_v here_o against_o 172._o against_o pag._n 172._o us._n 3._o and_o to_o this_o class_n may_v be_v reduce_v polydore_v virgil_n c._n virgil_n grand_fw-fr impost_n pag._n 46.97_o e._n 164._o p._n 382._o ●_o 386_o c._n who_o be_v a_o catholic_a author_n his_o book_n de_fw-fr inventoribus_fw-la rerum_fw-la have_v be_v enlarge_v and_o corrupt_v by_o heretic_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n prohibit_v 4._o your_o four_o sleight_n be_v to_o allege_v and_o insist_v much_o on_o some_o writing_n of_o aenae_fw-la as_o siluius_n cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la and_o stephen_n gardiner_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n which_o they_o set_v forth_o in_o their_o youth_n but_o afterward_o repent_v and_o public_o retract_v aenaeas_n siluius_n that_o be_v afterward_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o be_v in_o his_o young_a year_n present_v at_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o secretary_n thereof_o write_v a_o book_n exalt_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o council_n and_o depress_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o book_n be_v not_o only_o forbid_v by_o the_o church_n but_o he_o himself_o also_o be_v more_o mature_a in_o year_n more_o ripe_a in_o judgement_n and_o more_o solid_o learn_v repenred_n the_o writing_n thereof_o &_o when_o he_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n set_v forth_o a_o special_a bull_n to_o retract_v it_o seqq_fw-la it_o extat_fw-la hac_fw-la bulla_n apud_fw-la binium_fw-la to_o 4._o pag._n 512._o &_o seqq_fw-la in_o which_o among_o other_o word_n he_o say_v in_o minoribus_fw-la agentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n while_o i_o be_v in_o minority_n not_o yet_o enter_v into_o any_o holy_a order_n be_v present_a at_o basil_n among_o those_o who_o make_v themselves_o a_o general_a council_n &_o say_v they_o represent_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o write_v a_o small_a book_n of_o dialogue_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o ignorant_o as_o paul_n do_v i_o persecute_v the_o roman_a and_o chief_a see_n wherefore_o i_o admonish_v in_o our_o lord_n that_o you_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o such_o former_a writing_n of_o i_o as_o do_v in_o any_o sort_n extenuate_v the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o then_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o make_v not_o this_o change_n by_o his_o come_n to_o the_o popedom_n but_o before_o he_o be_v either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n and_o set_v down_o the_o cause_n that_o move_v he_o thereto_o he_o add_v have_v consider_v all_o these_o thing_n i_o submit_v myself_o to_o pope_n eugenius_n say_v with_o hierome_n i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o chayreof_o peter_n upon_o which_o i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v and_o i_o have_v at_o that_o time_n no_o other_o order_n but_o of_o priesthood_n only_o when_o i_o return_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o eugenius_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o bellarmine_n say_v silvio_n say_v lib._n the_o scriptor_n in_o aenea_fw-la silvio_n he_o retract_v his_o error_n in_o his_o old_a age_n and_o be_v pope_n he_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o set_n forth_o of_o the_o say_a bull_n to_o make_v his_o retractation_n public_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o the_o error_n itself_o he_o recall_v before_o he_o be_v either_o pope_n or_o bishop_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v and_o this_o discover_v your_o want_n of_o sincerity_n who_o in_o diverse_a place_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n allege_v testimony_n of_o aeneas_n to_o show_v his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o roman_a church_n conceal_v all_o those_o in_o which_o his_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n be_v true_o deliver_v and_o set_v down_o d._n down_o pag._n 91._o d._n 210._o *_o .249_o d._n only_o such_o as_o you_o can_v pick_v out_o of_o his_o former_a work_n write_v in_o his_o youth_n forbid_v by_o the_o church_n and_o retract_v by_o himself_o which_o deal_v be_v no_o less_o impostetous_a then_o if_o you_o shall_v deliver_v as_o s._n augustins_n doctrine_n that_o which_o in_o his_o retractation_n he_o have_v recall_v but_o you_o seek_v to_o lessen_v this_o imposture_n by_o add_v a_o other_o to_o it_o for_o lest_o peradventure_o your_o reader_n may_v have_v notice_n of_o this_o retractation_n of_o aeneas_n and_o thereby_o discover_v your_o bad_a deal_n you_o cover_v it_o by_o insinuate_v that_o he_o make_v no_o such_o recantation_n till_o he_o be_v pope_n for_o have_v cite_v a_o passage_n of_o he_o you_o say_v 210._o say_v pag._n 210._o so_o aeneas_n out_o of_o hierome_n while_o
not_o to_o remove_v it_o from_o thence_o or_o whether_o without_o any_o commandment_n from_o christ_n he_o choose_v rome_n for_o his_o see_n out_o of_o his_o own_o free_a election_n as_o he_o may_v have_v choose_v milan_n or_o any_o other_o city_n that_o he_o have_v such_o a_o command_n from_o christ_n be_v affirm_v &_o learned_o prove_v by_o 10._o by_o de_fw-fr triplici_fw-la virt_n theol._n d._n 10._o sect_n 3._o n._n 10._o suarez_n 12._o suarez_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 12._o bellarmine_n send_v bellarmine_n institut_fw-la mor._n part_n 2._o l._n 4._o c._n 21._o §._o secunda_fw-la send_v azor_n and_o by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o catholic_a divine_n with_o many_o forcible_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n which_o be_v the_o more_o probable_a &_o pious_a &_o learned_o prove_v by_o suarez_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o as_o roman_a be_v by_o divine_a institution_n the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o leave_v free_a for_o they_o to_o remove_v their_o see_n from_o rome_n to_o any_o other_o place_n but_o to_o give_v you_o your_o great_a advantage_n be_v it_o that_o s._n peter_n receive_v no_o such_o commandment_n from_o christ_n but_o that_o it_o be_v free_a for_o he_o to_o choose_v for_o his_o see_n either_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o city_n and_o that_o his_o successor_n may_v also_o free_o transfer_v their_o see_n from_o rome_n yet_o this_o affoard_v no_o help_n to_o your_o cause_n for_o though_o according_a to_o this_o opinion_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n reduplicatiuè_fw-fr as_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o specificatiuè_fw-fr and_o absolute_o it_o be_v for_o albeit_o s._n peter_n may_v have_v place_v his_o see_n else_o where_o yet_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la he_o place_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n and_o that_o while_o his_o successor_n continue_v his_o see_n there_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o head_n &_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o that_o whosoever_o be_v not_o a_o member_n unite_v to_o this_o head_n be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n this_o you_o shall_v have_v disprove_v but_o wilful_o mistake_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o opinion_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n reduplicatiuè_fw-fr as_o roman_a be_v the_o catholic_a church_n you_o infer_v that_o specificatiuè_fw-fr and_o absolute_o it_o be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o of_o opinion_n that_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v as_o good_a a_o consequence_n as_o that_o a_o aethiopian_a absolute_o be_v not_o a_o man_n because_o formal_o as_o black_a he_o be_v not_o a_o man_n with_o such_o argument_n you_o delude_v ignorant_a reader_n that_o want_v learning_n to_o discern_v your_o sleight_n sect_n v._o your_o five_o argument_n your_o five_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n 18.19.20_o church_n pag._n 18.19.20_o be_v because_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v apostle_n martyr_n and_o confessor_n bless_v saint_n of_o god_n before_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v found_v yea_o and_o before_o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v put_v into_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n itself_o compose_v all_o this_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v as_o true_a be_v yet_o of_o no_o force_n against_o our_o doctrine_n which_o be_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v by_o christ_n pastor_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n and_o therefore_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o whatsoever_o apostle_n martyr_n confessor_n or_o other_o faithful_a live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n after_o s._n peter_n be_v make_v head_n thereof_o be_v member_n of_o the_o universal_a or_o catholic_a church_n subject_a to_o peter_n though_o for_o a_o time_n there_o be_v no_o one_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v head_n of_o all_o church_n because_o s._n peter_n as_o yet_o have_v not_o make_v choice_n of_o any_o particular_a seat_n as_o afterward_o he_o do_v at_o antioch_n and_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n while_o he_o sit_v there_o be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n church_n to_o who_o all_o other_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o profess_v union_n and_o obedience_n in_o regard_v whereof_o that_o holy_a pope_n innocentius_n the_o first_o great_o commend_v by_o s._n augustine_n antioch_n augustine_n epist._n 18._o alexand._n episc_n antioch_n say_v that_o the_o see_v of_o antioch_n have_v not_o give_v place_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n but_o because_o what_o antioch_n obtain_v only_o by_o the_o way_n rome_n obtain_v absolute_o and_o final_o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o if_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n shall_v now_o remove_v his_o see_n from_o rome_n to_o milan_n as_o s._n peter_n do_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o of_o milan_n shall_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n but_o because_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n s._n peter_n fix_v his_o seat_n &_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o successor_n at_o rome_n while_o they_o continue_v it_o there_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o see_n be_v the_o head_n &_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n to_o which_o say_v 3._o say_v l._n 3._o c._n 3._o irenaeus_n all_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a from_o every_o place_n be_v of_o necessity_n to_o agree_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o you_o ignorant_o or_o witting_o mistake_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v or_o not_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n no_o way_n depend_v on_o her_o be_v found_v before_o or_o after_o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v put_v into_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o upon_o be_v the_o see_v in_o which_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n live_v and_o dye_v and_o which_o he_o leave_v to_o his_o successor_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_v be_v s._n peter_n successor_n succee_v he_o in_o his_o supreme_a authority_n and_o that_o authority_n make_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n which_o dignity_n it_o have_v ever_o enjoy_v since_o s._n peter_n sit_v there_o and_o shall_v enjoy_v while_o his_o successor_n continue_v there_o which_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o have_v speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o the_o saint_n which_o depart_v this_o life_n before_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v found_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o which_o he_o be_v head_n which_o if_o they_o have_v be_v they_o have_v no_o more_o be_v saint_n than_o you_o now_o be_v sect_n vi_o your_o six_o argument_n your_o six_o argument_n be_v a_o mere_a sophism_n all_o catholic_a divine_n accord_n as_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n 20.21.22_o church_n pag._n 20.21.22_o mention_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n have_v a_o prerogative_n of_o continue_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o christ_n promise_n make_v to_o s._n peter_n second_o and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n while_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n continue_v their_o seat_n at_o rome_n can_v fail_v in_o faith_n but_o that_o s._n peter_n fix_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n there_o to_o remain_v to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n and_o in_o his_o successor_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n although_o it_o be_v a_o most_o pious_a and_o probable_a opinion_n hold_v by_o the_o great_a and_o best_a part_n of_o divine_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o express_v matter_n of_o faith_n because_o no_o such_o precept_n of_o christ_n appear_v in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o some_o divine_n stick_v not_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o fix_v of_o s._n peter_n see_v at_o rome_n be_v a_o thing_n proceed_v mere_o from_o his_o own_o free_a will_n and_o election_n &_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o successor_n to_o transport_v it_o from_o rome_n to_o antioch_n or_o any_o other_o city_n in_o which_o case_n as_o rome_n shall_v not_o then_o be_v the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n but_o antioch_n so_o neither_o shall_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o head_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o as_o now_o
clear_a that_o it_o be_v great_a impiety_n for_o a_o christian_n to_o doubt_v thereof_o s._n fulgentius_n say_v 11._o say_v de_fw-fr incarnate_a &_o great_a c._n 11._o that_o what_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v the_o christian_a world_n without_o hesitation_n believe_v to_o justice_n and_o doubt_v not_o to_o confess_v to_o salvation_n s._n peter_n surname_v chrysologus_fw-la exhort_v eutyches_n the_o archheretic_n thus_o chalced._n thus_o ep._n ad_fw-la eutych_n prafixa_fw-la act_n be_v council_n chalced._n we_o exhort_v thou_o reverend_a brother_n to_o lend_v a_o obedient_a ear_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o bless_a peter_n who_o live_v and_o rule_n in_o his_o own_o seat_n exhibit_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o i_o omit_v other_o testimony_n no_o less_o clear_a of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o john_n and_o maximianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n of_o venerable_n bede_n s._n maximus_n martyr_n theodorus_n studites_n rabanus_n and_o other_o former_o allege_v 4._o allege_v chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o from_o this_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o proceed_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n for_o the_o decision_n of_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n have_v ever_o recourse_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o many_o learned_a and_o holy_a doctor_n have_v send_v their_o writing_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o their_o time_n to_o be_v examine_v by_o they_o and_o approve_v if_o their_o doctrine_n be_v find_v to_o be_v orthodoxal_a or_o reprove_v if_o it_o be_v erroneous_a so_o do_v s._n augustine_n to_o zozimus_n the_o 4._o primate_fw-la of_o africa_n to_o theodorus_n the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n to_o innocentius_n s._n cyril_n to_o celestine_n theodoret_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o leo_n the_o great_a s._n anselme_n to_o vrbanus_n s._n bernard_n to_o innocentius_n other_o particular_n i_o omit_v have_v dwell_v long_o in_o this_o point_n already_o sect_n ii_o our_o second_o argument_n a_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n wherewith_o we_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n indefectibility_n in_o faith_n be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n math._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n &_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n origen_n s._n epiphanius_n s._n hierome_n s._n cyril_n rabanus_n and_o all_o other_o expositor_n understand_v heresy_n and_o arch-heretike_n by_o who_o as_o by_o gate_n man_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o contrary_o by_o rock_n they_o understand_v s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v against_o which_o heresy_n and_o whatsoever_o persecution_n raise_v by_o they_o have_v no_o more_o power_n to_o prevail_v than_o the_o furious_a wave_n of_o rage_a tempest_n against_o a_o rock_n firm_o seat_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sea_n they_o may_v beat_v and_o break_v themselves_o against_o it_o but_o destroy_v it_o they_o can_v and_o so_o experience_n teach_v for_o howbeit_o the_o heathenish_a persecutor_n and_o other_o enemy_n of_o christ_n have_v try_v their_o force_n against_o it_o and_o all_o the_o other_o patriarchall_a see_v have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n yet_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n god_n protect_v it_o no_o persecution_n no_o error_n have_v prevail_v nor_o ever_o shall_v prevail_v for_o she_o say_v s._n augustine_n donati_n augustine_n psal_n count_v part_n donati_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o neither_o against_o the_o rockon_v which_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n say_v origen_n math._n origen_n tract_n 1._o in_o math._n nor_o against_o the_o church_n itself_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v prevail_v upon_o this_o rock_n say_v s._n hierome_n 57_o hierome_n ep._n 57_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a see_v to_o damasus_n i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v he_o that_o gather_v else_o where_o scatter_v our_o lord_n say_v s._n epiphanius_n ancorato_n epiphanius_n in_o ancorato_n make_v peter_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n a_o strong_a rock_n upon_o who_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v heresy_n and_o arch-heretike_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o for_o the_o faith_n be_v every_o way_n fortify_v in_o he_o s._n chrysostome_n say_v math._n say_v hom._n 55._o in_o math._n our_o saviour_n promise_v to_o peter_n power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n &_o that_o the_o church_n have_v for_o her_o pastor_n and_o head_n a_o poor_a fisherman_n shall_v among_o the_o assalt_n of_o so_o many_o rage_a flood_n remain_v immovable_a and_o more_o firm_o fix_v and_o settle_v than_o the_o strong_a rock_n s._n cyril_n explicate_v the_o same_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n say_v math._n say_v apud_fw-la s._n thom._n in_o catena_n ad_fw-la c._n 16._o math._n according_a to_o this_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o apostolical_a church_n of_o peter_n persever_v in_o her_o bishop_n pure_a and_o free_a from_o all_o seduction_n and_o circumuention_n above_o all_o prelate_n and_o bishop_n and_o above_o all_o primate_fw-la of_o church_n and_o people_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o authority_n of_o peter_n and_o whereas_o other_o church_n have_v be_v stain_v with_o the_o error_n of_o some_o she_o alone_o remain_v establish_v firm_o and_o unconquerable_o silence_v and_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o all_o heretic_n possessor_n a_o famous_a african_a bishop_n and_o banish_v by_o the_o arian_n consult_v hormisdas_n pope_n about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faustus_n rhegiensis_n yield_v this_o reason_n 520._o reason_n extat_fw-la epistola_fw-la apud_fw-la baron_n anno_fw-la 520._o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o head_n as_o often_o as_o the_o health_n of_o the_o member_n be_v treat_v of_o for_o who_o have_v a_o more_o solicitous_a care_n of_o his_o subject_n or_o from_o who_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n when_o it_o be_v question_v to_o be_v require_v but_o from_o the_o precedent_n of_o that_o see_v who_o first_o rector_n hear_v from_o christ_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a assump_n great_a serm._n 2._o de_fw-fr sva_fw-la assump_n the_o solidity_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v praise_v in_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v perpetual_a and_o as_o that_o remain_v which_o peter_n believe_v so_o remain_v that_o also_o which_o christ_n institute_v in_o peter_n wherefore_o the_o disposition_n of_o truth_n remain_v and_o peter_n persevere_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o a_o rock_n have_v not_o leave_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o once_o undertake_v s._n maximianus_n a_o ancient_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n hig_o commend_v by_o celestine_n pope_n theodosium_n pope_n ep._n ad_fw-la theodosium_n and_o other_o 22._o other_o apud_fw-la spond_n anno_o 431._o n._n 22._o write_v to_o the_o orientall_n all_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v sincere_o acknowledge_v our_o lord_n and_z catholic_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n profess_v the_o true_a faith_n look_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o upon_o the_o sun_n and_o then_o speak_v of_o the_o reward_n which_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o peter_n for_o that_o excellent_a confession_n of_o his_o faith_n he_o add_v for_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n among_o all_o man_n of_o the_o world_n choose_v s._n peter_n to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o chair_n of_o doctor_n to_o be_v principal_o possess_v by_o a_o perpetual_a right_n of_o privilege_n to_o the_o end_n that_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v any_o divine_a and_o profound_a thing_n may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o oracle_n and_o doctrine_n of_o this_o instruction_n justinian_n the_o emperor_n make_v this_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o bonifacius_n pope_n papae_fw-la pope_n extat_fw-la inter_fw-la decreta_fw-la bonif._n papae_fw-la the_o beginning_n of_o salvation_n be_v to_o conserve_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a faith_n &_o no_o way_n to_o swerve_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o our_o forefather_n because_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n can_v fail_v say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o proof_n of_o deed_n have_v make_v good_a those_o word_n because_o in_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v always_o conserve_v inviolable_a and_o the_o same_o profession_n be_v make_v by_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la hormisd_v abiur_v the_o memory_n of_o all_o such_o as_o die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n full_o with_o she_o s._n gregory_n 37._o gregory_n l._n 6._o ep_n 37._o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o holy_a church_n be_v strengthen_v by_o
the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o fulfil_v it_o do_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o pharisy_n of_o who_o he_o say_v that_o they_o say_v and_o do_v not_o do_v any_o wrong_n to_o the_o chair_n in_o which_o they_o do_v sit_v do_v he_o not_o commend_v that_o chair_n of_o moses_n and_o reprehend_v they_o preserve_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o chair_n wherefore_o you_o in_o carp_a at_o the_o vice_n of_o some_o pope_n show_v yourself_o to_o be_v like_a to_o the_o donatist_n who_o say_v s._n augustine_n ibid._n augustine_n ibid._n have_v with_o wicked_a fury_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o as_o no_o vice_n of_o pope_n can_v justify_v their_o separation_n so_o neither_o can_v it_o you_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o history_n mention_v sin_n and_o scandal_n of_o some_o pope_n but_o yet_o of_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a bishop_n that_o have_v possess_v that_o seat_n for_o who_o excellent_a virtue_n and_o great_a labour_n in_o defend_v and_o propagate_a the_o catholic_a faith_n you_o ought_v rather_o to_o commend_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o for_o the_o vice_n of_o a_o few_o to_o defame_n both_o they_o and_o their_o seat_n though_o all_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o be_v holy_a like_o sem_fw-mi and_z japhet_n yet_o as_o s._n gregory_n admonish_v 1._o admonish_v l._n 25._o mor._n c._n 22._o &_o l._n 3._o pastoral_n c._n 1._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o you_o to_o imitate_v wicked_a cham_n in_o lay_v open_a their_o fault_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o among_o so_o many_o good_a there_o have_v be_v some_o few_o bad_a for_o among_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n there_o be_v a_o judas_n who_o wickedness_n as_o it_o be_v no_o defamation_n to_o the_o apostolical_a function_n so_o nether_a be_v they_o fault_n of_o a_o few_o bad_a pope_n to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o roman_a see_n but_o what_o if_o there_o have_v be_v many_o can_v their_o evil_a life_n excuse_v your_o evil_a faith_n shall_v their_o fall_n from_o god_n by_o frailty_n for_o a_o time_n justify_v your_o depart_n for_o ever_o from_o god_n church_n by_o contempt_n and_o obstinate_a rebellion_n if_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o prelate_n be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o forsake_v the_o church_n how_o can_v you_o remain_v in_o your_o protestant_a congregation_n for_o luther_n who_o your_o brother_n klebitius_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o saxonicall_a popedom_n term_v the_o pope_n of_o wittenberg_n be_v a_o jewd_a apostata_fw-la and_o have_v conversation_n with_o the_o devil_n caluin_n a_o stigmatical_a sodomite_n beza_n a_o especial_a pattern_n of_o wantonness_n and_o lust_n and_o if_o you_o look_v near_a home_n cranmer_n and_o other_o chief_a head_n in_o your_o english_a church_n have_v not_o be_v very_o great_a saint_n wherefore_o since_o you_o can_v but_o know_v that_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o some_o pope_n be_v a_o non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la to_o prove_v that_o they_o may_v err_v in_o their_o definition_n of_o faith_n you_o can_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o allege_v it_o to_o that_o end_n but_o only_o to_o ease_v your_o stomach_n of_o some_o part_n of_o that_o venom_n wherewith_o it_o be_v charge_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o yet_o not_o this_o without_o imposture_n for_o of_o the_o author_n which_o you_o bring_v massonius_n be_v a_o fabulous_a historian_n and_o forbid_v by_o the_o church_n prohib_fw-la church_n in_o indic_n lè_fw-la prohib_fw-la costerus_n as_o in_o that_o very_a place_n he_o confess_v that_o pope_n may_v be_v wicked_a in_o their_o life_n patemur_fw-la life_n enchir._n c._n 3._o §._o patemur_fw-la so_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o can_v propose_v to_o the_o church_n any_o heresy_n or_o error_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o ought_v to_o disprove_v but_o can_v &_o therefore_o divert_v from_o it_o to_o rail_v at_o the_o ill_a life_n of_o pope_n that_o have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v baronius_n and_o genebraed_n speak_v only_o of_o such_o pope_n as_o be_v intrude_v partly_o by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o emperor_n partly_o by_o the_o marquis_n of_o thuscia_n partly_o by_o the_o nobility_n of_o rome_n and_o prince_n of_o etruria_n this_o you_o ought_v to_o have_v observe_v with_o baronius_n and_o with_o he_o to_o have_v put_v your_o reader_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o singular_a care_n and_o providence_n wherewith_o christ_n protect_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o notwithstanding_o she_o suffer_v great_a calamity_n by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o these_o christian_a prince_n they_o she_o have_v ever_o do_v under_o any_o heathenish_a persecutor_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o any_o of_o those_o prince_n ever_o doubt_v of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o that_o any_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a pope_n albeit_o they_o come_v in_o by_o intrusion_n ever_o teach_v any_o thing_n repugnant_a to_o faith_n sect_n iii_o s._n paul_n subjection_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o acknowledgement_n thereof_o to_o prove_v that_o s._n paul_n believe_v not_o the_o domination_n of_o s._n peter_n for_o so_o you_o call_v it_o 57_o it_o pag._n 57_o and_o consequent_o of_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o universal_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n above_o all_o other_o or_o yet_o the_o absolute_a continuance_n thereof_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n you_o spend_v many_o argument_n throughout_o six_o whole_a section_n from_o the_o eight_o to_o the_o fourteen_o all_o which_o make_v against_o yourself_o it_o be_v frequent_a with_o you_o to_o call_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n their_o dominion_n if_o by_o dominion_n you_o understand_v a_o dominier_a power_n wherewith_o some_o temporal_a prince_n govern_v their_o subject_n s._n peter_n forbid_v that_o to_o all_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n 5.3_o prelate_n 1._o pet._n 5.3_o command_v they_o not_o to_o domineer_v in_o the_o clergy_n but_o if_o by_o dominion_n you_o understand_v a_o fatherly_a government_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o their_o infallible_a assurance_n in_o their_o definition_n of_o faith_n that_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n have_v such_o a_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n have_v be_v already_o prove_v &_o will_v be_v more_o confirm_v by_o the_o answer_n to_o your_o argument_n against_o s._n peter_n supremacy_n out_o of_o sundry_a passage_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o galathian_o seqq_fw-la galathian_o pag._n 58._o &_o seqq_fw-la the_o first_o be_v paul_n some_o time_n after_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o apostleship_n will_v not_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o peter_n or_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n lest_o he_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v authorize_v by_o they_o yet_o three_o year_n after_o that_o he_o take_v a_o journey_n thither_o of_o see_v peter_n doubtless_o for_o honour_n sake_n as_o one_o in_o order_n of_o apostleship_n most_o eminent_a but_o this_o be_v do_v voluntary_o in_o discretion_n &_o brotherly_a communion_n &_o not_o in_o subjection_n as_o the_o context_n show_v so_o you_o but_o the_o context_n show_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o the_o sacred_a expositor_n teach_v direct_o the_o contrary_a s._n ambrose_n locum_fw-la ambrose_n in_o eum_fw-la locum_fw-la it_o be_v fit_a that_o paul_n shall_v desire_v to_o see_v peter_n to_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n s._n hierome_n august_n hierome_n ep._n 89._o quae_fw-la est_fw-la 11._o inter_fw-la epist_n august_n peter_n be_v of_o so_o great_a authority_n that_o paul_n write_v in_o his_o epistle_n then_o after_o three_o year_n i_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n and_o again_o gal._n again_o in_o c._n 1._o ad_fw-la gal._n he_o go_v to_o see_v he_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v yield_v honour_n unto_o he_o theodoret_n gal._n theodoret_n in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la gal._n he_o go_v to_o yield_v unto_o peter_n as_o to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v fit_v and_o show_v that_o s._n paul_n hold_v peter_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n to_o who_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v refer_v he_o say_v leon._n say_v in_o ep_v ad_fw-la leon._n paul_n the_o preacher_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o trumpet_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n run_v to_o the_o great_a peter_n for_o a_o resolution_n of_o such_o doubt_n as_o rise_v about_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o law_n do_v minister_v occasion_n of_o strife_n to_o they_o that_o be_v at_o antioch_n oecumenius_n gal._n oecumenius_n in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la gal._n he_o go_v to_o see_v he_o as_o one_o great_a than_o himself_o and_o stay_v with_o he_o to_o honour_v he_o with_o his_o presence_n s._n chrysostome_n joan._n chrysostome_n hom._n 87._o in_o joan._n he_o go_v to_o see_v he_o above_o other_o because_o he_o be_v the_o mouth_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a company_n
and_o again_o gal._n again_o in_o c._n 1._o ad_fw-la gal._n he_o go_v to_o he_o as_o to_z one_o great_a than_o himself_o and_o that_o not_o in_o a_o vulgar_a manner_n but_o as_o he_o observe_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a verb_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o behold_v and_o admire_v he_o as_o a_o personage_n of_o great_a excellency_n and_o majesty_n as_o man_n go_v to_o behold_v and_o admire_v great_a and_o famous_a city_n for_o which_o cause_n and_o to_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o a_o perfect_a view_n of_o his_o person_n and_o behaviour_n notwithstanding_o his_o great_a employment_n he_o stay_v 15._o day_n with_o he_o if_o therefore_o the_o general_a accord_n of_o sacred_a expositor_n be_v of_o weight_n this_o 1._o place_n of_o s._n paul_n which_o you_o produce_v to_o disprove_v his_o subjection_n to_o s._n peter_n be_v so_o far_o from_o disprove_v it_o that_o it_o strong_o prove_v it_o and_o his_o own_o acknowledgement_n thereof_o again_o 14._o year_n after_o this_o time_n say_v s._n paul_n i_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o revelation_n to_o confer_v with_o they_o the_o gospel_n which_o i_o preach_v among_o the_o gentile_n from_o this_o place_n you_o argue_v 5●_n argue_v pag._n 5●_n that_o s._n paul_n hold_v himself_o equal_a in_o authority_n with_o s._n peter_n for_o s._n hierome_n who_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o salmeron_n say_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o confer_v a_o other_o thing_n to_o learn_v for_o among_o they_o that_o confer_v there_o be_v equality_n what_o equality_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n no_o for_o a_o subject_n may_v confer_v with_o his_o superior_a a_o collegiall_a with_o his_o rector_n but_o of_o doctrine_n and_o learn_v only_o as_o s._n hierome_n there_o declare_v add_v that_o between_o he_o that_o teach_v and_o he_o that_o learn_v he_o that_o learn_v be_v the_o lesser_a to_o wit_n in_o knowledge_n and_o therefore_o i_o grant_v that_o s._n paul_n go_v not_o to_o learn_v of_o s._n peter_n he_o have_v learn_v his_o gospel_n by_o revelation_n immediate_o from_o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o master_n that_o teach_v s._n peter_n nor_o do_v he_o receive_v from_o s._n peter_n or_o the_o other_o apostle_n power_n or_o authority_n to_o preach_v for_o that_o likewise_o he_o have_v immediate_o from_o christ_n &_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o say_v 2.6_o say_v gal._n 2.6_o the_o apostle_n add_v nothing_o to_o i_o nevertheless_o because_o he_o have_v not_o converse_v with_o christ_n in_o mortal_a flesh_n nor_o learn_v his_o doctrine_n from_o the_o other_o apostle_n which_o have_v be_v instruct_v by_o he_o before_o his_o death_n lest_o the_o gentile_n to_o who_o he_o preach_v be_v incense_v against_o he_o by_o false_a apostle_n may_v have_v any_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n or_o of_o his_o commission_n to_o preach_v for_o their_o satisfaction_n and_o that_o his_o preach_v may_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o without_o profit_n to_o the_o hearer_n he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o confer_v his_o gospel_n with_o the_o chief_a apostle_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o gentile_n may_v be_v certify_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n know_v it_o to_o have_v their_o approbation_n and_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o preach_v but_o you_o that_o borrow_v your_o argument_n from_o salmeron_n ●2_n salmeron_n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la gal._n disput_fw-la ●2_n why_o do_v you_o conceal_v what_o follow_v in_o his_o comment_n if_o say_v he_o it_o be_v needful_a for_o so_o great_a a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n to_o confer_v his_o gospel_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o peter_n how_o much_o more_o necessary_a be_v it_o that_o luther_n and_o caluin_n shall_v have_v bring_v they_o to_o be_v confer_v with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a with_o what_o pillar_n of_o the_o church_n do_v they_o confer_v it_o as_o paul_n do_v or_o with_o what_o miracle_n do_v they_o prove_v it_o they_o that_o can_v never_o persuade_v themselves_o so_o much_o as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o roman_a church_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n to_o confer_v nor_o to_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o trent_n that_o be_v gather_v for_o their_o soul_n health_n sake_n that_o be_v free_a and_o open_a to_o they_o that_o do_v courteous_o entreat_v they_o and_o with_o a_o safe_a conduct_n invite_v they_o to_o come_v so_o salmeron_n who_o word_n you_o think_v best_a not_o to_o mention_v both_o because_o they_o show_v your_o doctrine_n to_o be_v destitute_a of_o lawful_a authority_n and_o also_o because_o they_o refute_v the_o fabulous_a report_n which_o you_o 404._o you_o pag._n 404._o make_v out_o of_o thuanus_n your_o historian_n that_o diverse_a protestant_n come_v to_o the_o council_n and_o desire_v of_o the_o pope_n legate_n liberty_n to_o dispute_v but_o can_v not_o be_v admit_v for_o samleron_n be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n as_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n divine_n who_o therefore_o know_v what_o pass_v in_o the_o council_n better_o than_o thuanus_n and_o to_o salmerons_n testimony_n i_o add_v your_o own_o confession_n in_o the_o late_a declaration_n of_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o scotland_n against_o the_o pretend_a general_n assembly_n hold_v at_o glascow_n 13._o glascow_n pag._n 13._o and_o in_o your_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o also_o express_v the_o reason_n why_o you_o refuse_v to_o come_v set_v down_o in_o your_o own_o word_n and_o refell_v by_o doctor_n harding_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o same_o apology_n seqq_fw-la apology_n part._n ad_fw-la chap._n 7._o fol._n 293._o &_o seqq_fw-la how_o far_o therefore_o you_o be_v from_o the_o doctrine_n &_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n in_o this_o point_n not_o only_a salmeron_n but_o venerable_a bede_n and_o s._n anselme_n gal._n anselme_n in_o cap._n 2._o ad_fw-la gal._n have_v declare_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n who_o word_n both_o they_o and_o salmeron_n set_v down_o to_o this_o purpose_n if_o the_o apostle_n paul_n himself_o say_v s._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n l._n 28._o contra_fw-la paust_n c._n 4._o be_v call_v from_o heaven_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n have_v not_o find_v the_o apostle_n live_v that_o by_o communicate_v and_o confer_v his_o gospel_n with_o thew_v he_o may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o society_n the_o church_n will_v give_v no_o credit_n at_o all_o unto_o he_o but_o when_o they_o know_v that_o he_o preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o they_o do_v that_o he_o live_v in_o communion_n and_o unity_n with_o they_o and_o do_v work_v miracle_n as_o they_o do_v our_o lord_n thereby_o commend_v he_o he_o deserve_v so_o great_a authority_n that_o his_o word_n at_o this_o day_n be_v hear_v in_o the_o church_n even_o as_o if_o christ_n be_v hear_v to_o speak_v in_o he_o as_o he_o most_o true_o say_v with_o these_o father_n accord_v s._n hierome_n august_n hierome_n epist_n 89._o quae_fw-la est_fw-la 10._o inter_fw-la epist_n august_n define_v that_o paul_n have_v not_o have_v security_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v approve_v by_o peter_n sentence_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v with_o he_o so_o s._n hierome_n who_o testimony_n with_o the_o rest_n show_v how_o beggarly_a a_o cause_n you_o have_v since_o those_o very_a scripture_n which_o you_o produce_v in_o defence_n thereof_o be_v so_o many_o verdict_n against_o you_o a_o three_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 12.11_o paul_n 2._o cor._n 12.11_o you_o set_v down_o thus_o i_o be_o nothing_o inferior_a unto_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n but_o i_o can_v commend_v your_o translation_n for_o none_o but_o peter_n be_v chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n to_o who_o therefore_o s._n paul_n compare_v not_o himself_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n as_o you_o here_o and_o else_o where_o falsifi_a his_o word_n make_v he_o to_o say_v but_o to_o the_o chief_a apostle_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n and_o yet_o not_o that_o in_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v not_o but_o in_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o apostle_n in_o his_o great_a labour_n in_o his_o miracle_n in_o his_o revelation_n in_o his_o danger_n and_o journey_n undertake_v for_o the_o preach_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o context_n before_o and_o after_o show_v &_o s._n ambrose_n theodoret_n s._n anselme_n s._n thomas_n aquinas_n and_o other_o expositor_n declare_v locum_fw-la declare_v in_o eum_fw-la locum_fw-la but_o you_o urge_v the_o testimony_n of_o father_n fin_n father_n pag._n 60._o fin_n upon_o this_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o first_o that_o s._n ambrose_n say_v 12._o say_v in_o 1._o cor._n c._n 12._o paul_n be_v no_o less_o in_o dignity_n than_o peter_n you_o falsity_n s._n ambrose_n there_o compare_v not_o paul_n with_o peter_n in_o particular_a but_o speak_v of_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n in_o general_n say_v that_o albeit_o he_o be_v call_v to_o the_o
teach_v the_o people_n out_o of_o it_o for_o as_o s._n hilary_n say_v math._n say_v can._n 13._o in_o math._n the_o church_n be_v the_o ship_n in_o which_o the_o word_n of_o life_n be_v place_v and_o preach_v and_o which_o they_o that_o be_v out_o of_o it_o can_v understand_v but_o lie_v like_o sand_n barren_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n out_o of_o the_o ship_n of_o simon_n in_o particucular_a signify_v that_o christ_n dwell_v in_o that_o society_n which_o keep_v the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o peter_n and_o make_v his_o see_v the_o pastoral_a chair_n from_o whence_o by_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n he_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o gospel_n our_o lord_n say_v s._n ambrose_n 11._o ambrose_n serm._n 11._o go_v only_o into_o that_o ship_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o peter_n be_v master_n our_o lord_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o then_o he_o add_v that_o the_o church_n of_o peter_n be_v the_o ark_n of_o none_o to_o show_v that_o out_o of_o his_o church_n none_o can_v be_v save_v which_o doctrine_n s._n hierome_n likewise_o deliver_v compare_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o ark_n of_o none_o out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o be_v shall_v perish_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o flood_n moreover_o howbeit_o other_o ship_n be_v toss_v yet_o say_v s._n ambrose_n peter_n ship_n be_v not_o toss_v in_o her_o wisdom_n sail_v perfidiousness_n be_v absent_a luc._n absent_a l._n 5._o in_o c._n 5._o luc._n faith_n favour_v for_o how_o cold_a that_o ship_n be_v toss_v of_o which_o he_o be_v governor_n that_o be_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n and_o s._n bernard_n consider_v bernard_n l._n 2._o the_o consider_v the_o sea_n be_v the_o world_n the_o ship_n the_o church_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n like_o our_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o to_o govern_v one_o nation_n but_o all_o for_o many_o water_n be_v many_o people_n and_o therefore_o whereas_o each_o of_o the_o other_o have_v his_o peculiar_a ship_n to_o thou_o he_o speak_v to_o eugenius_n pope_n s._n peter_n successor_n be_v commit_v that_o one_o mighty_a great_a ship_n make_v of_o they_o all_o to_o wit_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o the_o ship_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o pastoral_a chair_n from_o whence_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v learn_v by_o all_o and_o the_o ark_n of_o none_o out_o of_o which_o none_o can_v be_v save_v and_o that_o therefore_o between_o his_o ship_n and_o that_o in_o which_o s._n paul_n sail_v as_o also_o between_o the_o privilege_n grant_v to_o the_o one_o and_o to_o the_o other_o there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n as_o between_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o all_o god_n elect_v and_o the_o corporal_a life_n of_o a_o few_o mariner_n and_o passenger_n that_o sail_v with_o s._n paul_n your_o seven_o and_o principal_a objection_n be_v 65._o be_v pag._n 65._o if_o s._n peter_n have_v write_v of_o himself_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v of_o himself_o say_v i_o have_v the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n this_o one_o will_v have_v seem_v to_o you_o a_o firm_a foundation_n than_o the_o word_n rock_n or_o any_o other_o of_o those_o scripture_n whereby_o you_o labour_v to_o erect_v a_o monarchy_n on_o s._n peter_n and_o by_o your_o consequence_n upon_o the_o pope_n over_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n answer_n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o solicitude_n and_o care_n one_o proceed_v from_o the_o obligation_n of_o justice_n the_o other_o mere_o out_o of_o the_o zeal_n of_o charity_n the_o supreme_a care_n which_o s._n peter_n have_v both_o of_o all_o church_n and_o of_o their_o pastor_n be_v of_o obligation_n of_o justice_n because_o he_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o they_o all_o as_o be_v supreme_a pastor_n over_o the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o pastor_n have_v obligation_n of_o justice_n to_o govern_v his_o flock_n and_o attend_v to_o the_o good_a thereof_o so_o have_v s._n peter_n to_o attend_v to_o the_o good_a &_o government_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o person_n thereof_o which_o function_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o s._n paul_n nor_o do_v christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n on_o he_o as_o he_o do_v on_o s._n peter_n and_o therefore_o that_o care_n he_o have_v of_o the_o universal_a church_n proceed_v from_o his_o great_a zeal_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o feruorous_a charity_n which_o make_v he_o travel_v so_o much_o in_o the_o conversion_n of_o soul_n sect_n vi_o what_o estimation_n s._n paul_n have_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o say_v 65._o say_v pag._n 65._o s._n paul_n have_v not_o by_o far_o so_o great_a estimation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o we_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v how_o prove_v you_o this_o because_o say_v you_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o the_o corinthian_n witness_n eusebius_n 24._o eusebius_n l._n 2._o c._n 24._o say_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n both_o found_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o that_o of_o rome_n this_o then_o be_v your_o argument_n dionysius_n bish_n of_o corinth_n say_v peter_n and_o paul_n found_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n and_o rome_n ergo_fw-la s._n paul_n have_v not_o by_o far_o so_o great_a estimation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v a_o witless_a consequence_n it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o account_v it_o a_o great_a honour_n and_o happiness_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v found_v by_o those_o two_o most_o glorious_a prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o it_o be_v also_o to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o found_v but_o moreover_o ennoble_v by_o they_o for_o as_o tertullian_n 36._o tertullian_n l._n de_fw-fr praescr_n c._n 36._o observe_v they_o pour_v into_o she_o all_o their_o doctrine_n together_o with_o their_o blood_n and_o enrich_v she_o with_o the_o inestimable_a treasure_n of_o their_o sacred_a body_n but_o her_o chief_a dignity_n and_o that_o which_o make_v she_o absolute_o the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n be_v that_o s._n peter_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n fix_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o end_v his_o life_n there_o leave_v the_o same_o dignity_n to_o his_o successor_n and_o they_o as_o occasion_n require_v cease_v not_o to_o send_v their_o pastoral_a admonition_n to_o the_o corinthian_n for_o when_o not_o long_o after_o s._n peter_n and_o paul_n have_v found_v a_o church_n among_o they_o they_o fall_v into_o error_n and_o dissension_n among_o themselves_o s._n clement_n pope_n successor_n to_o s._n peter_n write_v unto_o they_o say_v s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o potentissimas_fw-la literas_fw-la most_o effectual_a letter_n reduce_v they_o to_o peace_n and_o show_v they_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v new_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n soter_n pope_n not_o long_o after_o write_v also_o unto_o they_o and_o that_o the_o corinthian_n acknowledge_v these_o epistle_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v send_v unto_o they_o as_o from_o their_o mother_n church_n who_o doctrine_n they_o be_v to_o embrace_v and_o receive_v they_o as_o such_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o be_v dionysius_n their_o bishop_n and_o eusebius_n 22._o eusebius_n l._n 4._o hist._n c._n 22._o out_o of_o he_o testify_v they_o hold_v they_o in_o so_o great_a veneration_n that_o they_o use_v to_o read_v they_o public_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o saythfull_a but_o this_o you_o can_v not_o see_v or_o if_o you_o do_v see_v it_o be_v willing_a to_o conceal_v it_o as_o not_o be_v for_o your_o purpose_n 2._o whereas_o we_o in_o commendation_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o church_n be_v wont_a to_o allege_v those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n 1.8_o roman_n rom._n 1.8_o i_o give_v thanks_n to_o my_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o all_o you_o because_o your_o faith_n be_v renown_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n you_o say_v 66._o say_v pag._n 66._o that_o we_o upon_o this_o commendation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o those_o roman_n use_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o triumph_v as_o though_o that_o encomium_n with_o the_o same_o faith_n be_v hereditary_a to_o that_o church_n or_o as_o if_o at_o that_o day_n catholic_a and_o roman_a have_v be_v all_o one_o if_o in_o this_o testimony_n of_o s._n paul_n we_o triumph_v and_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o the_o roman_a faith_n to_o be_v all_o one_o and_o hereditary_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o do_v therein_o nothing_o more_o than_o
eusebius_n &_o nebrissensis_n prove_v the_o like_a by_o example_n of_o other_o nation_n and_o to_o what_o he_o say_v i_o add_v the_o reason_n which_o bless_v augustinus_n triumphus_fw-la a_o holy_a and_o ancient_a writer_n that_o live_v 400._o year_n since_o yield_v ●_o yield_v de_fw-fr potest_fw-la ecclesiact_n c._n 7._o art_n ●_o why_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o pope_n bull_n be_v sometime_o place_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n say_v he_o be_v less_o than_o peter_n great_a than_o peter_n and_o equal_a to_o peter_n he_o be_v equal_a to_o peter_n in_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v less_o than_o peter_n in_o ecclesiastical_a power_n for_o peter_n alone_o be_v cephas_n that_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o he_o be_v great_a than_o peter_n in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o election_n to_o the_o apostleship_n for_o he_o be_v choose_v by_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n &_o glorification_n &_o for_o this_o cause_n paul_n in_o the_o pope_n bull_n be_v place_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n &_o peter_n on_o the_o left_a so_o he_o have_v now_o answer_v the_o argument_n which_o hitherto_o you_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n and_o show_v that_o by_o allege_v they_o you_o convince_v your_o own_o doctrine_n of_o falsehood_n and_o prove_v we_o i_o must_v crave_v pardon_n if_o i_o ask_v you_o a_o question_n concern_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n which_o optatus_n ask_v the_o donatist_n concern_v some_o other_o of_o his_o epistle_n and_o s._n augustine_n concern_v they_o all_o how_o dare_v you_o say_v optatus_n parmen_fw-la optatus_n l._n ●_o count_v parmen_fw-la read_v s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n in_o who_o communion_n you_o be_v not_o you_o say_v s._n augustine_n 6._o augustine_n l._n 2._o the_o baptism_n c._n 6._o that_o have_v it_o and_o read_v it_o and_o say_v that_o you_o live_v according_a to_o it_o why_o do_v you_o not_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n to_o which_o it_o be_v send_v answer_v why_o have_v you_o separate_v yourselves_o &_o c_o choose_v which_o you_o will_v if_o then_o that_o be_v when_o donatus_n when_o luther_n when_o caluin_n begin_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v pollute_v with_o error_n it_o be_v perish_v for_o a_o church_n that_o hold_v false_a pernicious_a schismatical_a heretical_a blasphemous_a and_o antichristian_a doctrine_n with_o which_o you_o often_o charge_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n from_o whence_o then_o have_v donatus_n luther_n or_o caluin_n his_o begin_n where_o be_v he_o cathechize_v where_o baptize_v where_o ordain_v i_o conclude_v therefore_o as_o optatus_n do_v against_o the_o donatist_n know_v that_o you_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o i_o say_v to_o you_o as_o s._n augustine_n do_v to_o they_o 12._o they_o l._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 12._o you_o have_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o we_o read_v it_o and_o believe_v it_o and_o have_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o our_o communion_n from_o which_o we_o grieve_v with_o he_o donati_n he_o psal_n count_v part_n donati_n to_o see_v you_o lie_v cut_v of_o she_o be_v that_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o chap._n xiii_o whether_o s._n john_n the_o evangelist_n conceive_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n your_o tenet_n be_v 73._o be_v pag._n 73._o that_o s._n johns_n faith_n do_v not_o conceive_v the_o article_n of_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o proof_n thereof_o you_o assume_v that_o in_o his_o book_n of_o revelation_n he_o reveal_v the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v babylon_n &_o that_o autichrist_n shall_v have_v his_o seat_n there_o which_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v yet_o i_o see_v not_o which_o way_n it_o follow_v that_o john_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o s._n peter_n or_o ●o_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o let_v we_o examine_v the_o particular_n of_o your_o doctrine_n and_o proof_n sect_n i._o whether_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v babylon_n mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n say_v you_o ibid._n you_o ibid._n be_v the_o gener_fw-la all_o consent_n of_o our_o own_o jesuit_n and_o other_o divine_n but_o in_o prose_n hereof_o you_o can_v find_v no_o other_o jesuit_n nor_o divine_n to_o allege_v but_o ribera_n viegas_n and_o the_o rhemist_n who_o you_o abuse_v and_o falsify_v to_o make_v they_o serve_v your_o turn_n as_o i_o shall_v now_o declare_v the_o rhemist_n say_v you_o 74._o you_o pag._n 74._o do_v thus_o far_o grant_v as_o to_o say_v the_o great_a antichrist_n shall_v have_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n as_o it_o may_v well_o be_v though_o other_o think_v that_o jerusalem_n rather_o shall_v be_v his_o principal_a soat_n but_o your_o jesuit_n ribera_n and_o viegas_n both_o of_o they_o spanish_a doctor_n and_o public_a professor_n do_v confident_o aver_v the_o contrary_a and_o the_o one_o be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v a_o most_o notable_a fool_n that_o shall_v deny_v it_o but_o good_a sir_n by_o your_o leave_n this_o be_v a_o most_o notable_a untruth_n that_o which_o ribera_n say_v be_v that_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n rome_n shall_v be_v burn_v not_o only_o for_o her_o former_a sin_n of_o idolatry_n and_o persecute_v of_o christ_n under_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n but_o also_o for_o other_o sin_n that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n she_o shall_v commit_v under_o pagan_a king_n and_o that_o this_o be_v so_o certain_a out_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n that_o no_o man_n though_o never_o so_o foolish_a can_v deny_v it_o this_o ribera_n say_v and_o it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v that_o he_o who_o out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o ribera_n infer_v as_o you_o do_v that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n or_o that_o ribera_n say_v so_o be_v i_o will_v not_o say_v a_o notable_a fool_n but_o whether_o he_o deserve_v not_o that_o name_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n censure_n the_o doctrine_n of_o ribera_n viegas_n &_o the_o rhemist_n be_v that_o when_o s._n john_n call_v rome_n babylon_n he_o neither_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n nor_o yet_o of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o she_o be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a emperor_n or_o in_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a for_o in_o that_o estate_n the_o have_v say_v s._n hierome_n lovin_v hierome_n l_o 2._o cont_n lovin_v wipe_v out_o the_o blasphemy_n write_v in_o her_o forehead_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o christ._n in_o that_o estate_n marcell_n estate_n ep._n 17._o ad_fw-la marcell_n there_o be_v in_o rome_n the_o holy_a church_n there_o be_v the_o triumphant_a monument_n of_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n there_o be_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o gentility_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n daily_o advance_v itself_o on_o high_a wherefore_o when_o s._n john_n call_v rome_n babylon_n ribera_n viegas_n and_o the_o rhemist_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n expound_v he_o to_o give_v she_o that_o name_n as_o she_o be_v the_o head_n of_o paganism_n the_o mother_n of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o persecute_v the_o church_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n &_o martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n 17.6_o jesus_n apoc._n 17.6_o as_o she_o do_v under_o nero_n and_o domitian_n in_o s._n johns_n time_n &_o afterward_o under_o other_o pagan_a emperor_n when_o she_o put_v to_o death_n thirty_o pope_n successive_o one_o after_o another_o and_o as_o she_o shall_v do_v again_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o both_o ribera_n and_o viegas_n hold_v that_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n shall_v then_o fall_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o as_o well_o for_o her_o enormous_a sin_n ancient_o commit_v under_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n as_o also_o for_o other_o like_a which_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n she_o shall_v commit_v under_o heathenish_a king_n she_o shall_v be_v burn_v and_o consume_v with_o fire_n but_o that_o rome_n even_o then_o under_o pagan_n emperor_n be_v or_o hereafter_o under_o heathenish_a king_n shall_v be_v the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n neither_o ribera_n nor_o viegas_n affirm_v nor_o any_o way_n insinuate_v as_o it_o may_v appear_v out_o of_o their_o word_n which_o you_o here_o set_v down_o in_o latin_a mark_fw-mi latin_a pag._n 74._o mark_fw-mi for_o those_o word_n roma_fw-la sedes_fw-la antichristi_fw-la which_o you_o attribute_v to_o ribera_n be_v not_o he_o but_o foist_v in_o by_o yourself_o to_o father_n on_o he_o your_o own_o fiction_n
as_o a_o certain_a note_n or_o mark_v whereby_o orthodoxal_a people_n be_v distinguish_v from_o heretic_n as_o you_o have_v already_o hear_v 2._o hear_v chap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o out_o of_o pacianus_n s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o s._n augustine_n and_o contrariwise_o that_o they_o who_o to_o express_v their_o faith_n have_v take_v new_a name_n as_o the_o arian_n of_o arius_n the_o marcionist_n of_o martion_n the_o pelagian_o of_o pelagius_n the_o donatist_n of_o donatus_n &_o the_o like_a witness_n s._n irenaeus_n 20._o irenaeus_n l._n 1._o c._n 20._o s._n justine_n triphone_n justine_n in_o triphone_n lactantius_n 4.30_o lactantius_n divin_v institut_fw-la l._n 4.30_o s._n athanasius_n arian_n athanasius_n serm._n 1._o cont_n arian_n and_o s._n hierome_n fine_a hierome_n cont._n lucifer_n fine_a have_v be_v know_v thereby_o as_o by_o a_o undoubted_a mark_n to_o be_v heretic_n who_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o take_v new_a name_n know_v that_o the_o ancient_a name_n of_o catholic_a can_v not_o agree_v to_o they_o and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n you_o know_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_n &_o that_o you_o shall_v never_o be_v esteem_v such_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o call_v yourselves_o by_o a_o new_a name_n of_o protestant_n to_o distinguish_v yourselves_o from_o those_o who_o in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v and_o be_v still_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n by_o which_o neither_o we_o nor_o you_o understand_v any_o other_o than_o those_o which_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n catholic_a and_o roman_a be_v term_n convertible_a as_o have_v be_v prove_v 3._o prove_v chap._n 1._o sect_n 3._o and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o protestant_n speak_v not_o only_o to_o we_o but_o even_o among_o themselves_o ever_o call_v themselves_o protestant_n as_o know_v that_o by_o catholic_n no_o man_n understand_v any_o other_o but_o they_o that_o before_o luther_n begin_v be_v and_o be_v still_o know_v by_o that_o name_n and_o can_v never_o loose_v the_o possession_n of_o it_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n well_o know_v to_o ancient_a heretic_n who_o therefore_o abhor_v the_o name_n catholic_a so_o do_v gaudentius_n the_o donatist_n call_v it_o 23._o it_o apud_fw-la s._n aug._n l._n 1._o cont_n gaudent_fw-la c._n 23._o a_o humane_a fiction_n so_o do_v other_o heretic_n who_o speak_v in_o the_o lutheran_n language_n say_v 1565._o say_v praefat._n in_o nowm_fw-la testam_fw-la anni_fw-la 1565._o come_v o_o you_o fool_n and_o silly_a wretch_n that_o be_v common_o call_v catholic_n and_o learn_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o lie_v hide_v many_o age_n heretofore_o but_o be_v now_o reveal_v and_o show_v of_o late_a with_o these_o jump_n our_o protestant_n for_o beza_n k_n call_v it_o a_o vain_a word_n doctor_n humphrey_n 113._o humphrey_n in_o vita_fw-la juelli_fw-la p._n 113._o a_o empty_a term_n master_n sutcliffe_n 1._o sutcliffe_n challenge_n pag._n 1._o a_o fruitless_a name_n and_o other_o of_o you_o scoff_n at_o the_o word_n 7._o word_n doctor_n bristol_n motive_n pag._n 7._o nickname_v we_o cacolikes_n and_o cartholikes_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o lutheran_n reject_v a_o allegation_n out_o of_o luther_n because_o say_v they_o 154._o they_o in_o colloq_fw-la altemburg_n anno_o 1568._o pag._n 154._o be_v be_v not_o a_o phrase_n of_o luther_n that_o any_o thing_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v catholike_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n as_o lindanus_n dubitant_fw-la lindanus_n in_o dubitant_fw-la observe_v luther_n and_o other_o your_o new_a reformer_n in_o hatred_n of_o that_o name_n have_v corrupt_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o their_o catechism_n instead_o of_o i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n i_o believe_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o you_o english_a protestant_n insist_v in_o their_o step_n for_o the_o good_a will_v you_o bear_v to_o that_o name_n have_v leave_v it_o out_o of_o your_o bibles_n for_o whereas_o eusebius_n 12._o eusebius_n l._n 2._o histo_fw-la c._n 12._o report_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n peter_n john_n and_o jude_n be_v know_v in_o antiquity_n by_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_a epistle_n and_o therefore_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o instiles_a they_o in_o her_o bibles_n you_o in_o you_o of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o 1577._o which_o be_v yet_o currant_n among_o you_o have_v never_o be_v forbid_v have_v whole_o leave_v out_o that_o name_n and_o though_o since_o that_o time_n you_o have_v be_v admonish_v of_o your_o bad_a deal_n therein_o yet_o still_o in_o all_o your_o late_a bible_n you_o commit_v the_o same_o fault_n use_v the_o profane_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_a in_o lieu_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o style_v the_o catholic_a epistle_n the_o general_a epistle_n say_v the_o general_a epistle_n of_o james_n of_o peter_n etc._n etc._n who_o see_v not_o the_o absurdity_n of_o this_o translation_n for_o it_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a to_o translate_v catholic_a general_n as_o if_o when_o s._n hierome_n say_v ruffin_n say_v l._n 1._o apol_n advers_a ruffin_n if_o ruffinus_n call_v his_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n profess_v then_o be_v we_o catholic_n you_o shall_v translate_v then_o be_v we_o general_n or_o who_o s._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n contra_fw-la ep_n fundam_fw-la c._n 4._o report_v that_o catholic_n travail_v among_o heretic_n to_o distinguish_v their_o own_o church_n from_o heretical_a conventicless_a ask_v qua_fw-la itur_fw-la ad_fw-la catholicam_fw-la which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n you_o shall_v translate_v which_o be_v the_o way_n to_o the_o general_n all_o this_o show_v that_o you_o know_v yourselves_o not_o to_o be_v catholic_n since_o you_o seek_v as_o far_o forth_o as_o you_o can_v to_o suppress_v the_o name_n how_o therefore_o can_v you_o ask_v why_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n john_n and_o jude_n be_v call_v catholic_a as_o well_o as_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o peter_n i_o say_v you_o that_o call_v none_o of_o they_o catholic_a but_o in_o a_o profane_a manner_n general_n epistle_n and_o that_o very_o improper_o if_o not_o also_o false_o for_o some_o of_o they_o as_o the_o two_o last_o of_o s._n john_n be_v not_o write_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o general_n but_o to_o particular_a person_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o catholic_a church_n instile_v the_o epistle_n of_o james_n john_n and_o jude_n catholic_a epistle_n as_o well_o as_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o peter_n be_v because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v so_o it_o have_v be_v already_o show_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n 8._o augustine_n chap._n 12._o sect_n 8._o your_o second_o question_n be_v 81._o be_v pag._n 81._o why_o s._n paul_n be_v so_o sole_a as_o of_o himself_o to_o anathematise_v the_o false_a apostle_n i_o answer_v that_o not_o only_a s._n peter_n but_o each_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o anathematise_v offender_n for_o their_o apostolical_a jurisdiction_n be_v universal_a over_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o yet_o not_o ordinary_a at_o s._n peter_n be_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o descend_v to_o their_o successor_n sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o title_n of_o vicar_n of_o christ_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n your_o three_o question_n be_v 82._o be_v pag._n 82._o why_o s._n paul_n do_v absolve_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n if_o as_o bellarmine_n pretend_v that_o title_n whole_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o argument_n of_o his_o succession_n from_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o argument_n you_o urge_v again_o afterward_o 242._o afterward_o pag._n 242._o as_o of_o principal_a note_n and_o confirm_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n ignatius_n of_o eusebius_n pope_n and_o genebrard_n who_o observe_v that_o tertullian_n call_v paul_n vicar_n of_o christ_n answer_n the_o name_n of_o vicar_n may_v be_v give_v to_o any_o one_o that_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o another_o king_n be_v vicar_n of_o god_n in_o thing_n belong_v to_o civil_a government_n bishop_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v they_o to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n 20.28_o god_n act._n 20.28_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v legate_n god_n as_o it_o be_v exhort_v by_o they_o 5.20_o they_o 2._o cor._n 5.20_o and_o thereby_o s._n paul_n have_v power_n to_o absolve_v the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n or_o as_o his_o vicar_n as_o the_o rhemist_n expound_v but_o the_o supreme_a vicar_n and_o chief_a lieutenant_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o s._n peter_n be_v so_o now_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o
successor_n and_o so_o much_o the_o holy_a counsel_n have_v declare_v he_o that_o have_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n say_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a arab._n nice_a can._n 39_o ex_fw-la graecis_fw-la &_o arab._n be_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o patriarch_n for_o as_o peter_n be_v so_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a to_o who_o power_n be_v give_v over_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o all_o their_o people_n as_o one_o that_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christour_n lord_n over_o all_o people_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n and_o the_o general_a council_n of_o lion_n periculum_fw-la lion_n in_o s●xt_n decret_n cap._n vbi_fw-la periculum_fw-la call_v the_o pope_n the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o successor_n of_o peter_n the_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o guide_n of_o our_o lord_n flock_v and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n s._n bernard_n confid_v bernard_n l._n 2._o the_o confid_v say_v peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n like_o our_o lord_n show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o govern_v not_o one_o nation_n but_o all_o for_o many_o water_n be_v many_o people_n by_o this_o you_o see_v that_o when_o we_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n we_o take_v the_o name_n of_o vicar_n antonomastice_v for_o he_o that_o bear_v the_o person_n and_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n as_o universal_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o which_o sense_n neither_o tertullian_n attribute_v that_o name_n to_o s._n paul_n as_o genebrard_n observe_v in_o that_o very_a place_n in_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o for_o the_o contrary_a ●80_n contrary_a chrou_fw-fr l._n 3._o pag._n 479._o ●80_n nor_o do_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n agree_v to_o any_o other_o bishop_n but_o only_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o genebrard_n also_o testify_v against_o you_o in_o these_o word_n christ_n have_v no_o successor_n because_o he_o still_o live_v but_o he_o have_v vicar_n and_o minister_n on_o earth_n among_o which_o peter_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o successor_n have_v the_o sovereignty_n as_o all_o antiquity_n without_o exception_n have_v believe_v and_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n we_o reckon_v their_o succession_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v till_o the_o world_n end_n as_o one_o of_o the_o mark_n that_o hold_v we_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n s._n ignatius_n and_o eusebius_n pope_n you_o likewise_o abuse_v for_o although_o deacon_n be_v in_o their_o degree_n minister_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n yet_o s._n ignatius_n say_v it_o not_o but_o only_o command_v the_o trallian_n to_o who_o he_o write_v to_o reverence_v they_o as_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o as_o guardian_n of_o that_o place_n and_o so_o much_o his_o own_o word_n set_v down_o by_o you_o 15._o you_o pag._n 242._o n._n 15._o in_o greek_a declare_v the_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n you_o falsify_v he_o say_v caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la christ_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n you_o corrupt_o translate_v there_o be_v one_o head_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n to_o signify_v that_o there_o be_v no_o one_o head_n thereof_o under_o christ_n as_o his_o chief_a lieutenant_n and_o vicar_n on_o earth_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o eusebius_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o word_n which_o you_o object_n and_o to_o this_o you_o add_v a_o other_o corruption_n for_o where_o eusebius_n say_v priest_n be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n you_o in_o your_o english_a leave_n out_o the_o word_n priest_n for_o the_o good_a will_v you_o bear_v to_o that_o name_n and_o function_n who_o vicar_n may_v he_o be_v think_v to_o be_v that_o deal_v so_o imposterous_o but_o you_o object_n 82._o object_n pag._n 82._o s._n paul_n to_o avoid_v schism_n among_o the_o people_n will_v not_o have_v they_o adhere_v to_o any_o one_o man_n no_o more_o to_o cephas_n that_o be_v peter_n then_o to_o paul_n or_o apollo_n whereas_o your_o roman_a cephas_n will_v have_v teach_v s._n paul_n a_o contrary_a lesson_n say_v that_o they_o who_o adhere_v unto_o cephas_n can_v be_v call_v schismatic_n as_o those_o who_o hold_v of_o apollo_n because_o cephas_n be_v the_o rock_n whereupon_o the_o church_n be_v build_v answer_n that_o cephas_n be_v the_o ministerial_a rock_n on_o which_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n be_v a_o truth_n assert_v by_o christ_n and_o by_o all_o the_o orthodoxal_a writer_n that_o have_v live_v in_o the_o church_n &_o therefore_o with_o great_a reason_n they_o have_v pronounce_v he_o that_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o sinner_n a_o schismatic_a a_o heretic_n and_o not_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n their_o word_n i_o need_v not_o repeat_v you_o have_v hear_v they_o already_o 4._o already_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o and_o tell_v we_o now_o do_v those_o father_n teach_v s._n paul_n a_o lesson_n contrary_n to_o our_o doctrine_n so_o you_o say_v but_o misunderstand_v s._n paul_n for_o s._n augustine_n and_o s._n gregory_n expound_v he_o to_o speak_v these_o word_n against_o they_o that_o contemn_v christ_n do_v not_o build_v their_o faith_n upon_o he_o but_o upon_o man_n as_o upon_o head_n not_o subordinate_a to_o he_o 38_o he_o l._n 4._o ep_n 38_o or_o to_o use_v s._n gregory_n word_n extra_fw-la christum_fw-la out_o of_o christ._n paul_n the_o apostle_n say_v s._n augustine_n dom._n augustine_n serm._n 13._o de_fw-fr verb._n dom._n know_v himself_o to_o be_v choose_v and_o christ_n to_o be_v contemn_v say_v what_o be_v christ_n divide_v be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n in_o like_a manner_n expound_v s._n anselme_n and_o s._n thomas_n loc_fw-la thomas_n in_o eum_fw-la loc_fw-la say_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v against_o those_o that_o make_v many_o christ_n and_o many_o author_n of_o grace_n what_o force_n then_o have_v this_o scripture_n against_o we_o who_o hold_v s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n to_o be_v vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o reverence_n and_o obey_v they_o because_o they_o be_v his_o vicar_n so_o far_o we_o be_v from_o contemn_v he_o or_o set_v up_o another_o head_n different_a from_o he_o as_o the_o false_a apostle_n and_o some_o of_o the_o corinthian_n seduce_v by_o they_o do_v for_o which_o the_o apostle_n reprehend_v they_o you_o may_v with_o more_o truth_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o these_o word_n with_o s._n chrysostome_n locum_fw-la chrysostome_n in_o hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la that_o paul_n acknowledge_v s._n peter_n to_o be_v his_o superior_a because_o he_o speak_v ascend_v by_o gradation_n that_o so_o he_o may_v place_v peter_n above_o himself_o and_o next_o to_o christ_n sect_n iii_o whether_o s._n paul_n reckon_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n give_v the_o pope_n any_o place_n among_o they_o if_o s._n paul_n say_v you_o 82._o you_o pag._n 82._o have_v be_v of_o our_o say_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o he_o allege_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n twice_o first_o apostle_n than_o prophet_n after_o doctor_n and_o again_o some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n he_o shall_v have_v allege_v peter_n among_o they_o and_o the_o union_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o a_o true_a note_n of_o the_o church_n sir_n you_o may_v be_v please_v to_o take_v for_o a_o answer_n the_o fearful_a example_n which_o doctor_n sanders_n 690._o sanders_n vifib_n monarch_n l._n 7._o pag._n 690._o relate_v of_o one_o wright_n a_o doctor_n of_o law_n and_o archdeacon_n of_o oxford_n who_o after_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o england_n be_v loath_a to_o loose_v his_o place_n fall_v one_o day_n in_o a_o sermon_n on_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n say_v here_o you_o find_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o when_o he_o have_v utter_v be_v present_o strike_v with_o a_o vehement_a disease_n &_o as_o it_o be_v sudden_o become_v dumb_a he_o be_v carry_v from_o the_o pulpit_n not_o to_o dinner_n as_o he_o have_v intend_v but_o to_o bed_n where_o the_o eight_o day_n after_o he_o end_v his_o life_n i_o fear_v that_o this_o answer_n howbeit_o it_o be_v from_o god_n will_v not_o please_v you_o s._n damascen_n will_v give_v you_o another_o for_o with_o he_o i_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o you_o who_o to_o flatter_v secular_a prince_n grant_v they_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n make_v they_o head_n thereof_o where_o among_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n reckon_v by_o s._n paul_n you_o with_o all_o your_o wisdom_n can_v sin_v any_o place_n for_o secular_a prince_n or_o magistrate_n or_o any_o mention_n
the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n to_o the_o world_n why_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n say_v to_o pope_n symmachus_n basileae_n symmachus_n in_o volume_n orthodoxograph_n impres_n basileae_n you_o be_v teach_v daily_o by_o peter_n your_o sacred_a doctor_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o you_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n why_o do_v amator_fw-la a_o african_a bishop_n write_v to_o siluerius_n pope_n in_o banishment_n silver_n banishment_n ep._n ad_fw-la silver_n what_o do_v you_o think_v become_v of_o we_o when_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n why_o do_v that_o emperor_n leo_n surname_v the_o wise_a say_v petro._n say_v serm._n de_fw-fr s_o petro._n that_o christ_n make_v peter_n prince_n of_o pastor_n and_o require_v of_o he_o the_o care_n of_o feed_v his_o flock_n as_o a_o return_n of_o his_o love_n why_o do_v the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonate_a and_o the_o six_o council_n general_a call_v agatho_n the_o universal_a arch-pastor_n 18._o arch-pastor_n ep._n ad_fw-la synod_n apost_n in_fw-ge ●_o synodo_fw-la act._n 18._o you_o say_v they_o to_o the_o council_n of_o the_o west_n and_o the_o universal_a arch-pastor_n by_o your_o procurator_n have_v be_v present_a at_o our_o council_n why_o do_v the_o second_o general_a council_n of_o lion_n peric_a lion_n sext._n decret_a c._n vbi_fw-la peric_a call_v gregory_n the_o ten_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o guide_n of_o our_o lord_n flock_v and_o final_o why_o do_v s._n bernard_n considerate_a bernard_n l._n 2._o the_o considerate_a say_v to_o eugenius_n pope_n to_o you_o be_v commit_v the_o sheep_n not_o of_o one_o city_n or_o country_n but_o all_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n without_o exception_n what_o think_v you_o m._n doctor_n these_o father_n and_o counsel_n find_v the_o pope_n among_o the_o pastor_n reckon_v by_o s._n paul_n and_o believe_v he_o to_o be_v the_o arch-pastor_n and_o pastor_n of_o all_o pastor_n under_o christ_n but_o you_o that_o shut_v your_o eye_n against_o the_o light_n cold_a not_o discern_v he_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o doctor_n which_o all_o antiquity_n have_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v due_a to_o s._n peter_n and_o in_o he_o to_o his_o successor_n s._n hippolytus_n martyr_n say_v mundi_fw-la say_v orat_fw-la de_fw-la consummate_v mundi_fw-la peter_n the_o prince_n the_o rock_n of_o faith_n he_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o chief_a of_o the_o disciple_n s._n chrysostome_n call_v he_o paul_n he_o orat._n encom_n in_o pet._n ac_fw-la paul_n doctor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o master_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n union_n florence_n in_o light_v union_n with_o the_o accord_n both_o of_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n define_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o true_a vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o all_o christian_n nor_o do_v this_o title_n agree_v to_o he_o as_o it_o do_v to_o other_o but_o in_o a_o far_o more_o noble_a and_o excellent_a manner_n for_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o his_o chair_n say_v 160._o say_v ep._n 160._o the_o heavenly_a master_n have_v place_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o unity_n the_o doctrine_n of_o verity_n to_o you_o say_v s._n basil_n to_o damasus_n pope_n diac_n pope_n ep._n 69._o per_fw-la sabin_n diac_n it_o be_v give_v by_o our_o saviour_n to_o discern_v between_o what_o be_v counterfiete_a and_o what_o be_v pure_a and_o without_o any_o diminution_n to_o teach_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n and_o s._n hierome_n ruffin_n hierome_n l._n 1._o apol._n advers_a ruffin_n that_o though_o a_o angel_n shall_v preach_v otherwise_o then_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v whereof_o maximianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n yield_v the_o reason_n say_v oriental_n say_v ep._n ad_fw-la oriental_n the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n among_o all_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n select_v s._n peter_n to_o who_o he_o grant_v the_o chair_n of_o doctor_n to_o be_v principal_o possess_v by_o a_o perpetual_a right_n of_o privilege_n that_o whosoever_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v any_o profound_a and_o divine_a thing_n may_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o oracle_n and_o doctrine_n of_o this_o instruction_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o man_n that_o can_v deny_v this_o truth_n if_o he_o credit_v the_o ancient_a father_n teach_v that_o the_o privilege_n give_v to_o s._n peter_n of_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n do_v not_o die_v with_o he_o but_o be_v in_o he_o grant_v to_o his_o successor_n in_o regard_n whereof_o the_o counsel_n have_v send_v their_o decree_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o he_o &_o s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n theodoret_n s._n cyril_n venerable_n bede_n s._n anselme_n s._n bernard_n and_o many_o other_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a doctor_n of_o god_n church_n have_v submit_v their_o writing_n to_o the_o several_a pope_n of_o their_o time_n to_o be_v examine_v &_o approve_a or_o reprove_v according_a to_o their_o judgement_n sect_n iv_o doctor_n morton_n rail_v against_o the_o inquisition_n you_o object_n 84_o object_n pag._n 83._o 84_o that_o s._n peter_n as_o a_o elder_n exhort_v the_o elder_n or_o bishop_n feed_v the_o flock_n of_o god_n not_o dominier_v over_o god_n heritage_n what_o may_v be_v infer_v from_o hence_o say_v you_o we_o may_v understand_v in_o your_o second_o challenge_n but_o you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v not_o to_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o scripture_n from_o your_o challenge_n but_o from_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o god_n church_n who_o out_o of_o it_o show_v that_o s._n peter_n have_v &_o practise_v the_o authority_n of_o supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o because_o s._n peter_n write_v to_o bishop_n command_v they_o not_o to_o domineer_v in_o the_o clergy_n fin_n clergy_n see_v above_o chap._n 9_o fin_n you_o take_v occasion_n to_o rail_v against_o the_o romish_a inquisition_n first_o by_o make_v a_o relation_n of_o your_o own_o 85._o own_o pag._n 85._o no_o less_o false_a than_o spiteful_a of_o imprisonment_n famishment_n torment_n and_o rope_n to_o strangle_v prisoner_n and_o all_o in_o tenebris_fw-la work_v of_o darkness_n employ_v against_o all_o believer_n receyver_n defender_n and_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n and_o to_o this_o your_o relation_n you_o add_v another_o like_a of_o cornelius_n agrippa_n ibid._n agrippa_n ibid._n who_o you_o know_v to_o be_v a_o magician_n a_o heretic_n and_o a_o forbid_a author_n and_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o call_v his_o lie_n our_o confession_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n you_o bring_v thuanus_n ibid._n thuanus_n ibid._n who_o we_o own_v not_o but_o bequeath_v he_o to_o you_o as_o one_o who_o by_o praise_v the_o huguenot_n and_o their_o doctrine_n and_o by_o speak_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n sufficient_o declare_v what_o he_o be_v now_o as_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o who_o see_v not_o the_o absurdity_n of_o your_o argument_n which_o reduce_v to_o a_o few_o word_n be_v the_o inquisition_n be_v severe_a in_o punish_v heretic_n especial_o such_o as_o have_v abjure_v their_o heresy_n before_o a_o judge_n relapse_n into_o the_o same_o again_o and_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o infect_v other_o ergo_fw-la salvation_n may_v behad_fw-mi out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v lawful_a to_o depart_v from_o her_o faith_n &_o communion_n or_o ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n for_o these_o be_v the_o point_n in_o proof_n whereof_o your_o grand_a imposture_n whole_o insi_v that_o you_o know_v all_o these_o illation_n to_o be_v absurd_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o you_o be_v content_v that_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o judgement_n shall_v know_v you_o to_o be_v absurd_a so_o that_o thereby_o you_o may_v make_v the_o roman_a church_n hateful_a to_o simple_a soul_n that_o want_v learning_n and_o judgement_n to_o discern_v your_o imposture_n that_o jew_n mahometans_n and_o heretic_n hate_v the_o inquisition_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n malefactor_n hate_v their_o judge_n &_o thief_n the_o gallows_n how_o say_v s._n augustine_n 166._o augustine_n ep._n 166._o can_v he_o that_o have_v a_o ill_a suit_n praise_v the_o judge_n by_o who_o he_o have_v be_v convict_v and_o else_o where_o 50._o where_o tract_n 11._o in_o joan._n &_o ep_v 48._o &_o 50._o he_o declare_v that_o as_o they_o which_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o sidrach_n misach_n and_o abdenago_n be_v just_o punish_v by_o the_o edict_n of_o nabuchodonosor_n so_o heretic_n because_o they_o draw_v man_n from_o christ_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n just_o punish_v according_a to_o the_o law_n make_v against_o
catholic_a and_o 170._o and_o cont._n gand._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o serm._n 131._o the_o temp_n &_o ep_v 170._o the_o interpretation_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o none_o else_o but_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o universality_n agree_v to_o none_o but_o to_o she_o all_o sect_n lurk_v in_o corner_n wherefore_o you_o not_o only_o inconsiderat_o but_o against_o yourself_o produce_v s._n augustine_n here_o 89._o here_o pag._n 89._o and_o optatus_n afterward_o 341._o afterward_o pag_n 341._o to_o prove_v that_o your_o protestant_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n s._n augustine_n say_v 8._o say_v l_o the_o pastor_n c._n 8._o not_o all_o heretic_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o yet_o there_o be_v heretic_n spread_v over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o earth_n some_o here_o some_o there_o yet_o they_o be_v want_v no_o where_n they_o know_v not_o one_o another_o one_o fact_n for_o example_n in_o africa_n another_o heresy_n in_o the_o east_n another_o in_o egypt_n another_o in_o mesopotamia_n in_o diverse_a place_n they_o be_v diverse_a one_o mother_n pride_n have_v beget_v they_o all_o as_o our_o one_o mother_n the_o catholic_a church_n have_v bring_v forth_o all_o faithful_a people_n disperse_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o say_v s._n augustine_n to_o the_o donatist_n and_o so_o say_v we_o to_o you_o there_o be_v diverse_a sectc_n in_o the_o world_n wiclefist_n in_o bohemia_n but_o in_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o there_o be_v lutheran_n in_o germany_n in_o denmark_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o there_o be_v ridge_v caluinist_n in_o geneva_n france_n and_o scotland_n to_o who_o you_o may_v add_v your_o english_a puritan_n but_o in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n they_o be_v not_o there_o be_v protestant_n a_o more_o temperate_a sort_n of_o caluinist_n in_o england_n but_o out_o of_o england_n they_o be_v not_o these_o therefore_o and_o all_o other_o sect_n of_o heretic_n whatsoever_o be_v confine_v to_o a_o few_o country_n and_o therefore_o none_o of_o they_o can_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v universal_o speed_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v &_o therefore_o she_o and_o none_o else_o but_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n optatus_n speak_v also_o to_o the_o donatist_n say_v parmen_fw-la say_v l._n 2._o contra_fw-la parmen_fw-la you_o will_v have_v the_o church_n to_o be_v where_o you_o be_v and_o you_o will_v have_v it_o not_o to_o be_v where_o you_o be_v not_o that_o it_o may_v be_v with_o you_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o africa_n and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v with_o we_o you_o will_v not_o have_v it_o to_o be_v in_o almost_o innumerable_a land_n province_n and_o country_n where_o we_o be_v and_o you_o be_v not_o so_o we_o say_v to_o protestant_n you_o will_v have_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v in_o england_n where_o you_o be_v but_o you_o will_v not_o have_v it_o to_o be_v in_o so_o many_o other_o country_n of_o europe_n africa_n asia_n and_o america_n almost_o innumerable_a where_o we_o be_v &_o you_o be_v not_o if_o your_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n if_o it_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n must_v be_v we_o say_v to_o you_o as_o s._n augustine_n do_v to_o the_o donatist_n 163._o donatist_n ep._n 163._o give_v we_o form_v letter_n to_o man_n of_o your_o faith_n and_o communion_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n this_o you_o can_v do_v but_o we_o can_v for_o we_o be_v not_o only_o in_o country_n almost_o innumerable_a of_o europe_n africa_n asia_n and_o america_n where_o you_o be_v not_o but_o we_o be_v also_o in_o england_n in_o france_n and_o all_o other_o country_n in_o which_o you_o be_v we_o therefore_o can_v give_v you_o letter_n of_o communion_n to_o man_n of_o our_o religion_n profess_v the_o faith_n &_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n as_o well_o in_o place_n where_o you_o be_v as_o where_o you_o be_v not_o the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o ●●e_v all_o one_o and_o ●on●_n but_o she_o be_v universal_o spread_v over_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n whersoever_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v know_v and_o therefore_o if_o christ_n have_v any_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n none_o but_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o word_n which_o you_o object_n out_o of_o the_o conference_n of_o carthage_n which_o in_o some_o copy_n be_v join_v to_o opt●tus_n be_v neither_o he_o nor_o s._n augustine_n but_o of_o balduinus_n a_o late_a protestant_a writer_n of_o small_a credit_n but_o be_v they_o who_o you_o please_v they_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o your_o purpose_n for_o no_o man_n doubt_n but_o that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n begin_v at_o jerusalem_n where_o his_o gospel_n be_v first_o preach_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o from_o thence_o by_o degree_n spread_v over_o the_o world_n so_o whosoever_o be_v in_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n universal_o spread_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n and_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o his_o mother_n as_o s._n augustine_n profess_v himself_o to_o have_v but_o withal_o he_o teach_v donat._n teach_v psal_n count_v part_n donat._n and_o so_o do_v all_o antiquity_n that_o this_o catholic_a church_n so_o spread_v over_o the_o world_n be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n can_v overcome_v and_o so_o do_v s._n hierome_n say_v 57_o say_v ep._n 57_o to_o damasus_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o this_o rock_n in_o regard_v whereof_o he_o convince_v all_o they_o that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n s._n augustine_n donat._n augustine_n psal_n count_v part_n donat._n grieve_v i●_n see_v the_o dou●tist●l_v you_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o exhort_v they_o as_o reunite_v themselves_o to_o she_o as_o branch_n to_o their_o vine_n sect_n ii_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n hierome_n concern_v the_o church_n catholic_a what_o his_o judgement_n be_v you_o have_v partly_o hear_v 〈◊〉_d ●●eli●●●●●_n the_o roman_a see_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v build_v he_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n and_o 57_o and_o ep._n 57_o ●eld_v you_o that_o refuse_v her_o communion_n to_o be_v a_o profane_a person_n belong_v to_o 〈◊〉_d ●●brist_n he_o hold_v she_o to_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈…〉_o whosoever_o else_o shall_v be_v find_v at_o the_o ●●●●ing_a 〈…〉_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d his_o judgement_n be_v lucifer_n be_v dial._n count_v lucifer_n that_o if_o christ_n 〈…〉_o church_n diffuse_v throughout_o the_o world_n as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v ●hat_n w●s_v ordi●●●_n only_o as_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o lucif●ri●n●_n against_o who_o he_o write_v be_v or_o only_o in_o a_o few_o northern_a part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o your_o protestant_a congrega●●●●_n 〈◊〉_d fit_a i●●e_a ●●●●creding_n p●or●_n his_o judgement_n be_v ibid._n be_v ibid._n that_o 〈◊〉_d ●or●●ayne_o in_o that_o church_n which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o apostle_n d●●●th_o until_o this_o day_n which_o be_v none_o else_o but_o the_o roman_a 〈◊〉_d in_o she_o alone_o there_o have_v be_v and_o still_o be_v a_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n unto_o vrban_n the_o eight_o who_o 〈◊〉_d g●●●●●e●h_v that_o church_n whereas_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o succession_n be_v not_o either_o whole_o decay_v or_o have_v not_o be_v often_o interrupt_v and_o break_v of_o by_o heretic_n or_o arch-heretike_n those_o church_n be_v whole_o possess_v by_o they_o his_o judgement_n be_v that_o which_o he_o declar●●_n when_o he_o say_v of_o ruffinus_n ruffin_n ruffinus_n l._n 1._o apol._n advers_a ruffin_n which_o faith_n do_v he_o call_v he_o be_v if_o that_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v than_o we_o be_v catholic_n and_o speak_v to_o ruffinus_n ibid._n ruffinus_n ibid._n know_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n commend_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n admit_v not_o such_o delusion_n though_o a_o angel_n shall_v teach_v otherwise_o th●●●●●●eth_v be_v on_o ●●●●ivered_v it_o can_v be_v alter_v be_v sense_v 〈◊〉_d paul_n ●●thority_n he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o say_v to_o such_o as_o you_o be_v ocean_n be_v ep._n 6._o ad_fw-la pammach_n &_o ocean_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o avouch_v no●_n sect_n i_o pray_v thou_o have_v respect_n to_o
the_o roman_a ear_n spare_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v praise_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n 8._o judgement_n ep._n 8._o when_o advise_v demotrias_n to_o avoid_v the_o cruel_a tempest_n of_o heresy_n which_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o eastern_a part_n at_o that_o time_n when_o anastasius_n of_o happy_a and_o holy_a memory_n goa●●ned_v the_o roman_a church_n attempt_v to_o pollute_v and_o corrupt_v the_o sincerity_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v commend_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o prescribe_v she_o this_o rule_n that_o the_o keep_v fast_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n innocentius_n son_n and_o successor_n to_o anastasius_n in_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o say_v galat_n say_v proom_n lib._n 2._o comment_fw-fr ad_fw-la galat_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n be_v praise_v where_o be_v there_o so_o great_a concourse_n to_o church_n and_o to_o martyr_n sepulchre_n where_o sound_v amen_n like_o thunder_n from_o he_o even_o etc._n etc._n not_o that_o the_o roman_n have_v any_o other_o faith_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o that_o there_o be_v in_o they_o more_o devotion_n and_o simplicity_n of_o faith_n he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o say_v to_o marcelia_n 17._o marcelia_n ep._n 17._o in_o rome_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n there_o be_v the_o trophy_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n there_o be_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n celebrate_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o gentility_n tread_v under_o foot_n the_o christian_a name_n daily_o advance_v itself_o on_o high_a he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o say_v 16._o say_v ep._n 16._o that_o peter_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n persecute_v by_o the_o arian_n stead_n to_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o safe_a haven_n of_o communion_n these_o testimony_n of_o s._n hierome_n declare_v his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n against_o which_o you_o object_v 91._o object_v pag._n 91._o that_o he_o reprove_v a_o ill_a custom_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o the_o deacon_n of_o that_o church_n who_o though_o few_o in_o number_n yet_o grow_v proud_a in_o regard_n they_o have_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o custody_n contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o that_o church_n and_o of_o all_o other_o which_o be_v that_o priest_n fit_v with_o the_o bishop_n deacon_n shall_v stand_v they_o of_o rome_n begin_v to_o presume_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o fit_v this_o custom_n s_o hierome_n reprehend_v because_o it_o proceed_v from_o pride_n and_o want_v authority_n for_o say_v he_o if_o authority_n be_v require_v great_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o world_n then_o of_o a_o city_n which_o be_v true_a in_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n that_o nether_a concern_v faith_n nor_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o who_o fee_v not_o that_o a_o custom_n no_o way_n concern_v say_v or_o jurisdiction_n but_o discipline_n and_o warrant_v by_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o will_v be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o a_o contrary_a custom_n bring_v in_o by_o a_o few_o deacon_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n without_o any_o warrant_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o word_n of_o s._n hierome_n be_v impertinent_o bring_v against_o the_o roman_a say_v or_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o in_o they_o he_o neither_o speak_v against_o the_o roman_a faith_n nor_o make_v any_o comparison_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o between_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o few_o deacon_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o a_o custom_n no_o way_n repugnant_a to_o faith_n nor_o touch_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o final_o who_o see_v not_o that_o your_o intention_n be_v to_o delude_v and_o deceive_v your_o reader_n for_o he_o that_o have_v so_o many_o and_o so_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o s._n hierome_n in_o which_o he_o express_o declare_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v the._n catholic_a faith_n that_o it_o admit_v no_o delusion_n nor_o can_v be_v change_v that_o the_o way_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n be_v to_o hold_v fast_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o we_o must_v remain_v in_o she_o as_o be_v that_o church_n which_o have_v succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v the_o safe_a port_n of_o communion_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o roman_a see_v and_o that_o he_o which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n gather_v not_o but_o scatter_v that_o he_o be_v profane_a and_o belong_v not_o to_o christ_n but_o to_o antichrist_n he_o i_o say_v that_o have_v so_o many_o and_o so_o forcible_a testimony_n of_o s._n hierome_n &_o yet_o come_v to_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o roman_a church_n conceal_v they_o all_o and_o object_v one_o only_a testimony_n whole_o impertinent_a as_o you_o do_v what_o intention_n can_v he_o be_v think_v to_o have_v but_o to_o deceive_v man_n in_o the_o most_o important_a affair_n of_o their_o salvation_n but_o you_o reply_v 91._o reply_v pag._n 91._o this_o be_v that_o testimony_n of_o s._n hierome_n wherein_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n triumph_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o pope_n claim_n how_o prove_v you_o this_o with_o a_o sentence_n of_o aeneas_n siluius_n o_o imposture_n for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n be_v a_o schismatical_a conventicle_n &_o moreover_o you_o know_v that_o the_o word_n which_o you_o object_n be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n but_o of_o aeneas_n siluius_n and_o that_o he_o have_v retract_v they_o with_o the_o whole_a book_n out_o of_o which_o you_o take_v they_o be_v not_o then_o you_o a_o deceitful_a merchant_n to_o cozen_v your_o customer_n with_o such_o false_a ware_n nor_o do_v i_o well_o see_v how_o you_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o contradiction_n for_o you_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n s._n hierome_n be_v a_o profess_a and_o devout_a child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o rome_n be_v yet_o a_o true_a and_o natural_a mother_n and_o no_o stepdame_n ergo_fw-la in_o s._n hieromes_n day_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n become_v a_o stepdame_n which_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o then_o by_o fall_v into_o error_n how_o then_o be_v it_o true_a that_o as_o afterward_o you_o grant_v 19●_n grant_v pag._n 17●_n &_o 19●_n the_o roman_a church_n remain_v pure_a and_o free_a from_o error_n in_o faith_n 600._o year_n after_o christ_n which_o be_v not_o in_o s._n hieromes_n time_n but_o 200._o year_n after_o he_o sect_n iii_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n gregory_n concern_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n your_o scope_n here_o be_v to_o disprove_v the_o universal_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o s._n gregory_n refuse_v and_o reprehend_v in_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n as_o likewise_o do_v pelagius_n and_o leo_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o see_n and_o first_o you_o tell_v we_o 91._o we_o pag._n 91._o it_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a argument_n for_o conclude_v a_o papal_a authority_n to_o object_v against_o you_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o you_o to_o premit_fw-la this_o caveat_n for_o howsoever_o you_o here_o pretend_v that_o s._n gregory_n s._n leo_n and_o pelagius_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v in_o themselves_o any_o superiority_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n your_o guilty_a conscience_n tell_v you_o the_o contrary_n and_o therefore_o you_o slight_a their_o testimony_n as_o of_o man_n partial_a and_o that_o speak_v in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o the_o like_v you_o do_v afterward_o again_o with_o reproachful_a and_o contumelious_a word_n for_o whereas_o bellarmine_n 21._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 21._o in_o proof_n of_o the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n leo_n and_o s._n gregory_n you_o 304_o you_o pag._n 30●_n 304_o reject_v they_o as_o of_o partial_a witness_n and_o compare_v they_o to_o adonias_n who_o traitorous_o seek_v to_o set_v the_o crown_n on_o his_o own_o head_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o as_o adonias_n traitorous_o assume_v to_o himself_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o king_n not_o due_a unto_o he_o so_o do_v these_o pope_n unlawful_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o dignity_n of_o pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o
of_o these_o testimony_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o therefore_o lest_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o pass_v they_o over_o without_o answer_n you_o say_v fine_a say_v pag._n 100_o mark_fw-mi fine_a as_o for_o the_o word_n propter_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la they_o be_v answer_v hereafter_o how_o be_v they_o answer_v first_o you_o bid_v we_o mark_fw-mi we_o pag._n 253._o mark_fw-mi remember_v that_o irenaeus_n be_v he_o which_o consent_v with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o pope_n victor_n but_o we_o know_v this_o to_o be_v a_o untruth_n and_o wish_v you_o to_o remember_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v so_o much_o &_o contradict_v yourself_o say_v 131._o say_v pag._n 131._o irenaeus_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o the_o asian_a bishop_n these_o than_o be_v your_o proposition_n irenaus_n consent_v with_o the_o asian_a bishop_n irenaeus_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o the_o asian_a bishop_n reconcile_v they_o 2._o whereas_o s._n iraeneus_n say_v 3._o say_v l._n 3._o c._n 3._o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o church_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n you_o answer_v 253._o answer_v pag._n 253._o this_o may_v have_v be_v speak_v of_o the_o imperial_a power_n of_o that_o city_n to_o which_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v bind_v to_o resort_v for_o pay_v of_o tribute_n and_o the_o governor_n of_o province_n to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o their_o office_n but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o this_o answer_n for_o he_o mention_v not_o the_o city_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ad_fw-la hanc_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o this_o church_n say_v he_o all_o church_n must_v of_o necessity_n resort_n again_o they_o which_o be_v to_o resort_v to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o their_o office_n and_o payment_n of_o tribute_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n only_o but_o s._n irenaeus_n tell_v you_o that_o omnes_fw-la undique_fw-la fideles_fw-la that_o be_v all_z the_o faithful_a and_o all_o the_o church_n not_o only_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n but_o of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v necessary_o to_o repair_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v thereby_o that_o her_o authority_n and_o command_n be_v of_o large_a extent_n then_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a empire_n for_o as_o prosper_n true_o say_v 6._o say_v de_fw-fr ingrat_fw-la c_o 2._o &_o de_fw-la vocat_fw-la gent._n l._n 2._o c._n 6._o rome_n the_o see_v of_o peter_n be_v great_a by_o the_o fortress_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o the_o throne_n of_o temporal_a power_n and_o be_v make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n to_o the_o world_n possess_v by_o religion_n what_o she_o do_v not_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n 3._o you_o answer_v 253.254_o answer_v pag._n 253.254_o be_v it_o ecclesiastical_a power_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o recourse_n unto_o it_o absolute_a and_o perpetual_a but_o occasional_a for_o that_o tyme._n this_o be_v as_o untrue_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o resort_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o be_v by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a dignity_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o say_v s._n augustine_n 162._o augustine_n ep._n 162._o have_v always_o flourish_v in_o she_o and_o which_o make_v she_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o so_o long_o as_o she_o shall_v be_v s._n peter_n see_v which_o shall_v be_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n so_o long_o the_o necessity_n of_o all_o other_o church_n resort_v to_o she_o and_o agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o she_o shall_v still_o continue_v sect_n vii_o tertullian_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n tertullian_n agree_v with_o s._n irenaeus_n in_o press_v against_o all_o heretic_n the_o same_o argument_n of_o the_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o roman_a see_v ultimo_fw-la see_v l._n 3._o carm._n count_v marcio_n c._n ultimo_fw-la reckon_n all_o the_o pope_n by_o name_n until_o his_o time_n against_o martion_n and_o all_o heretic_n to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v such_o it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o 21._o he_o praescrip_n c._n 21._o that_o all_o doctrine_n which_o agree_v with_o those_o mother_n and_o original_a church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v true_a and_o to_o be_v hold_v as_o certain_a be_v that_o the_o church_n receive_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n the_o apostle_n from_o christ_n and_o christ_n from_o god_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v contrary_a to_o this_o be_v to_o be_v account_v false_a and_o erroneous_a and_o speak_v of_o heretic_n 32._o heretic_n ibid._n c._n 32._o if_o there_o be_v any_o of_o they_o that_o darevent_v their_o doctrine_n for_o apostolical_a let_v they_o show_v the_o original_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v the_o order_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o by_o a_o succession_n derive_v from_o the_o beginning_n they_o prove_v their_o first_o bishop_n to_o have_v be_v some_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o of_o the_o apostolical_a man_n that_o persevere_v with_o the_o apostle_n unto_o the_o end_n this_o tertullian_n say_v the_o smyrnaean_n in_o his_o day_n can_v do_v show_v that_o polycarpe_n their_o bishop_n be_v place_v there_o by_o s._n john_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v do_v the_o like_a show_v clement_n ordain_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o same_o she_o can_v do_v at_o this_o day_n show_v that_o all_o her_o bishop_n unto_o vrban_n the_o eight_o which_o now_o possess_v that_o chair_n have_v s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n for_o their_o predecessor_n and_o first_o bishop_n in_o that_o see_v and_o that_o from_o he_o they_o can_v lineal_o derive_v their_o pedigree_n whereas_o no_o heretic_n can_v ever_o show_v any_o such_o descent_n as_o protestant_n at_o this_o day_n can_v and_o therefore_o tertullian_n bring_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n upbraid_v they_o and_o all_o heretic_n in_o this_o manner_n 37._o manner_n ibid._n c._n 37._o who_o in_o god_n name_n be_v you_o when_o and_o from_o whence_o come_v you_o hither_o what_o do_v you_o among_o i_o be_v none_o of_o i_o by_o what_o right_a o_o martion_n do_v thou_o cut_v down_o my_o wood_n what_o leave_n have_v thou_o o_o valantine_n to_o turn_v my_o stream_n and_o fountain_n another_o way_n by_o what_o authority_n do_v thou_o remove_v my_o bound_n o_o apelles_n o_o luther_n o_o caluin_n o_o zuinglius_fw-la the_o possession_n be_v i_o i_o have_v it_o of_o old_a i_o enjoy_v it_o before_o you_o i_o can_v derive_v my_o pedigree_n from_o the_o very_a first_o author_n to_o who_o the_o thing_n do_v proper_o belong_v i_o be_o the_o right_a beyre_n to_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o their_o will_n and_o testament_n according_a to_o their_o trust_n and_o charge_v give_v my_o tenure_n stand_v as_o for_o you_o they_o always_o disinherit_v you_o and_o reject_v you_o as_o alien_n yea_o and_o as_o enemy_n in_o this_o very_a manner_n may_v catholic_n with_o great_a reason_n upbraid_v you_o who_o as_o you_o can_v show_v any_o succession_n of_o your_o bishop_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n so_o you_o be_v thereby_o convince_v not_o to_o be_v their_o heir_n but_o stranger_n and_o enemy_n to_o they_o and_o to_o the_o church_n found_v by_o they_o again_o tertullian_n prescribe_v a_o rule_n for_o you_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n say_v 36._o say_v ibid._n c._n 36._o go_v to_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v curious_o exact_a in_o the_o affair_n of_o thy_o salvation_n repair_n to_o the_o apostolical_a church_n etc._n etc._n if_o thou_o be_v a_o neighbour_n to_o italy_n thou_o have_v rome_n from_o whence_o we_o also_o have_v authority_n o_o happy_a church_n into_o which_o the_o apostle_n pour_v all_o their_o doctrine_n together_o with_o their_o blood_n where_o peter_n be_v equal_v to_o our_o saviour_n passion_n where_o paul_n be_v crown_v with_o john_n baptist_n lot_n where_o john_n the_o apostle_n be_v plunge_v into_o boil_a oil_n and_o yet_o not_o hurt_v therewith_o be_v banish_v into_o a_o island_n let_v we_o observe_v what_o this_o church_n have_v learned_a what_o she_o have_v teach_v tertullian_n be_v a_o african_a a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o yet_o speak_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v from_o whence_o we_o that_o be_v as_o macerus_n expound_v all_o the_o african_a church_n or_o all_o catholic_n have_v authority_n at_o hand_n for_o our_o defence_n wherefore_o out_o of_o this_o place_n of_o tertullian_n quintinus_n right_o infer_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o from_o her_o first_o foundation_n have_v great_a authority_n above_o all_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o
that_o all_o man_n be_v to_o learn_v from_o she_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n deliver_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o bless_a apostle_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o tertullian_n speak_v of_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n 30._o valentinus_n ibid._n c._n 30._o prove_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o have_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n into_o which_o they_o have_v believe_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n nam_fw-la constat_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o say_v he_o and_o his_o word_n no_o less_o agree_v to_o luther_n and_o caluin_n then_o to_o martion_n and_o valentinus_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o first_o believe_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o bless_a bishop_n eleutherius_fw-la for_o their_o turbulent_a spirit_n of_o novelty_n wherewith_o they_o do_v also_o pervert_v their_o brethren_n they_o be_v often_o excommunicate_v and_o at_o length_n cast_v out_o for_o ever_o to_o perpetual_a ruin_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v then_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o tertullian_n call_v the_o catholic_a church_n 4._o church_n l._n 4._o cont_n marcio_n c._n 4._o the_o head_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n in_o the_o world_n for_o martion_n be_v bear_v at_o sinope_n in_o pontus_n and_o for_o his_o heresy_n and_o lewdness_n of_o life_n excommunicate_v by_o his_o own_o father_n a_o holy_a bishop_n who_o refuse_v to_o absolve_v he_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o seek_v absolution_n but_o his_o father_n oppose_v obtain_v it_o not_o valentine_n be_v as_o egyptian_a bear_v and_o have_v fall_v into_o heresy_n in_o cyprus_n come_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o higinius_n pope_n and_o feign_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o fall_v often_o back_o into_o heresy_n as_o a_o dog_n return_v to_o his_o vomit_n be_v final_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o bless_a pope_n elutherius_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v tertullian_n report_n and_o why_o do_v these_o heretic_n as_o also_o cerdon_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o they_o seek_v absolution_n from_o heresy_n come_v from_o so_o remote_a country_n subject_a to_o other_o patriarch_n and_o why_o from_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o why_o all_o of_o they_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o particular_a but_o because_o they_o know_v she_o to_o be_v the_o head_n &_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n that_o have_v power_n to_o absolve_v all_o those_o which_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o any_o other_o bishop_n whatsoever_o and_o to_o be_v the_o original_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o that_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v out_o of_o her_o bosom_n they_o neither_o be_v nor_o shall_v be_v esteem_v catholic_n nor_o to_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n herby_n it_o appear_v how_o little_a reason_n you_o have_v to_o say_v out_o of_o beatus_fw-la rhenaus_n 1st_a rhenaus_n pag._n 131_o 1st_a though_o tertullian_n give_v a_o honourable_a testimony_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o be_v do_v not_o esteem_v she_o so_o high_o as_o we_o see_v she_o account_v of_o at_o this_o day_n and_o since_o you_o acknowledge_v that_o rhenanus_fw-la his_o mouth_n for_o that_o and_o other_o his_o inconsiderate_a speech_n be_v gag_v by_o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la you_o show_v little_a judgement_n in_o object_v his_o authority_n against_o us._n sect_n viii_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n his_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n what_o have_v be_v say_v show_v the_o futility_n of_o your_o argument_n out_o of_o vincentius_n lyrinensis_n which_o be_v like_a to_o the_o two_o former_a out_o of_o s._n iraeneus_n and_o tertullian_n and_o how_o little_a support_v you_o have_v for_o your_o cause_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n he_o will_v testify_v for_o himself_o for_o when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rebaptise_v heretic_n at_o their_o return_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n defend_v by_o firmilianus_n bishop_n of_o cefarea_n agrippinus_n &_o s._n cyprian_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o many_o other_o wrought_v so_o great_a inconvenience_n that_o it_o give_v a_o pattern_n of_o sacrilege_n to_o all_o heretic_n and_o occasion_n of_o error_n to_o some_o catholic_n vincentius_n declare_v how_o stephen_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n suppress_v it_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o say_v he_o ●_o he_o l._n count_v propha_fw-la haeres_fw-la novat_fw-la c._n ●_o all_o man_n every_o where_o exclame_v against_o the_o novelty_n of_o that_o doctrine_n &_o all_o priest_n in_o all_o place_n each_o one_o according_a to_o his_o zeal_n do_v opppse_n than_o pope_n stephen_n of_o bless_a memory_n bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v resist_v indeed_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n but_o yet_o more_o than_o the_o rest_n think_v it_o as_o i_o suppose_v reason_n so_o much_o to_o excel_v all_o other_o in_o devotion_n towards_o the_o faith_n as_o he_o do_v surmount_v they_o in_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o place_n to_o conclude_v in_o his_o epistle_n which_o then_o be_v send_v to_o africa_n he_o decree_v the_o same_o in_o these_o word_n let_v nothing_o be_v innovate_v but_o that_o which_o come_v by_o tradition_n be_v observe_v and_o 10._o and_o ibid._n c._n 10._o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n have_v say_v he_o such_o pregnant_a wit_n such_o eloquent_a tongue_n such_o a_o number_n of_o patron_n such_o show_n of_o truth_n such_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n but_o gloss_a after_o a_o new_a and_o naughty_a fashion_n and_o that_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o a_o african_a council_n yet_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n declare_v it_o a_o novelty_n be_v of_o so_o great_a force_n that_o after_o he_o have_v condemn_v it_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v abolish_v be_v disannul_v be_v abrogate_a as_o dream_n as_o fable_n as_o superfluous_a and_o afterward_o 43._o afterward_o ibid._n c._n 43._o he_o allege_v as_o witness_n of_o his_o doctrine_n diverse_a greek_a father_n and_o add_v to_o they_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n felix_n martyr_n and_o s._n julius_n both_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o to_o declare_v their_o sovereign_a authority_n he_o call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n and_o he_o conclude_v 45._o ibid._n c._n 45._o lest_o in_o such_o plenty_n of_o proof_n any_o thing_n shall_v be_v want_v we_o have_v add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n a_o double_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o one_o of_o s._n sixtus_n a_o venerable_a man_n that_o now_o honoresh_a the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o other_o of_o pope_n celestine_n of_o bless_a menory_n his_o predecessor_n and_o their_o decree_n he_o call_v apostolical_a and_o catholic_a decree_n sect_n ix_o other_o observation_n of_o doctor_n morton_n out_o of_o antiquity_n answer_v your_o observation_n be_v seqq_fw-la be_v pag_n 101._o &_o seqq_fw-la that_o s._n athanasius_n s._n augustine_n the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o cauthage_n reckon_v diverse_a bishop_n to_o show_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n with_o they_o name_v not_o only_o the_o pope_n but_o other_o bishop_n and_o write_v both_o to_o he_o &_o they_o and_o consult_v with_o he_o and_o they_o as_o with_o their_o fellow_n bishop_n which_o you_o say_v be_v to_o give_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o many_o mate_n and_o to_o equalise_v other_o bishop_n with_o he_o but_o who_o see_v not_o what_o poor_a stuff_n these_o your_o observation_n be_v for_o if_o one_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n shall_v consult_v with_o his_o parish_n priest_n and_o his_o bishop_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o equalize_v the_o parish_n priest_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o make_v he_o his_o mate_n or_o if_o you_o write_v to_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n i_o shall_v lay_v to_o your_o charge_n that_o by_o consult_v with_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o counsel_n you_o give_v his_o majesty_n so_o many_o mantes_fw-la as_o he_o have_v counsellor_n and_o equalise_v they_o in_o power_n and_o dominion_n with_o he_o will_v you_o not_o think_v m●_n a_o trifle_a and_o indeed_o a_o childish_a opponent_n how_o then_o shall_v we_o think_v otherwise_o of_o you_o that_o by_o like_a consequence_n go_v about_o to_o equalise_v other_o bishop_n with_o the_o pope_n &_o among_o themselves_o chap._n xvi_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o bishop_n be_v prove_v 1._o because_o julius_n a_o most_o holy_a pope_n in_o his_o three_o epistle_n which_o s._n athanesius_n have_v insert_v into_o his_o second_o apology_n write_v to_o the_o arian_n and_o declare_v unto_o they_o the_o right_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v to_o have_v the_o
to_o the_o sun_n star_n to_o the_o heaven_n and_o water_n to_o the_o ocean_n these_o sufficient_o show_v that_o you_o by_o confess_v that_o this_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v never_o admit_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n discover_v your_o folly_n in_o insist_v so_o much_o on_o a_o canon_n which_o for_o want_v of_o due_a confirmation_n be_v invalid_a sect_n vii_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n know_v this_o canon_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n you_o ask_v 112._o ask_v pag._n 112._o which_o of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 60._o year_n after_o oppose_v against_o this_o canon_n what_o one_o bishop_n before_o pope_n leo_n thought_n be_v not_o most_o equal_a i_o answer_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v allow_v either_o by_o the_o pope_n or_o other_o father_n of_o that_o time_n that_o because_o it_o be_v not_o confirm_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a it_o present_o dye_v and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n acknowledge_v themselves_o still_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n exercise_v his_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o as_o former_o he_o have_v do_v for_o this_o council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o time_n of_o nectarius_n patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n s._n chrysostome_n that_o be_v his_o immediate_a successor_n be_v depose_v at_o the_o procurement_n of_o eudoxia_n the_o empress_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n hold_v at_o constantinople_n under_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v recourse_n by_o letter_n of_o appeal_n to_o innocentius_n pope_n beseech_v he_o to_o disannul_v by_o his_o letter_n and_o authority_n the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n to_o abrogate_v their_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n injust_o pronounce_v against_o he_o to_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n and_o punish_v his_o adversary_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o not_o with_o such_o rigour_n but_o that_o if_o they_o do_v repent_v he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o spare_v they_o all_o these_o particular_n be_v the_o request_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n express_v in_o his_o letter_n to_o innocentius_n innocent_n innocentius_n ep._n 1._o &_o 2._o add_v innocent_n in_o which_o who_o see_v not_o that_o he_o acknowlege_v in_o he_o the_o power_n of_o a_o absolute_a judge_n not_o only_o over_o himself_o but_o also_o over_o theophilus_n the_o great_a patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n and_o over_o the_o whole_a council_n that_o have_v condemn_v he_o chrysostome_n be_v no_o soon_o thrust_v out_o of_o his_o see_n and_o send_v into_o banishment_n but_o his_o enemy_n set_v up_o arsacius_n in_o his_o place_n who_o live_v not_o much_o above_o a_o year_n innocentius_n will_v never_o admit_v he_o to_o his_o communion_n and_o after_o his_o death_n command_v his_o name_n to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n after_o arsacius_n succeed_v atticus_n chrysostome_n yet_o live_v he_o likewise_o innocentius_n excommunicatate_v and_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o send_v many_o embassage_n to_o procure_v absolution_n he_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o until_o he_o have_v enrol_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n in_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n as_o innocentius_n ordain_v 34._o ordain_v theod._n l._n 5._o c._n 34._o soon_o after_o he_o succeed_v nestorius_n who_o be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n be_v by_o the_o authority_n and_o command_n of_o pope_n celestine_n excommunicate_v &_o depose_v in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 1._o ephesus_n see_v the_o next_o chap._n sect_n 1._o in_o his_o place_n maximianus_n a_o man_n of_o excellent_a virtue_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o legate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o confirm_v by_o celestine_n pope_n and_o who_o in_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a write_v a_o famous_a epistle_n to_o the_o oriental_n part_v of_o his_o word_n you_o have_v hear_v above_o 4._o above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o after_o he_o succeed_v flavianus_n who_o have_v condemn_v eutyches_n in_o a_o synod_n at_o constantinople_n and_o be_v therefore_o depose_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n by_o mean_n of_o dioscorus_n a_o heretical_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n flivianus_n say_v liberatus_n 22._o liberatus_n in_o breviar_n c._n 22._o appeal_v to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v by_o petition_n present_v to_o his_o legate_n the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o leo_n himself_o 24._o himself_o ep._n 24._o and_o by_o valentinian_n the_o three_o to_o theodosius_n his_o father_n in_o law_n chalced._n law_n in_o ep._n preamb._n council_n chalced._n these_o example_n be_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o your_o ignorance_n you_o ask_v which_o of_o the_o father_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 60._o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o constatinople_n oppose_v against_o this_o canon_n or_o what_o one_o bishop_n before_o leo_n think_v it_o not_o equal_a but_o we_o contrary_o demand_v of_o you_o which_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n in_o who_o favour_n this_o canon_n be_v make_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 70._o year_n which_o pass_v between_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n do_v claim_v any_o privilege_n of_o honour_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n or_o any_o exemption_n from_o the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o canon_n or_o what_o pope_n in_o those_o 70._o year_n do_v think_v it_o equal_a the_o example_n allege_v convince_v that_o the_o most_o famous_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n which_o live_v in_o that_o time_n know_v the_o canon_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n since_o in_o the_o wrong_n do_v they_o by_o other_o patriarch_n and_o counsel_n of_o the_o east_n they_o never_o allege_v it_o in_o their_o own_o defence_n but_o still_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o those_o time_n as_o to_o their_o lawful_a judge_n and_o the_o pope_n thought_n their_o appeal_n to_o be_v most_o equal_a and_o just_a &_o absolve_a they_o condemn_v their_o adversary_n and_o final_o that_o this_o canon_n take_v no_o effect_n be_v a_o thing_n evident_a by_o the_o answer_n which_o the_o pope_n legate_n make_v when_o anatolius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n attempt_v to_o have_v it_o renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n they_o add_v 1●_n add_v act._n 1●_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n have_v enjoy_v it_o what_o will_v they_o have_v more_o and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o enjoy_v it_o why_o do_v they_o now_o require_v it_o chap._n xviii_o the_o three_o council_n general_n be_v the_o first_o of_o ephesus_n believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n over_o all_o bishop_n sect_n i._o of_o the_o deposition_n and_o condemnation_n of_o nestorius_n by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n celestine_n and_o whether_o the_o style_n of_o ancient_a pope_n be_v to_o command_v celestine_n pope_n be_v inform_v of_o the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o nestorius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o hold_v that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v two_o person_n divine_a and_o humane_a and_o that_o therefore_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o man_n only_o and_o not_o of_o god_n condemn_v it_o first_o at_o rome_n and_o then_o make_v cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n his_o vicar_n in_o the_o east_n give_v he_o commission_n to_o publish_v and_o execute_v his_o sentence_n at_o constantinople_n this_o he_o signify_v to_o nestorius_n himself_n sin_n himself_n conc._n ephes_n to_o 1._o c._n 17._o sin_n we_o have_v send_v say_v celestine_n the_o form_n of_o this_o judgement_n together_o with_o the_o whole_a process_n to_o our_o holy_a fellow-bishop_n of_o alexandria_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o be_v make_v our_o vicar_n may_v notify_v this_o our_o decree_n unto_o all_o and_o give_v commission_n to_o cyrill_a to_o publish_v and_o execute_v his_o sentence_n he_o say_v 16._o say_v ep._n ad_fw-la cyril_n in_o conc._n ephes_n to_o 1._o c._n 16._o add_v to_o thou_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o see_n and_o use_v with_o power_n the_o representation_n of_o our_o place_n thou_o shall_v execute_v exact_o and_o severe_o this_o sentence_n namely_o that_o if_o within_o ten_o day_n tell_v after_o signification_n of_o this_o admonition_n make_v to_o nestorius_n he_o do_v not_o in_o express_a word_n anathematise_v his_o wicked_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n thy_o holiness_n shall_v provide_v for_o that_o church_n without_o delay_n and_o declare_v he_o to_o be_v whole_o cut_v off_o from_o our_o body_n who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o word_n of_o celestine_n import_v a_o command_n to_o cyrill_n and_o in_o conformity_n to_o this_o command_n cyrill_v write_v to_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n of_o constantinople_n ●5_n constantinople_n conc._n ephes_n to_o 1._o c._n ●5_n we_o be_v constrain_v to_o signify_v to_o nestorius_n by_o synodical_a letter_n
with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n after_o he_o but_o this_o addition_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o equal_a privilege_n be_v surreptitious_o make_v by_o the_o usurpation_n of_o anatolius_n to_o augment_v his_o power_n for_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n never_o own_v it_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o when_o they_o beseech_v leo_n pope_n to_o confirm_v their_o decree_n they_o make_v to_o he_o no_o mention_n of_o equal_a privilege_n but_o only_o say_v leon._n say_v in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n we_o have_v confirm_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o 150._o father_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n which_o ordain_v that_o after_o your_o most_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a see_v that_o of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n of_o honour_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o as_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v the_o primacy_n absolute_o over_o all_o the_o patriarch_n so_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v it_o after_o he_o over_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n so_o this_o canon_n be_v report_v by_o euagrius_n it_o be_v decree_v say_v he_o fin_n he_o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o fin_n that_o the_o see_v of_o new_a rome_n by_o reason_n she_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o ancient_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o primacy_n before_o the_o other_o see_v in_o which_o sense_n and_o in_o no_o other_o socrates_n 8._o socrates_n l._n 5._o c._n 8._o testify_v this_o decree_n to_o have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o this_o pretence_n and_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n speak_v of_o both_o these_o counsel_n say_v 131._o say_v nove●_n 131._o that_o in_o they_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o as_o the_o holy_a pope_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v the_o first_o of_o all_o prelate_n so_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n new_a rome_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o see_v apostolic_a of_o old_a rome_n and_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o other_o see_v and_o long_o after_o that_o time_n the_o emperor_n basilius_n the_o young_a and_o eustathius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 1._o constantinople_n glaber_n rodulph_n hist_o l._n 4._o c._n 1._o desire_v that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o obtain_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a in_o the_o compass_n thereof_o as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o this_o appear_v that_o although_o the_o father_n of_o those_o two_o counsel_n contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o nice_a endeavour_v by_o this_o canon_n to_o make_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n and_o to_o confer_v on_o he_o after_z &_o under_o the_o pope_n a_o universal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o other_o patriarch_n yet_o they_o never_o intend_v thereby_o to_o put_v any_o limitation_n to_o the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o any_o way_n to_o exempt_v themselves_o or_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n from_o his_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n which_o be_v also_o further_o prove_v 1._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o zonaras_n and_o nilus_n both_o of_o they_o greek_a schismatic_n and_o enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n zonara_n say_v 3._o say_v in_o conc._n constantin_n 1._o c._n 3._o that_o whereas_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n shall_v be_v the_o second_o after_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n some_o think_v that_o the_o preposition_n after_o import_v not_o inferiority_n and_o submission_n but_o only_a posteriority_n of_o time_n and_o in_o proof_n of_o this_o their_o opinion_n they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o 28._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o ordain_v that_o new_a rome_n shall_v be_v honour_v with_o the_o same_o ecclesiastical_a prerogative_n as_o old_a rome_n and_o shall_v be_v prefer_v in_o honour_n before_o all_o the_o other_o church_n be_v the_o second_o after_o she_o but_o this_o say_v he_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o 130._o novel_a of_o justinian_n insert_v into_o the_o three_o title_n of_o the_o five_o book_n of_o the_o basilike_n which_o give_v the_o canon_n to_o be_v otherwise_o understand_v and_o therefore_o he_o conclude_v say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n from_o hence_o it_o appear_v manifest_o that_o the_o preposition_n after_o signify_v submission_n and_o inferiority_n and_o nilus_n b._n of_o thessalonica_n 1._o thessalonica_n de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la p●pae_fw-la l._n 1._o we_o be_v not_o separate_v from_o peace_n for_o attribute_v to_o ourselves_o the_o primacy_n nor_o for_o refuse_v to_o hold_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o principality_n of_o rome_n for_o we_o never_o contest_v for_o primacy_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n 2._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v for_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o deposition_n of_o eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o restitution_n of_o theodoret_n to_o his_o bishopric_n praece_v bishopric_n see_v above_o sect_n praece_v in_o confess_v leon._n confess_v in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n themselves_o to_o be_v his_o member_n and_o he_o to_o be_v their_o head_n in_o submit_v to_o he_o their_o decree_n to_o be_v confirm_v and_o in_o particular_a this_o make_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n we_o have_v say_v they_o ibid._n they_o ibid._n confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o 150._o father_n confide_v that_o the_o beam_n apostolic_a reign_v amid_o you_o and_o you_o by_o your_o ordinary_a government_n spread_v it_o to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n you_o may_v cause_v it_o to_o shine_v into_o these_o part_n because_o you_o be_v wont_v without_o envy_n to_o enrich_v those_o of_o your_o lineage_n with_o the_o participation_n of_o your_o good_n again_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o anatolius_n in_o particular_a who_o to_o augment_v his_o own_o power_n be_v the_o proiecter_n of_o this_o decree_n how_o can_v it_o be_v think_v that_o he_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o spiritual_a subject_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o i_o say_v who_o be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v no_o right_n to_o that_o see_v but_o only_o by_o the_o confirmation_n of_o leo_n pope_n which_o afterward_o he_o obtain_v in_o regard_n whereof_o leo_n write_v to_o martian_a the_o emperor_n against_o this_o attempt_n of_o anatolius_n say_v 54._o say_v ep._n 54._o it_o shall_v have_v suffice_v he_o that_o by_o the_o help_n of_o your_o piety_n and_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o my_o favour_n he_o have_v obtain_v the_o bishopric_n of_o so_o great_a a_o city_n and_o what_o else_o do_v anatolius_n himself_o signify_v when_o speak_v of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o which_o maximus_n be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n he_o say_v 10._o say_v cone_n chalced._n act._n 10._o my_o verdict_n be_v that_o none_o of_o the_o thing_n ordain_v in_o the_o pretend_a council_n of_o ephesus_n remain_v firm_a but_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o maximus_n b._n of_o great_a antioch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o rome_n leo_n receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o be_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n 3._o because_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n know_v that_o without_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n their_o decree_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n have_v recourse_n to_o leo_n beseech_v he_o to_o confirm_v it_o we_o beseech_v you_o say_v they_o leon._n they_o in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n to_o honour_v our_o decree_n with_o your_o judgement_n and_o that_o as_o we_o have_v hold_v correspondence_n with_o our_o head_n for_o matter_n of_o weal_n so_o your_o soveraingty_n will_v yield_v to_o your_o child_n in_o thing_n of_o decency_n for_o in_o so_o do_v the_o religious_a emperor_n shall_v be_v gratify_v to_o this_o their_o petition_n leo_n assent_v not_o but_o whole_o annul_v and_o abrogate_a their_o decree_n the_o piety_n of_o your_o faith_n be_v join_v with_o we_o say_v he_o to_o pulcheria_n the_o empress_n 55._o empress_n ep._n 55._o we_o annul_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o bishop_n repugnant_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a canon_n establish_v at_o nice_a and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n we_o whole_o abrogate_v they_o by_o a_o general_a sentence_n another_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o tenor_n he_o address_v to_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n 61._o chalcedon_n ep._n 61._o and_o to_o anatolius_n himself_o he_o likewise_o write_v 53._o write_v ep._n 53._o never_o may_v my_o conscience_n consent_n that_o so_o deprave_a a_o covetousness_n be_v further_v by_o my_o favour_n but_o rather_o that_o it_o be_v suppress_v by_o i_o &_o by_o they_o that_o allow_v not_o
to_o place_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n rather_o than_o in_o any_o other_o city_n be_v the_o dignity_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n say_v s._n leo_n paul_n leo_n serm._n 1._o de_fw-fr apost_n pet._n &_o paul_n that_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v reveal_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o nation_n may_v from_o the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n be_v communicate_v more_o effectual_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o cause_n the_o ●_z of_o chalcedon_n speak_v when_o they_o say_v 15._o say_v act._n 15._o rome_n get_v the_o primacy_n because_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o both_o these_o cause_n be_v comprehend_v by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n in_o their_o law_n make_v a_o little_a before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o these_o word_n 24._o word_n novel_a theodos_fw-la do_fw-mi 24._o three_o thing_n have_v establish_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o episcopal_a society_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o synodical_a authority_n 3._o you_o object_n 118._o object_n pag._n 118._o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v privilege_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n equal_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o we_o deny_v for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o equal_a privilege_n this_o clause_n be_v afterward_o add_v by_o anatolius_n or_o by_o the_o clerk_n of_o constantinople_n 4._o constantinople_n see_v this_o prove_v above_o in_o this_o chap._n sect_n 4._o and_o to_o this_o s._n gregory_n seem_v to_o relate_v when_o he_o say_v 14._o say_v l._n 5._o ep_n 14._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o one_o place_n have_v be_v falsify_v by_o the_o grecian_n and_o the_o fathe_n of_o chalcedon_n never_o intend_v by_o this_o canon_n to_o give_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n any_o privilege_n of_o exemption_n from_o their_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o to_o grant_v they_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 4._o prove_v in_o this_o chap._n sect_n 4._o and_o the_o same_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o leo_n pope_n who_o though_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a to_o pulcheria_n the_o empress_n to_o anatolius_n himself_o and_o to_o diverse_a other_o bishop_n of_o this_o subject_n he_o speak_v against_o anatolius_n for_o his_o ambitious_a attempt_n yet_o in_o none_o of_o they_o do_v he_o say_v or_o insinuate_v that_o those_o father_n give_v to_o anatolius_n or_o that_o anatolius_n himself_o ever_o aspire_v to_o equality_n of_o privilege_n with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n but_o only_o reprehend_v he_o for_o wrong_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n in_o procure_v himself_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o the_o same_o be_v yet_o further_o prove_v because_o when_o rome_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o wandal_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n make_v use_n of_o the_o time_n and_o set_v this_o canon_n on_o foot_n again_o procure_v the_o emperor_n zeno_n to_o establish_v by_o a_o law_n that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o like_a they_o obtain_v from_o justinian_n after_o the_o recovery_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o ordain_v 131._o ordain_v novel_a 131._o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o holy_a see_v apostolic_a and_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o other_o see_n last_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o subjection_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n acknowledge_v to_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o exercise_v over_o they_o for_o not_o long_o after_o that_o time_n when_o acacius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v fall_v into_o the_o faction_n of_o heretic_n the_o church_n of_o the_o patriarkeship_n of_o constantinople_n have_v recourse_n to_o symmachus_n pope_n as_o to_o their_o pastor_n &_o as_o superior_a to_o their_o patriarch_n see_v your_o child_n perish_v say_v they_o bafil_v they_o ep._n eccles_n orient_n ad_fw-la symach_n in_o volume_n orthodox_n impress_n bafil_v in_o the_o prevarication_n of_o our_o father_n acacius_n delay_v not_o or_o rather_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o prophet_n stumber_v not_o but_o make_v haste_n to_o deliver_v us._n and_o when_o the_o same_o acacius_n for_o his_o adhere_n to_o peter_n moggus_n a_o heretical_a invasor_n of_o the_o see_v of_o alexandria_n be_v depose_v by_o felix_n pope_n though_o he_o stand_v out_o as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v contemn_v the_o pope_n sentence_n send_v unto_o he_o to_o constantinople_n yet_o the_o emperor_n justine_n that_o succeed_v anastasius_n cause_v felix_n his_o sentence_n to_o be_v execute_v on_o he_o after_o his_o death_n make_v his_o name_n to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o recital_n in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n we_o have_v give_v order_n say_v justine_n to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n epist._n add_v hormisd_v that_o the_o reverend_a church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o many_o other_o accomplish_v your_o desire_n in_o raze_v out_o the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o you_o have_v command_v to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o sacred_a record_n and_o in_o conformity_n to_o this_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o the_o same_o hormisdas_n say_v hormisd_v say_v epist_n ad_fw-la hormisd_v i_o anathematise_v acacius_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o this_o city_n and_o promise_v hereafter_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o they_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o theodorus_n anagnostes_n report_v stopha_n report_v ad_fw-la calc_n hist._n eccles_n theodor._n ex_fw-la edit_fw-la robert_n stopha_n that_o when_o anastasius_n the_o emperor_n urge_v macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o abrogate_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n he_o answer_v he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n must_v be_v precedent_n and_o when_o anthymus_n b._n of_o trebizond_n invade_v the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n agapetus_n pope_n be_v arrive_v thither_o depose_v he_o even_o in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n itself_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n theodora_n that_o protect_v he_o and_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n ordain_v menas_z in_o his_o place_n the_o truth_n of_o all_o which_o be_v aver_v by_o justinian_n himself_o 42_o himself_o novel_a 42_o by_o marcellinus_n come_v chron._n come_v in_o chron._n by_o liberatus_n 12._o liberatus_n breviar_n c._n 12._o and_o victor_n of_o tune_n sc●lig_n tune_n in_o chron._n edit_n per_fw-la joseph_n sc●lig_n and_o do_v not_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n make_v open_a profession_n of_o obey_v the_o see_v apostolic_a in_o all_o thing_n 4._o thing_n in_o conc._n constan_n sub_fw-la me●_n act._n 4._o and_o when_o john_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v arrive_v at_o constantinople_n justine_n the_o emperor_n invite_v he_o to_o sit_v in_o a_o seat_n by_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n that_o they_o may_v seem_v both_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a dignity_n john_n refuse_v to_o sit_v until_o according_a to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o see_n a_o throne_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o above_o epiphanius_n 9_o epiphanius_n nicoph_n l._n 17._o c._n 9_o which_o pass_v in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n itself_o and_o in_o epiphanius_n his_o own_o church_n and_o that_o many_o year_n after_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v make_v evident_o show_v that_o it_o never_o take_v effect_n since_o neither_o epiphanius_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n here_o name_v live_v after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n claim_v any_o right_n of_o equal_a privilege_n thereby_o but_o all_o of_o they_o remain_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o before_o the_o council_n they_o have_v be_v and_o that_o which_o pur_v this_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n be_v that_o albeit_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n at_o length_n obtain_v that_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n which_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n they_o labour_v for_o yet_o nevertheless_o even_o then_o they_o still_o acknowledge_v themselves_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n witness_n s._n gregory_n who_o write_v to_o john_n b._n of_o syracuse_n say_v ●4_n say_v l._n 7._o ep_n ●4_n who_o doubt_n but_o
that_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o general_n counsel_n believe_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v a_o truth_n not_o to_o be_v deny_v in_o the_o second_o action_n of_o the_o seven_o synod_n be_v read_v and_o approve_v the_o epistle_n of_o adrian_n pope_n to_o tharasius_n in_o which_o speak_v of_o s._n peter_n see_v he_o say_v who_o seat_n obtain_v the_o primacy_n shine_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o eight_o synod_n the_o profession_n which_o all_o schismatical_a bishop_n return_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o make_v be_v express_v in_o these_o word_n 200._o word_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 3._o pag._n 923._o &_o can._n l._n 6._o c._n 6._o pag._n 200._o the_o begiun_n of_o salvation_n be_v to_o conserve_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a faith_n and_o no_o way_n to_o swerve_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o our_o forefather_n because_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n can_v fail_v say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o the_o proof_n of_o deed_n have_v make_v good_a these_o word_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o catholic_a religion_n be_v always_o conserve_v inviolable_a we_o therefore_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o this_o sea_n and_o follow_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o constitution_n of_o the_o father_n and_o chief_o of_o the_o holy_a prelate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a anathematise_v all_o heresy_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o wherefore_o follow_v the_o see_v apostolic_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o observe_v all_o her_o constitution_n we_o hope_v to_o deserve_v to_o live_v in_o one_o communion_n which_o the_o see_v apostolic_a teach_v in_o which_o there_o be_v the_o true_a and_o entire_a solidity_n of_o christian_a religion_n &_o we_o promise_v likewise_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o agree_v not_o to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a what_o you_o think_v doctor_n morton_n i_o know_v not_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o that_o if_o you_o who_o deny_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o governess_n of_o all_o church_n you_o that_o live_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n you_o that_o refuse_v to_o obey_v her_o constitution_n you_o that_o profess_v not_o to_o follow_v her_o doctrine_n have_v live_v in_o time_n of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o synod_n they_o will_v have_v anathematise_v you_o and_o condemn_v your_o doctrine_n as_o heretical_a and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o you_o conceal_v these_o &_o many_o other_o passage_n of_o those_o counsel_n in_o which_o the_o same_o truth_n be_v deliver_v and_o many_o other_o point_n of_o your_o protestant_a doctrine_n condemn_v sect_n ii_o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v the_o eight_o general_n council_n in_o your_o eight_o chapter_n in_o the_o title_n of_o the_o eight_o section_n you_o say_v 127._o say_v pag._n 127._o the_o belief_n of_o the_o article_n viz._n the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n without_o subjection_n whereunto_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n damn_v the_o eight_o council_n which_o you_o call_v general_a consist_v of_o 383._o bishop_n in_o the_o year_n 870._o this_o be_v your_o title_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o cite_v binius_fw-la 143._o binius_fw-la tom._n 3._o p._n 143._o in_o your_o margin_n but_o ignorant_o and_o false_o for_o the_o council_n which_o binius_fw-la there_o set_v down_o be_v not_o the_o eight_o general_n hold_v the_o year_n 870._o under_o basilius_n the_o emperor_n and_z adrian_z the_o second_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n but_o a_o particular_a synod_n consist_v of_o certain_a greek_a bishop_n assemble_v the_o year_n 692._o by_o the_o industry_n of_o calinicus_fw-la patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o time_n of_o sergius_n pope_n &_o justinian_n the_o young_a in_o his_o palace_n call_v trullum_fw-la &_o have_v never_o be_v esteem_v a_o lawful_a council_n but_o always_o reprove_v as_o a_o false_a and_o erratical_a assembly_n as_o binius_fw-la prove_v 155._o prove_v to._n 3._o pag._n 154._o 155._o and_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v seq_fw-fr declare_v sect._n seq_fw-fr again_o you_o say_v the_o eight_o general_a council_n consist_v of_o 383_o bishop_n and_o give_v binius_fw-la for_o your_o author_n but_o you_o be_v mistake_v &_o wrong_v binius_fw-la for_o he_o 910._o he_o tom._n 3._o pag._n 910._o prove_v out_o of_o nicetas_n and_o anastasius_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o eight_o council_n that_o it_o consist_v only_o of_o 102._o bishop_n nor_o will_v it_o serve_v you_o for_o a_o excuse_n that_o bellarmine_n say_v it_o consist_v of_o 383._o bishop_n for_o you_o bring_v not_o he_o for_o your_o author_n but_o binius_fw-la who_o affirm_v and_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o in_o what_o sense_n bellarmine_n speak_v you_o may_v have_v learn_v if_o you_o have_v observe_v what_o binius_fw-la note_v out_o of_o anastasius_n namely_o that_o many_o other_o bishop_n agree_v to_o this_o synod_n though_o they_o be_v not_o present_a at_o it_o but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o what_o be_v do_v say_v you_o 127._o you_o pag._n 127._o in_o this_o four_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n you_o may_v understand_v from_o your_o own_o man_n here_o i_o must_v request_v you_o to_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o else_o where_o you_o say_v ●_o say_v pag._n 235._o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr ●_o the_o council_n under_o menas_n be_v the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n how_o then_o can_v the_o eight_o general_a council_n which_o you_o say_v be_v hold_v the_o year_n 870._o be_v the_o four_o council_n of_o constantinople_n since_o in_o this_o other_o place_n allege_v you_o affirm_v the_o council_n under_o menas_n hold_v the_o year_n 553._o to_o be_v the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n for_o thereby_o you_o ignorant_o make_v the_o five_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o have_v be_v hold_v above_o 300._o year_n before_o the_o four_o sect_n iii_o whether_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n condemn_v the_o saturday_n fast_o allow_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o tell_v we_o 1●7_n we_o pag._n 1●7_n that_o we_o may_v understand_v from_o our_o binius_fw-la that_o these_o bishop_n of_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n condemn_v a_o custom_n of_o the_o saboth_o fast_o in_o lent_n then_o use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o thereupon_o make_v they_o a_o canon_n inhibit_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o keep_v that_o custom_n any_o long_o and_o you_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n this_o canon_n say_v your_o surius_n be_v not_o receive_v because_o it_o reprehend_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother-church_n of_o all_o other_o church_n so_o you_o and_o your_o reader_n especial_o of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n by_o this_o your_o expression_n what_o will_v they_o conceive_v but_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v in_o those_o time_n fast_o the_o sunday_n in_o lent_n for_o as_o by_o the_o saboth_n day_n protestant_n especial_o the_o vulgar_a understand_v no_o other_o day_n but_o sunday_n so_o by_o the_o saboth_n fast_o what_o will_v they_o understand_v but_o the_o sunday_n fast_o which_o be_v never_o use_v nor_o allow_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o gangra_n as_o a_o heretical_a observation_n of_o the_o eustathian_o 9_o eustathian_o see_v spond_n anno_o 319._o n._n 9_o the_o fast_n which_o this_o canon_n inhibit_v be_v the_o saturday_n fast_o which_o as_o than_o it_o be_v so_o notwithstanding_o this_o canon_n be_v still_o use_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o lent_n and_o not_o prohibit_v out_o of_o lent_n nor_o be_v that_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n to_o who_o you_o ignorant_o ascribe_v it_o but_o by_o the_o trullan_n synod_n as_o binius_fw-la and_o surius_n testify_v who_o therefore_o you_o abuse_v in_o father_v on_o they_o your_o own_o ignorant_a mistake_n of_o the_o trullan_n synod_n for_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o both_o of_o they_o with_o all_o catholic_a divine_n hold_v the_o trullan_n canon_n to_o be_v illegitimate_a and_o of_o no_o force_n for_o as_o much_o as_o no_o legate_n of_o sergius_n then_o pope_n be_v present_a at_o that_o synod_n nor_o be_v it_o assemble_v by_o his_o authority_n or_o consent_n but_o absolute_o reprove_v and_o condemn_v by_o he_o notwithstanding_o the_o barbarous_a violence_n of_o soldier_n and_o other_o mean_v use_v by_o the_o empetor_n to_o extort_v a_o confirmation_n from_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n as_o venerable_a bede_n iuniore_fw-la bede_n l_o d●_n sex_n aetat_fw-la in_o justinian_n iuniore_fw-la who_o live_v at_o that_o time_n
apostle_n and_o whereas_o you_o 131._o you_o pag._n 131._o appeal_v to_o our_o conscience_n and_o bid_v we_o in_o all_o our_o read_n show_v unto_o you_o if_o we_o can_v that_o polycrates_n and_o other_o asian_a bishop_n so_o excommunicate_v by_o pope_n victor_n be_v hold_v by_o any_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o those_o time_n to_o be_v thereby_o without_o the_o state_n of_o salvation_n we_o contrary_o appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o any_o christian_n man_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o damnable_a doctrine_n to_o maintain_v as_o you_o do_v that_o these_o qartadeciman_n heretic_n after_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o anathematise_v by_o so_o many_o counsel_n if_o they_o repent_v not_o but_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o heresy_n can_v be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o last_o whereas_o you_o add_v 131._o add_v pag._n 131._o that_o we_o full_a well_o know_v that_o s._n hierome_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n number_v polycrates_n among_o those_o who_o do_v advance_v the_o catholic_a faith_n we_o know_v that_o you_o speak_v ignorant_o and_o untrue_o for_o s._n hierome_n in_o that_o his_o catalogue_n do_v not_o only_a number_n catholic_n but_o also_o diverse_a heretic_n that_o write_v of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o eusebius_n caesariensis_n who_o the_o same_o s._n hierome_n 1._o hierome_n apol._n advers_a ruffin_n l._n 1._o call_v the_o ringleader_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o so_o likewise_o he_o number_v novatianus_n donatus_n and_o photinus_n who_o in_o that_o very_a catalogue_n he_o acknowledge_v not_o only_o to_o be_v heretic_n but_o author_n and_o propagator_n of_o several_a heresy_n and_o in_o no_o other_o condition_n do_v he_o number_n polycrates_n who_o he_o commend_v not_o for_o advance_v the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o you_o affirm_v but_o have_v set_v down_o a_o piece_n of_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o pope_n victor_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o error_n say_v he_o report_v it_o to_o show_v the_o wit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o man_n where_o by_o authority_n he_o understand_v not_o authority_n of_o right_n but_o of_o fact_n that_o be_v the_o credit_n which_o polycrates_n have_v among_o the_o quartadeciman_o chap._n xxiv_o doctor_n morton_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n defend_v the_o heretical_a doctrine_n of_o rebaptization_n firmilianus_n b._n of_o caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n with_o other_o asian_a bishop_n out_o of_o their_o great_a hatred_n to_o heresy_n decree_v in_o their_o counsel_n of_o iconium_n &_o synnada_n that_o baptism_n give_v by_o heretic_n be_v invalid_a and_o therefore_o that_o heretic_n return_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v a_o new_a this_o doctrine_n from_o asia_n creep_v into_o africa_n and_o agrippinus_n b._n of_o carthage_n have_v lay_v the_o first_o ground_n thereof_o cyprian_n with_o other_o african_a bishop_n afterward_o embrace_v the_o same_o so_o far_o that_o for_o the_o authorise_v thereof_o they_o assemble_v a_o council_n of_o 80._o bishop_n at_o carthage_n all_o which_o notwithstanding_o that_o doctrine_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o tradition_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v forbid_v by_o stephen_n then_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o these_o word_n nihil_fw-la innovetur_fw-la sed_fw-la seruetur_fw-la quod_fw-la traditum_fw-la est_fw-la let_v no_o innovation_n be_v make_v but_o that_o observe_v which_o have_v come_v by_o tradition_n firmilianus_n with_o other_o bishop_n of_o asia_n notwithstanding_o this_o prohibition_n persist_v still_o in_o their_o error_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n excommunicate_v by_o stephen_n whereat_o firmilianus_n storm_v in_o his_o fury_n spew_v out_o reproachful_a and_o contumelious_a word_n against_o he_o but_o cyprian_a although_o he_o defend_v the_o same_o error_n yet_o not_o as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n nor_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a nor_o censure_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o rest_n that_o defend_v it_o as_o any_o way_n guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o as_o s._n augustine_n write_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o excuse_v cyprian_n 4._o cyprian_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr bapt._n t._n 18._o &_o l._n 2._o c._n 4._o say_v if_o he_o hold_v that_o opinion_n it_o be_v before_o it_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o a_o general_a council_n to_o which_o he_o will_v most_o easy_o have_v submit_v his_o judgement_n if_o any_o such_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o his_o tyme._n and_o moreover_o if_o he_o hold_v it_o it_o be_v with_o so_o great_a temper_n that_o as_o both_o he_o himself_o carthag_n himself_o ep._n ad_fw-la juba_n &_o in_o conc._n carthag_n and_o s._n augustine_n alibisaepe_fw-la augustine_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 18._o &_o 19_o &_o l._n 2._o c._n 1.5.6.7.9_o &_o alibisaepe_fw-la for_o he_o testify_v for_o the_o defence_n thereof_o he_o never_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o as_o s._n peter_n dissent_v from_o s._n paul_n concern_v the_o circumcision_n of_o gentile_n new_o convert_v and_o yet_o both_o of_o they_o still_o remain_v in_o catholic_a unity_n and_o peace_n so_o likewise_o though_o cyprian_n touch_v rebaptisation_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o stephen_n yet_o he_o still_o remain_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o donatist_n defend_v their_o heresy_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a and_o his_o council_n s._n augustine_n answer_v saepe_fw-la answer_v cont._n crescon_n l._n 1._o c._n 32._o &_o l._n 2._o c._n 31._o &_o alibi_fw-la saepe_fw-la that_o cyprian_n patronage_n can_v not_o avail_v they_o because_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o cyprian_n live_v and_o dye_v this_o be_v the_o controversy_n as_o it_o pass_v between_o cyprian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o stephen_n pope_n brief_o relate_v and_o you_o in_o object_v it_o against_o the_o pope_n authority_n show_v impiety_n folly_n and_o falsehood_n impiety_n 1._o in_o take_v part_n with_o firmilianus_n &_o cyprian_n in_o their_o opposition_n to_o pope_n stephen_n and_o approve_v their_o doctrine_n which_o you_o know_v to_o be_v erroneous_a &_o that_o soon_o after_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o general_a council_n it_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o absolute_a heresy_n not_o only_o by_o catholic_n but_o also_o by_o protestant_n and_o do_v not_o s._n augustine_n say_v 2._o say_v l._n 2._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 2._o that_o albeit_o cyprian_a bishop_n &_o martyr_n be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a fame_n and_o merit_n yet_o not_o of_o great_a than_o peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n in_o who_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v so_o eminent_a which_o show_v that_o cyprian_a ought_v to_o have_v bear_v respect_n to_o stephen_n pope_n sit_v in_o the_o see_v &_o invest_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o do_v he_o not_o show_v 32._o show_v l._n 2._o cont._n crescon_n c._n 32._o that_o cyprian_a err_v herein_o and_o that_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n be_v of_o no_o force_n because_o the_o contrary_n be_v decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o authority_n of_o cyprian_a or_o of_o any_o one_o man_n whatsoever_o and_o do_v he_o not_o seqq_fw-la not_o l._n 5._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 23._o &_o seqq_fw-la learned_o confute_v the_o epistle_n which_o cyprian_n write_v to_o pompeius_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o error_n and_o whereas_o you_o to_o justify_v cyprian_a object_n 134._o object_n pag._n 134._o that_o he_o gather_v a_o council_n of_o 87._o bishop_n which_o conclude_v contrary_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n celebrate_v in_o italy_n you_o know_v that_o s._n augustine_n doubt_v 32._o doubt_v l._n 1._o cont_n crescon_n cap._n 32._o whether_o any_o such_o council_n be_v ever_o hold_v and_o if_o it_o be_v whether_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o vote_n be_v not_o against_o cyprian_a because_o the_o donatist_n can_v reckon_v but_o 50._o asian_n and_o 70._o african_a bishop_n that_o adhere_v to_o firmilianus_n and_o cyprian_a 3._o cyprian_a s._n aug._n cont_n crescon_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o whereas_o many_o thousand_o hold_v with_o stephen_n pope_n against_o they_o and_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n tot_fw-la augustine_n l._n 6._o de_fw-fr bapt._n per_fw-la tot_fw-la answer_v and_o confute_v several_o every_o one_o of_o the_o verdicte_v of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v in_o that_o council_n assemble_v by_o cyprian_a 2._o you_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o impiety_n in_o object_v 137._o object_v pag._n 137._o against_o the_o pope_n authority_n the_o word_n which_o firmilianus_n and_o cyprian_n in_o their_o passion_n let_v slip_v from_o their_o mouth_n against_o stephen_n for_o s._n augustine_n 25._o augustine_n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr bapt._n c._n 25._o hold_v they_o unworthy_a to_o be_v mention_v and_o cover_v they_o with_o this_o excuse_n the_o thing_n which_o
apud_fw-la author_n cit_fw-la that_o he_o with_o they_o all_o may_v rejoice_v in_o the_o peace_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o his_o mean_n and_o in_o another_o to_o xistus_fw-la his_o successor_n 4._o successor_n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 4._o he_o declare_v the_o pope_n authority_n over_o all_o those_o bishop_n beseech_v he_o to_o pardon_v their_o offence_n &_o restore_v they_o to_o his_o communion_n i_o write_v to_o stephen_n say_v he_o a_o epistle_n for_o all_o those_o bishop_n to_o conclude_v you_o add_v another_o falsehood_n say_v 135._o say_v pag._n 135._o that_o we_o grant_v stephen_n pope_n to_o have_v excommunicate_v not_o only_o firmilianus_n with_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n but_o also_o s._n cyprian_n and_o you_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o cassander_n and_o heretical_a and_o prohibit_v author_n who_o you_o contrary_a to_o your_o own_o knowledge_n cite_v as_o a_o catholic_a writer_n that_o so_o you_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n to_o call_v his_o lie_n our_o confession_n as_o here_o you_o do_v and_o indeed_o what_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v honour_v s._n cyprian_n as_o a_o glorious_a saint_n and_o martyr_n as_o she_o do_v if_o he_o have_v die_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n and_o especial_o if_o he_o have_v contemn_v her_o excommunication_n last_o i_o must_v advertise_v you_o of_o another_o absurdity_n while_o you_o tell_v we_o 138._o we_o pag._n 138._o that_o we_o shall_v advise_v in_o this_o case_n rather_o with_o firmilianus_n a_o bishop_n live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n then_o with_o s._n augustine_n who_o come_v 150._o year_n after_o for_o this_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v rather_o believe_v firmilianus_n a_o party_n and_o for_o a_o time_n guilty_a both_o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o quarta_fw-la decimans_fw-la &_o of_o rebaptisation_n then_o s._n augustine_n a_o orthodox_n doctor_n and_o a_o impartial_a witness_n but_o yet_o if_o we_o advise_v with_o firmilianus_n he_o will_v condemn_v you_o 1._o because_o he_o retract_v his_o error_n before_o his_o death_n return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o witness_n s._n basil_n 29._o basil_n de_fw-fr spir._n s._n ad_fw-la amphil._n c._n 29._o be_v admit_v among_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v against_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o 2._o because_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cyprian_a he_o acknowledge_v stephen_n to_o be_v successor_n of_o s._n peter_n on_o who_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lay_v and_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o yield_v for_o his_o not_o obey_v stephen_n be_v that_o he_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n 198._o man_n extat_fw-la apud_fw-la pamel_n pag._n 198._o which_o be_v a_o reason_n not_o to_o be_v give_v but_o by_o one_o that_o know_v himself_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o that_o command_v if_o his_o command_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o he_o think_v stephens_n to_o be_v though_o erroneous_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v chap._n xxv_o other_o argument_n of_o doctor_n morton_n our_o of_o s._n cyprian_n answer_v from_o this_o your_o main_n argument_n of_o the_o opposition_n of_o firmilianus_n and_o s._n cyprian_n you_o pass_v to_o other_o objection_n show_v as_o you_o say_v 4._o say_v pag._n 134._o in_o tit_n sect_n 4._o the_o full_a opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_a and_o other_o bishop_n against_o stephen_n b._n of_o rome_n but_o see_v you_o acknowledge_v alibi_fw-la acknowledge_v pag._n 291._o &_o alibi_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n to_o have_v be_v pure_a and_o free_a from_o error_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o s._n cyprian_n time_n to_o be_v glorious_a saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o christ_n 172.178.181.287_o christ_n pag_n 172.178.181.287_o with_o what_o conscience_n do_v you_o make_v s._n cyprian_n full_o opposite_a to_o they_o and_o to_o differ_v in_o master_n of_o faith_n from_o they_o for_o what_o else_o be_v that_o but_o to_o make_v s._n cyprian_n a_o heretic_n that_o so_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v like_a to_o yourself_o now_o to_o your_o objection_n of_o the_o full_a opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_n to_o pope_n stephen_n the_o first_o be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o s._n cyprian_n impugn_a the_o pope_n pretend_a power_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o produce_v ignorant_o the_o example_n of_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n for_o they_o appeal_v not_o to_o pope_n stephen_n but_o to_o cornelius_n between_o who_o and_o stephen_n sit_v lucius_n another_o pope_n again_o the_o objection_n be_v impertinent_a for_o the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o ordain_v that_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o bishop_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o that_o minor_a cause_n that_o be_v of_o the_o life_n &_o manner_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v final_o sentence_v &_o end_v in_o their_o own_o province_n by_o their_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o or_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o province_n this_o be_v declare_v by_o s._n augustine_n who_o speak_v of_o cecilianus_n b._n of_o carthage_n that_o have_v be_v condemn_v in_o africa_n by_o a_o council_n of_o 70._o bishop_n say_v 162_o say_v ep._n 162_o there_o be_v no_o question_n then_o of_o priest_n or_o deacon_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o of_o the_o colleague_n that_o be_v so_o say_v of_o bishop_n who_o may_v reserve_v their_o cause_n entire_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o other_o colleague_n and_o principal_o of_o the_o church_n apostolic_a and_o therefore_o that_o cecilian_a may_v have_v contemn_v the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n conspire_v against_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v this_o show_v the_o futility_n of_o your_o objection_n for_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n be_v not_o bishop_n but_o simple_a priest_n who_o have_v be_v judge_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o therefore_o cornelius_n reject_v their_o appeal_n and_o excommunicate_v they_o as_o s._n cyprian_n declare_v in_o that_o very_a epistle_n which_o you_o object_n and_o return_v felicissimus_n back_o into_o africa_n with_o other_o his_o associate_n send_v by_o fortunatus_n for_o fortunatus_n himself_o go_v not_o in_o person_n to_o rome_n as_o you_o mistake_v but_o send_v felicissimus_n with_o other_o schismatic_n like_o himself_o and_o that_o s._n cyprian_n by_o complain_v to_o pope_n cornelius_n of_o these_o rebellious_a sugiti●●s_n do_v not_o deny_v his_o power_n of_o appeal_n not_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o african_a church_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n his_o word_n in_o that_o very_a epistle_n 55._o epistle_n ep._n 55._o three_o line_n before_o to_o go_v no_o further_o plain_o declare_v when_o speak_v of_o these_o schismatic_n he_o say_v they_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v and_o to_o carry_v better_n from_o schismatical_a and_o profane_a person_n not_o have_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o who_o unfaithfulnes_n can_v have_v no_o access_n your_o second_o objection_n be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n do_v deny_v to_o any_o whosoever_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n this_o be_v a_o untruth_n for_o the_o word_n be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o s._n cyprian_n who_o speak_v only_o of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n of_o africa_n assemble_v with_o he_o in_o that_o council_n and_o to_o they_o only_o he_o direct_v his_o speech_n wish_v they_o to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n free_o without_o regard_n to_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o as_o their_o primate_n have_v over_o they_o but_o in_o what_o sense_n soever_o you_o take_v the_o word_n they_o be_v of_o no_o force_n as_o be_v utter_v in_o a_o erroneous_a council_n which_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v which_o s._n augustine_n tot_fw-la augustine_n l._n 6._o the_o baptism_n per_fw-la tot_fw-la have_v confute_v &_o from_o which_o s._n cyprian_n himself_o afterward_o disclaim_v retract_v his_o error_n your_o three_o be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o s._n cyprian_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o pope_n per_fw-la antonomasiam_fw-la to_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o we_o teach_v because_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n be_v demand_v of_o the_o proconsul_n be_v thou_o he_o who_o the_o christian_n call_v their_o pope_n he_o answer_v
from_o africa_n to_o rome_n for_o of_o they_o only_o the_o question_n be_v but_o instead_o of_o prove_v this_o you_o produce_v a_o canon_n in_o which_o even_o as_o it_o be_v report_v by_o yourself_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o bishop_n but_o only_o a_o command_n give_v that_o priest_n deacon_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n appeal_v not_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n either_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o any_o other_o transmarine_a church_n which_o no_o more_o impeach_v the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o disprove_v his_o right_n of_o appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n than_o it_o will_v impeach_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n if_o to_o prevent_v the_o multitude_n of_o unnecessary_a suit_n and_o keep_v his_o people_n in_o awe_n of_o their_o immediate_a superior_n his_o majesty_n and_o his_o court_n of_o parliament_n with_o his_o assent_n shall_v provide_v by_o a_o special_a law_n that_o in_o minor_a cause_n no_o appeal_n be_v make_v from_o they_o to_o himself_o to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o innocentius_n confirm_v this_o council_n of_o milevis_n 93._o milevis_n aug._n ep_v 93._o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o it_o have_v prohibit_v the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o his_o see_n which_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o victricius_n claim_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o be_v lawful_a and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n and_o speak_v of_o cecilian_a archbishop_n of_o carthage_n that_o have_v be_v injust_o condemn_v by_o the_o donatist_n in_o a_o council_n of_o 70._o bishop_n faith_n 162._o faith_n ep._n 162._o cecilian_n may_v have_v contemn_v the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n conspire_v against_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o that_o he_o may_v have_v reserve_v his_o cause_n entire_a to_o be_v judge_v a_o new_a there_o because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o priest_n or_o deacon_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o of_o a_o colleague_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o a_o bishop_n this_o discourse_n of_o s._n augustine_n convince_v that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o rome_n though_o priest_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n may_v not_o how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o say_v 323._o say_v pag._n 323._o bellarmine_n when_o he_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v do_v justify_v appeal_n of_o bishop_n beyond_o the_o sea_n to_o rome_n speak_v so_o still_o as_o though_o be_v be_v scarce_o able_a to_o report_v a_o truth_n bellarmine_n may_v indeed_o with_o truth_n tell_v you_o that_o when_o you_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o case_n of_o appeal_n but_o of_o delegation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n you_o speak_v as_o one_o that_o be_v scarce_o able_a to_o report_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o he_o without_o a_o untruth_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o what_o pass_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la in_o the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a but_o of_o the_o right_a that_o cecilian_a have_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o right_a s._n augustine_n can_v not_o have_v allege_v unless_o he_o have_v believe_v that_o bishop_n in_o their_o wrong_n may_v lawful_o appeal_v to_o he_o and_o that_o the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a be_v not_o a_o case_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o delegation_n from_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o untruth_n that_o shall_v be_v confute_v hereafter_o ●_o hereafter_o chap._n 30._o sect_n ●_o from_o hence_o bellarmine_n collect_v that_o albeit_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n prohibit_v the_o appeal_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n to_o rome_n yet_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v prohibit_v the_o pope_n to_o admit_v of_o such_o appeal_n if_o they_o be_v make_v against_o this_o you_o reply_v 322._o reply_v pag._n 322._o that_o where_o there_o lie_v a_o prohibition_n against_o appeal_n to_o a_o judge_n that_o judge_n be_v not_o hold_v a_o superior_a judge_n false_a if_o it_o be_v take_v universal_o without_o limitation_n for_o a_o prohibition_n may_v be_v injust_a as_o be_v make_v without_o sufficient_a authority_n such_o be_v the_o prohibition_n of_o protestant_n forbid_v all_o appeal_v to_o rome_n again_o a_o prohibition_n may_v be_v make_v with_o dependence_n on_o the_o will_n and_o confirmation_n of_o a_o superior_a to_o who_o the_o right_a of_o appeal_n belong_v such_o be_v the_o prohibition_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n which_o therefore_o without_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v invalid_a and_o be_v not_o valid_a further_a than_o he_o confirm_v it_o wherefore_o though_o by_o confirm_v it_o he_o do_v authorise_v the_o african_a bishop_n to_o impose_v on_o their_o priest_n &_o other_o clerk_n a_o command_n of_o not_o appeal_n to_o rome_n yet_o by_o grant_v they_o that_o authority_n he_o can_v be_v think_v to_o renounce_v his_o own_o right_a so_o far_o as_o that_o if_o a_o priest_n appeal_v unto_o he_o he_o may_v not_o admit_v his_o appeal_n when_o he_o shall_v find_v it_o expedient_a as_o it_o may_v be_v in_o case_n the_o priest_n or_o clerk_n can_v make_v evidence_n of_o his_o innocency_n prove_v by_o sufficient_a witness_n that_o he_o have_v be_v injust_o condemn_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o province_n out_o of_o misinformation_n or_o other_o motive_n chap._n xxvii_o appeal_v to_o rome_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o african_a council_n which_o be_v the_o six_o of_o carthage_n sect_n i._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n apiarius_n a_o african_a priest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o sicca_n be_v of_o a_o lewd_a &_o scandalous_a life_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o vrbanus_n b._n of_o the_o same_o city_n he_o travel_v twice_o to_o rome_n and_o make_v his_o complaint_n to_o zozimus_n pope_n appeal_v to_o his_o judgement_n zozimus_n send_v he_o back_o into_o africa_n wish_v the_o african_a bishop_n to_o examine_v his_o cause_n diligent_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o not_o only_a apiarius_n but_o as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o two_o epistle_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n to_o boniface_n and_o celestine_n successor_n to_o zozimus_n some_o bishop_n also_o have_v appeal_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o africa_n and_o the_o african_a bishop_n complain_v thereof_o he_o send_v unto_o they_o three_o legate_n faustinus_n b._n of_o potentia_n philip_n and_o asellus_n priest_n and_o with_o they_o the_o canon_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a concern_v appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o african_n not_o find_v those_o canon_n in_o their_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n send_v deputy_n into_o the_o east_n to_o procure_v authentical_a copy_n from_o cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o atticus_n of_o constantinople_n but_o when_o they_o come_v their_o copy_n be_v find_v to_o contain_v no_o more_o than_o 20._o which_o be_v the_o number_n exstant_fw-la in_o our_o latin_a edition_n and_o in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n this_o objection_n have_v be_v often_o urge_v by_o protestant_n and_o as_o often_o answer_v by_o we_o and_o particular_o by_o the_o most_o eminent_a cardinal_n baronius_n 419._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 419._o bellarmine_n 25._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 25._o and_o peron_n 49._o peron_n repliq._n l._n 1._o chap._n 49._o in_o they_o you_o may_v read_v the_o solution_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o give_v the_o reader_n out_o of_o they_o and_o other_o author_n a_o touch_n of_o your_o unsyncere_a deal_n whereby_o he_o may_v also_o come_v to_o understand_v what_o the_o issue_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v first_o therefore_o bellarmine_n peron_n cit_fw-la peron_n loc._n cit_fw-la and_o brereley_o 3._o brereley_o prot._n apol_n tract_n 1._o sect_n 7._o subdiu_fw-la 2._o n._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o african_n themselves_o who_o this_o matter_n most_o concern_v high_o commend_v those_o three_o pope_n zozimus_n boniface_n and_o celestine_n with_o who_o this_o controversy_n be_v and_o grace_v they_o with_o title_n of_o great_a reverence_n &_o honour_n call_v zozimus_n the_o most_o bless_a pope_n zozimus_n zozimus_fw-la of_o venerable_a memory_n that_o they_o call_v boniface_n the_o venerable_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o holy_a and_o bless_a pope_n the_o reverend_a pope_n boniface_n boniface_n of_o holy_a memory_n the_o most_o bless_a and_o our_o honourable_a brother_n boniface_n and_o that_o s._n augustine_n dedicate_v to_o he_o one_o of_o his_o principal_a work_n and_o
father_n in_o the_o end_n descend_v to_o a_o flat_a and_o peremptory_a resolution_n in_o opposition_n of_o the_o papal_a claim_n of_o appeal_n this_o be_v a_o flat_a and_o peremptory_a untruth_n for_o the_o african_n never_o contest_v with_o the_o pope_n about_o appeal_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o refer_v they_o to_o he_o as_o appeareth_z out_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n which_o send_v their_o decree_n of_o faith_n to_o innocentius_n pope_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n 26._o authority_n see_v above_o chap._n 26._o their_o contestation_n be_v about_o appeal_v of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n in_o civil_a and_o criminal_a cause_n of_o they_o they_o write_v to_o zozimus_n pope_n but_o he_o be_v dead_a before_o the_o arrival_n of_o their_o letter_n they_o write_v again_o to_o boniface_n his_o successor_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o mandata_fw-la &_o literas_fw-la commandment_n and_o letter_n which_o what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o profess_v he_o to_o be_v their_o superior_a and_o withal_o they_o represent_v to_o boniface_n the_o great_a trouble_n which_o the_o late_a appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n have_v bring_v upon_o they_o &_o that_o therefore_o great_a caution_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v lest_o other_o such_o or_o worse_o shall_v happen_v and_o because_o they_o have_v not_o find_v in_o their_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n those_o canon_n concern_v appeal_n which_o zozimus_n have_v send_v in_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o legate_n they_o require_v time_n to_o send_v into_o the_o east_n for_o authentical_a copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n canon_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o zozimus_n restore_v apiarius_n to_o the_o communion_n &_o to_o his_o priesthood_n apiarius_n say_v they_o to_o boniface_n bonifac._n boniface_n ep_v ad_fw-la bonifac._n crave_v pardon_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o communion_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n it_o have_v please_v we_o that_o apiarius_n shall_v retire_v from_o the_o church_n of_o sicca_n retain_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o degree_n and_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o celestine_n apiarius_n have_v be_v former_o restore_v to_o his_o priesthood_n nor_o do_v they_o show_v their_o obedience_n only_o in_o restore_v apiarus_n but_o moreover_o in_o attend_v the_o come_n of_o the_o eastern_a copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n they_o promise_v with_o great_a humility_n and_o with_o all_o respect_n protest_v to_o observe_v from_o point_n to_o point_n all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n for_o daniel_n notary_n of_o the_o council_n have_v read_v the_o first_o article_n which_o be_v that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n alipius_n say_v 4._o say_v conc._n afric_n c._n 4._o we_o protest_v to_o observe_v these_o thing_n until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o perfect_a copy_n and_o the_o second_o article_n be_v read_v which_o be_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v to_o be_v final_o determine_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n s._n augustine_n say_v 7._o say_v ibid._n c._n 7._o we_o protest_v also_o to_o observe_v this_o article_n save_v a_o more_o diligent_a inquiry_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o whole_a council_n speak_v of_o both_o these_o article_n to_o boniface_n pope_n say_v bonif._n say_v cap._n 101._o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la bonif._n these_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o foresaid_a instruction_n have_v be_v allege_v unto_o we_o of_o the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o clerk_n to_o be_v end_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n we_o protest_v to_o observe_v until_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o your_o holiness_n also_o will_v help_v we_o in_o it_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n send_v by_o zozimus_n be_v admit_v and_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o in_o africa_n allow_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o nicen_n copy_n out_o of_o the_o east_n which_o show_v that_o their_o contestation_n be_v not_o about_o the_o pope_n right_a of_o appeal_n else_o they_o will_v have_v forbid_v they_o absolute_o even_o in_o that_o interim_n but_o about_o the_o expediency_n of_o they_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o prosecute_a they_o by_o legate_n and_o executor_n send_v from_o rome_n which_o be_v yet_o further_o confirm_v by_o these_o their_o word_n to_o pope_n celestine_n celest._n celestine_n ep._n ad_fw-la celest._n wherefore_o premise_v the_o office_n of_o due_a salutation_n we_o beseech_v you_o affectionate_o that_o hereafter_o you_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o admit_v to_o your_o ear_n those_o that_o come_v from_o these_o part_n nor_o vestore_v to_o the_o communion_n such_o as_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o us._n and_o a_o little_a after_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o who_o in_o their_o own_o province_n have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v hasty_o and_o otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n these_o word_n be_v another_o remonstrance_n of_o their_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n over_o they_o and_o of_o their_o subjection_n to_o he_o for_o they_o say_v not_o to_o celestine_n that_o he_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o restore_v the_o communion_n to_o those_o that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o they_o but_o humble_o beseech_v he_o not_o to_o do_v it_o easy_o and_o without_o mature_a deliberation_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o will_v send_v they_o back_o into_o africa_n to_o be_v judge_v upon_o the_o place_n where_o their_o cause_n may_v be_v discuss_v more_o exact_o and_o the_o truth_n more_o certain_o know_v by_o the_o attestation_n of_o witness_n which_o can_v not_o without_o much_o difficulty_n and_o charge_n pass_v to_o rome_n and_o whereas_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 7._o sardica_n can._n 7._o have_v decree_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n esteem_n be_v just_a that_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v renown_a it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o pope_n power_n if_o he_o please_v to_o send_v legate_n from_o rome_n to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n from_o who_o the_o appeal_n be_v make_v that_o by_o they_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v try_v and_o judge_v a_o new_a the_o african_n deny_v not_o this_o power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n nor_o any_o way_n except_v against_o the_o send_n back_o of_o the_o appellant_n into_o africa_n to_o have_v their_o cause_n try_v again_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n but_o only_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v not_o to_o send_v legate_n who_o by_o prosecute_a the_o cause_n of_o appellant_n too_o violent_o do_v sometime_o give_v occasion_n of_o complaint_n wherefore_o beseech_v pope_n celestine_n they_o say_v 107_o say_v conc._n afric_n c._n 107_o that_o you_o will_v not_o send_v your_o clerk_n executor_n to_o all_o that_o demand_v they_o nor_o permit_v that_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o introduce_v the_o smoky_a pride_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o propound_v the_o light_n of_o simplicity_n and_o the_o day_n of_o humility_n to_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v god_n the_o motive_n which_o the_o african_n have_v to_o make_v this_o petition_n be_v the_o insolent_a carriage_n of_o antony_n b._n of_o fussala_n in_o numidia_n who_o as_o s._n augustine_n report_v 261._o report_v ep._n 261._o for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n by_o procurement_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o fussala_n and_o leave_v with_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o bishop_n fraudulent_o get_v testimonial_a letter_n of_o his_o innocency_n from_o the_o primate_n of_o numidia_n at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o this_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o appeal_v to_o boniface_n pope_n who_o answer_v with_o great_a caution_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v restore_v si_fw-la nulla_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la narratione_fw-la surreptio_fw-la intercessisset_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o surreption_n in_o the_o relation_n of_o his_o cause_n boniface_n die_v and_o celestine_n succeed_v they_o of_o fussala_n prosecute_v their_o suit_n earnest_o against_o he_o and_o he_o contrary_o threaten_v that_o celestine_n will_v send_v clerk_n executor_n and_o if_o need_n be_v soldier_n to_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n he_o threaten_v they_o say_v s._n augustine_n ibid._n augustine_n ibid._n with_o secular_a power_n as_o if_o they_o be_v to_o come_v to_o execute_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o that_o the_o miserable_a inhabitant_n be_v christian_n and_o catholic_n fear_v more_o grievous_a usage_n from_o a_o
catholic_a bishop_n than_o they_o do_v when_o they_o be_v heretic_n from_o the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o s._n augustine_n and_o this_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n beseech_v celestine_n not_o to_o grant_v clerk_n executor_n to_o all_o appellant_n and_o this_o convince_v you_o of_o a_o untruth_n in_o say_v 151._o say_v pag._n 145._o fin_n 151._o that_o the_o african_a father_n call_v that_o papal_a presumption_n of_o appeal_v a_o smoky_a secular_a arrogancy_n which_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n claim_n of_o appeal_n that_o they_o qualify_v with_o the_o name_n of_o typhe_n or_o smoky_a secular_a arrogancy_n but_o partly_o the_o vexation_n and_o insolence_n of_o apiarius_n and_o other_o priest_n despise_v and_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o episcopal_a discipline_n and_o partly_o the_o force_n &_o military_a violence_n which_o the_o executor_n send_v from_o rome_n do_v sometime_o use_v in_o execute_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a for_o speak_v to_o boniface_n pope_n of_o the_o insolency_n of_o apiarius_n they_o say_v 101._o say_v conc._n afric_n c._n 101._o but_o we_o hope_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n mercy_n that_o your_o holiness_n govern_v in_o the_o roman_a see_v we_o shall_v no_o long_o suffer_v this_o typhe_n and_o because_o the_o executor_n do_v sometime_o make_v use_n of_o secular_a force_n they_o beseech_v celestine_n 105._o celestine_n ibid._n c._n 105._o not_o to_o grant_v clerk_n executor_n to_o all_o that_o demand_v they_o lest_o the_o typhe_n of_o the_o world_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n forbid_v john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n to_o make_v use_n of_o any_o military_a power_n to_o hinder_v the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n from_o elect_v to_o themselves_o a_o archbishop_n without_o his_o consent_n lest_o say_v the_o council_n under_o pretence_n of_o execute_v sacred_a thing_n the_o typhe_n of_o secular_a power_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o author_n 26._o author_n cap._n 26._o of_o s._n fulgentius_n his_o life_n say_v that_o fulgentius_n command_v nothing_o with_o the_o typhe_n of_o secular_a dominion_n and_o no_o less_o untrue_o fin_n untrue_o pag._n 145._o fin_n you_o make_v the_o african_n say_v in_o their_o epistle_n to_o celestine_n that_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o papal_a presumption_n of_o appeal_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v read_v in_o that_o epistle_n for_o what_o they_o speak_v of_o not_o endure_v have_v no_o relation_n to_o appeal_v but_o to_o the_o crime_n of_o apiarius_n as_o for_o the_o wretched_a apiarius_n say_v they_o he_o have_v be_v already_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o his_o infamous_a crime_n by_o our_o brother_n faustinus_n we_o be_v no_o more_o in_o care_n for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o approbation_n and_o moderation_n of_o your_o holiness_n africa_n will_v no_o long_o endure_v he_o 5._o you_o say_v 155._o say_v pag._n 155._o this_o council_n denounce_v excommunication_n to_o all_o that_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n this_o be_v another_o untruth_n for_o the_o council_n speak_v not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n only_o &_o so_o much_o you_o contradict_a yourself_o have_v acknowledge_v a_o little_a before_o set_v down_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o council_n thus_o 146._o thus_o pag._n 146._o if_o any_o priest_n shall_v think_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n mean_v to_o rome_n let_v he_o not_o be_v receive_v any_o long_a into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n you_o reply_v 155._o reply_v pag._n 155._o that_o this_o answer_n be_v a_o sophistry_n confute_v by_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o council_n for_o if_o inferior_a clergy_n be_v prohibit_v much_o more_o be_v the_o same_o provision_n make_v in_o behalf_n of_o bishop_n this_o consequence_n we_o deny_v as_o false_a sophistry_n for_o albeit_o they_o propose_v this_o among_o their_o request_n to_o pope_n celestine_n yet_o they_o make_v no_o decree_n nor_o provision_n thereof_o nor_o if_o they_o have_v can_v it_o have_v be_v of_o force_n as_o be_v direct_o contradictory_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o two_o famous_a counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o sardica_n 26._o sardica_n see_v above_o chap._n 26._o and_o also_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o s._n augustine_n say_v 162._o say_v ep._n 162._o that_o cecilian_n may_v have_v appeal_v beyond_o the_o sea_n because_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o priest_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n but_o of_o bishop_n and_o moreover_o he_o represent_v to_o celestine_n pope_n 261._o pope_n ep._n 261._o that_o whereas_o antony_n b._n of_o fussala_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o leave_v only_o with_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o bishop_n have_v appeal_v to_o boniface_n his_o predecessor_n he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n because_o say_v he_o there_o have_v be_v many_o like_a sentence_n in_o africa_n even_o the_o see_v apostolic_a pronounce_v the_o judgement_n or_o confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o other_o as_o of_o priscus_n victor_n and_o laurence_n bishop_n of_o the_o cesarian_a province_n sect_n v._o whether_o this_o controversy_n of_o appeal_v wrought_v in_o the_o african_n any_o separation_n of_o communion_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o make_v your_o argument_n more_o plausible_a you_o say_v 148._o say_v pag._n 148._o that_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o controversy_n between_o the_o african_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n aurelius_n b._n of_o carthage_n &_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n of_o africa_n with_o who_o s._n augustine_n do_v consent_n be_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o all_o the_o untruth_n utter_v in_o this_o your_o discourse_n of_o the_o sixth_o council_n of_o carthage_n this_o be_v the_o great_a which_o therefore_o you_o have_v reserve_v to_o the_o last_o place_n finis_fw-la coronat_fw-la opus_fw-la for_o that_o the_o african_a father_n even_o of_o this_o six_o council_n of_o charthage_n during_o the_o very_a time_n of_o this_o controversy_n remain_v still_o unite_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v prove_v 1._o by_o the_o clause_n of_o their_o epistle_n write_v to_o pope_n celestine_n in_o the_o end_n of_o this_o controversy_n 646._o controversy_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 646._o our_o lord_n keep_v your_o holiness_n many_o year_n pray_v for_o we_o lord_n and_o brother_n which_o be_v the_o very_a world_n of_o peace_n and_o communion_n use_v in_o form_v letter_n that_o be_v never_o give_v to_o any_o but_o to_o catholic_n of_o the_o same_o communion_n 162.163_o communion_n aug._n ep_v 162.163_o 2._o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n who_o in_o the_o current_n of_o this_o difference_n write_v to_o boniface_n pope_n &_o dedicate_a one_o of_o his_o chief_a work_n unto_o he_o say_v 1._o say_v cont._n dvas_fw-la ep_n pelag._n ad_fw-la bonifa_n l._n 1._o thou_o disdain_v not_o thou_o who_o be_v not_o high_o mind_v though_o thou_o preside_v high_o to_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o humble_a 3._o out_o of_o the_o testimony_n which_o pope_n celestine_n give_v of_o s._n augustine_n after_o his_o death_n 2._o death_n ep._n ad_fw-la epise_v galliae_fw-la c._n 2._o augustine_n a_o man_n of_o holy_a memory_n for_o his_o life_n &_o merit_n we_o have_v have_v always_o in_o our_o communion_n nor_o have_v the_o rumour_n of_o any_o sinister_a suspicion_n ever_o so_o much_o as_o touch_v he_o which_o epistle_n of_o celestine_n to_o the_o french_a be_v allege_v by_o pettus_n diaconus_fw-la great_a diaconus_fw-la l._n the_o incarn_n &_o great_a and_o by_o prosper_n 42._o prosper_n cont._n collatine_n c._n 42._o to_o justify_v s._n augustine_n doctrine_n against_o the_o pelagian_o 4._o and_o the_o same_o prosper_n 38._o prosper_n l._n de_fw-fr promise_v &_o predict_v par_fw-fr 3._o c._n 38._o call_v aurelius_n archbishop_n of_o carthage_n under_o who_o the_o african_a council_n be_v hold_v after_o his_o death_n a_o father_n and_o bishop_n of_o worthy_a memory_n and_o a_o citizen_n of_o the_o heavenly_a country_n which_o praise_n he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v he_o if_o he_o have_v die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o prosper_n in_o that_o very_a book_n 5._o book_n part._n 4._o c._n 5._o say_v that_o a_o christian_a communicate_v with_o that_o church_n be_v a_o catholic_a but_o if_o he_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n 5._o capreolus_n immediate_a successor_n to_o aurelius_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 9_o ephesus_n act._n conc._n ephes_n to_o 2._o c._n 9_o we_o pray_v you_o
and_o scot_n not_o celebrate_v easter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n separate_v from_o her_o communion_n among_o other_o example_n of_o ancient_a church_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n you_o produce_v for_o your_o last_o instance_n 158._o instance_n pag._n 156._o 157._o 158._o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n who_o keep_v their_o easter_n if_o not_o whole_o after_o the_o jewish_a manner_n yet_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n wherein_o you_o be_v guilty_a of_o diverse_a untruth_n for_o first_o you_o speak_v of_o this_o their_o custom_n as_o ancient_a among_o the_o britan_n whereas_o bede_n 19_o bede_n l._n 2._o hist_o anglo_n c._n 19_o record_v that_o honorius_n pope_n about_o the_o year_n 635._o and_o john_n the_o four_o a_o few_o year_n after_o write_v to_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n letter_n full_a of_o authority_n and_o learning_n for_o correct_v this_o error_n &_o that_o pope_n john_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n 1029._o epistle_n extat_fw-la apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 1029._o manifest_o declare_v nuperrime_fw-la temporibus_fw-la istis_fw-la exortam_fw-la esse_fw-la haeresim_fw-la hanc_fw-la that_o this_o heresy_n be_v very_o late_o spring_v up_o among_o they_o which_o florentius_n wigorniensis_n also_o testify_v say_v 628._o say_v in_o chron._n a_o 628._o eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la etc._n etc._n at_o that_o time_n honorius_n pope_n do_v reprove_v the_o error_n of_o the_o quartadeciman_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o scot_n 2._o you_o attribute_v this_o custom_n to_o the_o britan_n &_o scot_n in_o general_a as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o guilty_a thereof_o whereas_o venerable_a bede_n attribute_n it_o not_o to_o all_o the_o britan_n non_fw-la totis_fw-la say_v he_o 25._o he_o l._n 3_o hist_o cap._n 25._o not_o to_o all_o of_o they_o nor_o to_o all_o the_o scot_n but_o especial_o to_o such_o as_o dwell_v in_o ireland_n and_o also_o to_o some_o of_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o britain_n beside_o the_o whole_a english_a church_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v free_a from_o that_o error_n 3._o you_o assume_v 190._o assume_v pag._n 190._o as_o grant_v by_o we_o that_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n be_v schismatical_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o not_o heretical_o that_o their_o opinion_n be_v heretical_a you_o have_v hear_v bede_n testify_v say_v that_o this_o heresy_n be_v very_o late_o spring_v up_o among_o they_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v 23._o prove_v chap._n 23._o the_o quartadeciman_o have_v be_v long_o before_o that_o time_n anathematise_v by_o the_o three_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o nice_a constantinople_n and_o ephesus_n and_o the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o error_n register_v for_o heretic_n by_o philastrius_n s._n augustine_n theodoret_n and_o other_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v init_fw-la say_v pag._n 157._o init_fw-la that_o the_o britain_n church_n do_v orthodoxal_o in_o follow_v the_o quartadociman_n rite_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o though_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n in_o this_o their_o observation_n do_v disagree_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v it_o not_o with_o a_o schismatical_a intention_n but_o out_o of_o simplicity_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a computation_n they_o live_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n whither_o no_o learned_a catholic_a calculator_n of_o time_n have_v as_o yet_o come_v unto_o they_o the_o see_v apostolic_a do_v still_o retain_v they_o in_o her_o communion_n deem_v this_o error_n pardonable_a in_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o abbot_n colmanus_n in_o the_o famous_a conference_n hold_v between_o he_o and_o wilfridus_n concern_v this_o matter_n urge_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o custom_n 25._o custom_n apud_fw-la bed_n l._n 3._o hist._n c._n 25._o that_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o their_o reverend_a father_n columba_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v man_n so_o belove_v of_o god_n do_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o celebrate_v easter_n as_o until_o that_o time_n they_o have_v do_v wilfride_n answer_v ibid._n answer_v ibid._n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o your_o father_n be_v servant_n of_o god_n and_o belove_v of_o he_o who_o they_o love_v with_o a_o rude_a kind_n of_o simplicity_n but_o with_o a_o godly_a intention_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v that_o this_o their_o observation_n of_o easter_n be_v great_o hurtful_a unto_o they_o so_o long_o as_o none_o have_v come_v to_o they_o to_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o more_o perfection_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v observe_v for_o i_o believe_v that_o if_o a_o catholic_a calculator_n have_v come_v unto_o they_o they_o will_v have_v follow_v his_o admonition_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o say_v baronius_n 5._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 604._o n._n 5._o it_o seem_v not_o good_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o blotout_a of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o saint_n such_o man_n as_o have_v live_v among_o they_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o who_o god_n have_v illustrate_v with_o miracle_n 5._o but_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scottish_a and_o british_a church_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a you_o allege_v mark_fw-mi allege_v pag._n 157._o mark_fw-mi galfridus_n out_o of_o the_o centurist_n say_v dinothus_n a_o learned_a abbot_n prove_v with_o many_o argument_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o augustine_n who_o s._n gregory_n have_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o english_a this_o be_v a_o falsification_n which_o therefore_o you_o vent_v in_o the_o centurist_n name_n for_o galfridus_n have_v not_o any_o one_o word_n of_o the_o britan_n or_o scot_n no-subiection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o a_o passionate_a and_o choleric_a speech_n of_o the_o britan_n not_o acknowledge_v any_o superiority_n of_o augustine_n over_o they_o see_v he_o be_v send_v only_o to_o the_o english_a and_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o own_o archbishop_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o his_o come_n for_o aught_o they_o know_v which_o question_n of_o jurisdiction_n fall_v out_o daily_o between_o bishop_n even_o where_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v most_o acknowledge_v yea_o moreover_o that_o both_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n over_o they_o galfridus_n against_o you_o and_o your_o centurist_n bear_v witness_v report_v 11._o report_v l._n 9_o c._n 12._o &_o 11._o that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n at_o chester_n king_n arthur_n be_v present_a there_o be_v a_o great_a meeting_n of_o prince_n lord_n and_o bishop_n for_o his_o coronation_n and_o that_o of_o three_o archbishop_n which_o britain_n have_v at_o that_o time_n of_o chester_n london_n and_o york_n dubritius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o chester_n be_v primate_n of_o britain_n and_o legate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a do_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n and_o crown_v king_n arthur_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v his_o legate_n in_o britain_n and_o that_o no_o less_o a_o man_n then_o the_o primate_n of_o all_o britain_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o britan_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a o●er_n they_o which_o be_v yet_o make_v more_o evident_a because_o as_o your_o bale_n 30._o bale_n de_fw-fr script_n eceles_n fol._n 30._o confess_v david_n that_o famous_a welsh_a bishop_n be_v canonize_v by_o pope_n calixtus_n the_o second_o and_o not_o only_a bale_n but_o s._n prosper_n 432.434_o prosper_n chron._n ●n_n 432.434_o bede_n 17._o bede_n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 13._o &_o 17._o and_o marianus_n scotus_n 430._o scotus_n chron._n a_o 430._o write_v that_o celestine_n pope_n send_v palladius_n and_o germanus_n learned_a bishop_n into_o britain_n to_o extirpate_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o to_o reduce_v the_o scot_n to_o true_a piety_n and_o patricius_n who_o have_v study_v divinity_n in_o rome_n and_o be_v a_o man_n most_o excellent_a in_o learning_n and_o sanctity_n to_o the_o irish_a and_o scot_n to_o defend_v they_o from_o the_o same_o heresy_n all_o which_o show_v that_o aswell_o the_o britan_n as_o also_o the_o scot_n &_o irish_a even_o before_o the_o come_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v supreme_a care_n over_o they_o in_o spiritual_a affair_n since_o he_o appoint_v they_o bishop_n from_o rome_n just_o therefore_o may_v we_o conclude_v that_o your_o deny_v the_o subirction_n of_o the_o british_a scotish_n and_o irish_a church_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n at_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n come_v into_o this_o island_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o english_a be_v ground_v
whole_o on_o falsehood_n &_o imposture_n as_o likewise_o be_v your_o affirm_v that_o the_o african_n from_o the_o time_n of_o celestine_n pope_n to_o boniface_n the_o second_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o set_v aside_o all_o other_o argument_n since_o you_o can_v deny_v that_o she_o in_o her_o calendar_n of_o saint_n place_v many_o most_o glorious_a african_a martyr_n and_o confessor_n of_o that_o time_n what_o man_n even_o of_o common_a sense_n can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o she_o will_v honour_v they_o as_o saint_n if_o they_o have_v die_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n and_o obedience_n chap._n xxix_o of_o the_o great_a reverence_n of_o ancient_a christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n to_o the_o pope_n bellarmine_n 5._o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr officio_fw-la principis_fw-la christia_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o 5._o prove_v that_o emperor_n and_o king_n owe_v subjection_n to_o bishop_n in_o sprirituall_a affair_n as_o to_o their_o pastor_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a covernor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o father_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v by_o this_o doctrine_n to_o derogate_v from_o the_o majesty_n of_o emperor_n or_o king_n or_o any_o way_n to_o lessen_v the_o reverence_n due_a to_o their_o person_n and_o dignity_n he_o prove_v by_o the_o undoubted_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n ambrose_n s._n gregory_n and_o other_o learned_a father_n as_o also_o by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o most_o godly_a christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n themselves_o that_o the_o episcopal_a and_o sacerdotal_a dignity_n excel_v the_o imperial_a as_o far_o as_o gold_n surpass_v lead_v and_o the_o soul_n the_o body_n that_o not_o only_a constantine_n the_o great_a but_o god_n himself_o honour_v bishop_n and_o priest_n with_o the_o name_n of_o angel_n and_o god_n that_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o father_n the_o doctor_n &_o pastor_n aswell_o of_o the_o prince_n as_o of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o christian_a prince_n when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n or_o write_v to_o he_o express_v their_o acknowledgement_n of_o his_o supreme_a dignity_n by_o give_v he_o the_o title_n of_o holy_a father_n and_z most_o bless_a father_n from_o whence_o it_o must_v follow_v that_o as_o disciple_n owe_v obedience_n to_o their_o doctor_n child_n to_o their_o father_n &_o sheep_n to_o their_o pastor_n so_o christian_a prince_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o soul_n owe_v obedience_n to_o their_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v the_o father_n the_o archpastor_n &_o chief_a doctor_n of_o all_o christian_n upon_o this_o ground_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n for_o his_o profound_a learning_n surname_v the_o divine_a fear_v not_o to_o say_v to_o the_o emperor_n irascent_fw-la emperor_n orat._n ad_fw-la cive_v suos_fw-la timo_fw-la percul_fw-la &_o princip_n irascent_fw-la will_v you_o hear_v i_o with_o patience_n to_o speak_v my_o mind_n free_o unto_o you_o which_o true_o you_o ought_v to_o do_v for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v you_o subject_a to_o my_o power_n and_o to_o my_o tribunal_n for_o we_o bishop_n have_v a_o empire_n also_o and_o that_o more_o perfect_a than_o you_o unless_o you_o will_v plead_v that_o the_o spirit_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o heavenly_a thing_n to_o earthly_a but_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o you_o will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n this_o my_o freedom_n of_o speech_n you_o be_v a_o sacred_a sheep_n of_o my_o holy_a flock_n and_o a_o disciple_n of_o the_o grand_a pastor_n right_o instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n even_o from_o your_o young_a year_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n it_o be_v that_o holy_a s._n bernard_n give_v this_o admonition_n to_o conradus_n the_o emperor_n 183._o emperor_n ep._n 183._o i_o have_v read_v let_v every_o soul_n he_o subject_n to_o high_a power_n and_o he_o that_o resist_v power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o sentence_n i_o great_o desire_v and_o by_o all_o mean_n admonish_v you_o to_o observe_v in_o yield_a reverence_n to_o the_o sovereign_a and_o apostolic_a see_v and_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o bless_a peter_n as_o you_o will_v have_v it_o exhibit_v to_o you_o by_o the_o whole_a empire_n these_o learned_a father_n do_v understand_v right_o well_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o emperor_n and_o king_n &_o that_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o dignity_n they_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o great_a veneration_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o conceive_v it_o not_o vilifi_v of_o their_o majesty_n nor_o abase_v of_o their_o person_n to_o require_v from_o they_o obedience_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n to_o their_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n &_o especial_o to_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o supreme_a bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o all_o pastor_n this_o be_v bellarmine_n doctrine_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o his_o discourse_n which_o put_v you_o so_o far_o out_o of_o patience_n that_o not_o be_v able_a to_o confute_v what_o he_o have_v so_o solid_o prove_v you_o begin_v to_o rail_v at_o the_o pope_n 160.164_o pope_n pag._n 160.164_o for_o permit_v his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v as_o taste_v rank_o of_o luciferian_a pride_n which_o though_o it_o be_v no_o argument_n either_o against_o the_o faith_n or_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o frivolous_a cavil_n no_o way_n pertinent_a to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n have_v be_v already_o satisfy_v to_o the_o full_a 10._o full_a chap._n 10._o 2._o you_o go_v on_o in_o the_o same_o stream_n tell_v we_o 160._o we_o pag._n 160._o that_o we_o make_v a_o barbarous_a boast_n our_o pope_n in_o not_o admit_v of_o two_o emperor_n henry_n the_o four_o and_o frederick_n barbarossa_n to_o their_o presence_n without_o a●●●●●●me_a kind_n of_o subvission_n the_o one_o by_o appothe_v upon_o his_o bare_a sit_fw-mi the_o other_o by_o subiect_v his_o neck_n unto_o the_o pope_n foot_n while_o as_o the_o pope_n one_o may_v brag_v of_o more_o favour_n than_o the_o first_o and_o his_o ass_n thou_o the_o second_o so_o you_o but_o your_o scoff_n rebound_v upon_o your_o own_o head_n and_o turn_v to_o your_o shame_n for_o henry_n the_o four_o a_o most_o flagitious_a emperor_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o move_v and_o solicit_v thereto_o by_o the_o many_o complaint_n and_o extreme_a importunity_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a of_o germany_n henry_n see_v himself_o for_o saken_a by_o they_o all_o and_o fear_v lest_o they_o will_v deprive_v he_o of_o his_o empire_n unless_o he_o reconcile_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n and_o procure_v absolution_n from_o the_o excommunication_n he_o have_v incur_v come_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o present_v himself_o unto_o he_o in_o a_o penitential_a habit_n and_o barefoot_a crave_v absolution_n which_o after_o three_o day_n instance_n the_o pope_n grant_v he_o &_o have_v invite_v he_o to_o dinner_n courteous_o dismiss_v he_o this_o in_o brief_a be_v the_o story_n relate_v more_o at_o large_a by_o baronius_n 1077._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 1077._o who_o have_v prove_v that_o this_o penance_n be_v no_o way_n extort_a by_o the_o pope_n but_o free_o do_v by_o the_o emperor_n convince_v ben_n no_o that_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a of_o a_o most_o impudent_a lie_v tell_v reclamantibus_fw-la omnibus_fw-la authoribus_fw-la against_o the_o agree_a consent_n of_o all_o author_n wherefore_o you_o in_o allege_v baronius_n for_o your_o author_n that_o we_o make_v a_o barbarous_a boast_n of_o the_o pope_n not_o admit_v this_o emperor_n without_o approach_v on_o his_o bare_a foot_n impose_v false_o on_o baronius_n as_o benno_n do_v on_o the_o pope_n and_o as_o little_a truth_n do_v i_o find_v in_o that_o your_o other_o tale_n of_o fredericus_fw-la barbarossa_n for_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v any_o boast_n thereof_o that_o we_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a fable_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o bring_v nothing_o but_o the_o bare_a testimony_n of_o massonius_n who_o whether_o he_o report_v it_o or_o no_o i_o know_v not_o nor_o be_v it_o worth_a the_o examine_n for_o you_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o modern_a fabulous_a and_o forbid_a author_n prohib_fw-la author_n in_o indice_fw-la lib._n prohib_fw-la and_o that_o this_o fable_n of_o he_o be_v disprove_v by_o baronius_n 86.87_o baronius_n anno_fw-la 1177._o n._n 86.87_o and_o bellarmine_n 16._o bellarmine_n in_o apol._n c._n 16._o out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o roger_n hoveden_n a_o historian_n of_o that_o time_n &_o romualdus_n archbishop_n of_o salernum_n who_o be_v present_a and_o a_o eye_n witness_n of_o all_o that_o pass_v write_v that_o frederick_n fall_v down_o prostrate_a at_o the_o pope_n foot_n the_o pope_n with_o tear_n do_v most_o courteous_o lift_v he_o up_o in_o his_o arm_n but_o
much_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v a_o especial_a constitution_n as_o a_o perpetual_a monument_n thereof_o to_o the_o world_n 30._o world_n apud_fw-la gratis_o d._n 19_o c._n 30._o &_o in_o conc._n triburieu_o c._n 30._o he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o basilius_n macedo_n be_v present_a at_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n in_o his_o oration_n to_o the_o father_n there_o assemble_v make_v append_v make_v act._n 6._o append_v open_a profession_n of_o his_o obedience_n to_o be_v bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o he_o give_v this_o memorable_a advice_n to_o the_o laity_n conc._n laity_n oras_fw-la in_o fine_a conc._n that_o whereas_o not_o they_o but_o bishop_n have_v the_o charge_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n with_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v the_o dignity_n of_o pastor_n belong_v to_o they_o and_o that_o as_o well_o himself_o as_o all_o lay-man_n be_v sheep_n to_o be_v feed_v to_o be_v sanctify_v to_o be_v bind_v and_o lose_v from_o their_o bond_n by_o they_o and_o if_o from_o emperor_n he_o have_v pass_v to_o king_n he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o howbeit_o in_o the_o time_n of_o lucius_n the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o this_o island_n there_o be_v many_o church_n sound_v in_o germany_n france_n and_o spain_n yet_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v make_v a_o christian_a require_v not_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n from_o any_o bishop_n of_o those_o country_n near_o at_o hand_n but_o write_v and_o send_v ambassador_n to_o eleutherius_fw-la pope_n that_o from_o he_o as_o from_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n himself_o his_o queen_n and_o people_n may_v receive_v so_o necessary_a a_o sacrament_n as_o they_o do_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o fugatius_n and_o damianus_n who_o eleutherius_fw-la scent_n for_o that_o purpose_n into_o britain_n aesat_fw-la britain_n bed_n hist._n augl_n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o &_o the_o sex_n aesat_fw-la he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o of_o win_v king_n understanding_n that_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n be_v give_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v his_o successor_n resolve_v not_o to_o oppose_v he_o but_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o know_v and_o be_v able_a to_o obey_v his_o decree_n in_o all_o thing_n 25._o thing_n bed_n hist._n augl_n l._n 3._o c._n 25._o he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o pope_n adrian_n the_o first_o be_v dead_a and_o leo_n choose_v in_o this_o place_n kenulphus_n king_n of_o the_o mercian_n write_v to_o he_o 12._o he_o continuat_fw-la histor_n bode_n l._n 1._o c._n 12._o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n that_o he_o have_v provide_v for_o his_o flock_n so_o solicitous_a a_o pastor_n to_o who_o command_n say_v he_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o lend_v humble_o a_o obedient_a ear_n and_o have_v ask_v his_o benediction_n he_o add_v this_o benediction_n all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o mercian_n which_o have_v go_v before_o i_o have_v obtain_v and_o that_o which_o i_o humble_o crave_v and_o desire_v to_o obtain_v from_o you_o o_o most_o holy_a be_v that_o you_o accept_v of_o i_o as_o your_o adopt_a child_n as_o i_o choose_v and_o with_o all_o obedience_n reverence_v you_o in_o the_o place_n of_o a_o father_n he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o s._n edward_n the_o confessor_n write_v to_o nicolas_n pope_n edward_n pope_n alred_n rieval_n in_o vita_fw-la s._n edward_n address_v his_o letter_n to_o he_o with_o this_o inscription_n to_o the_o sovereign_a father_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n nicolas_n edward_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n king_n of_o england_n due_a subjection_n if_o from_o england_n he_o have_v pass_v to_o other_o country_n he_o can_v have_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n of_o france_n lewis_n the_o eleaventh_o write_v to_o pius_n the_o second_o salute_v he_o with_o this_o title_n 2._o title_n ep._n ad_fw-la pium_fw-la 2._o to_o our_o most_o bless_a father_n pius_n the_o second_o pope_n filial_a obedieuce_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n we_o have_v you_o that_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o the_o live_a god_n in_o so_o great_a veneration_n that_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o hear_v your_o sacred_a admonition_n especial_o in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n as_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n for_o we_o profess_v and_o know_v you_o to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o our_o lord_n flock_v and_o we_o obey_v your_o command_n and_o among_o the_o document_n which_o this_o holy_a king_n s._n lewis_n on_o his_o deathbed_n leave_v in_o write_v to_o philip_n his_o son_n this_o be_v one_o aug._n one_o nangius_n de_fw-fr gest_n s._n ludou_n &_o surius_n 25._o aug._n be_v thou_o devout_a and_o obedient_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o to_o a_o mother_n and_o show_v thyself_o dutiful_a to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o as_o to_o thy_o spiritual_a father_n it_o be_v not_o difficult_a to_o add_v more_o testimony_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o other_o king_n of_o france_n as_o of_o charles_n and_z hugh_z of_o alphonsus_n the_o wise_a and_o ferdinand_n the_o catholic_a of_o spain_n of_o leo_n king_n of_o the_o armenian_n of_o sigismond_n of_o poland_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o may_v suffice_v to_o persuade_v any_o judicious_a reader_n that_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o godly_a christian_a emperor_n and_o king_n that_o christendom_n have_v breed_v have_v believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o pastor_n and_o spiritual_a father_n and_o themselves_o bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o he_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o withal_o to_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o your_o contrary_a tenet_n chap._n xxx_o whether_o christian_a emperor_n have_v invest_v themselves_o in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n you_o maintain_v the_o affirmative_a which_o you_o prove_v with_o several_a example_n all_o of_o they_o direct_o against_o yourself_o sect_n 1._o constantine_n the_o great_a invest_v not_o himself_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o the_o first_o place_n you_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n that_o be_v solicit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o hear_v and_o determine_v certain_a controversy_n of_o bishop_n he_o answer_v 32●_n answer_v ruffin_n l._n 1_o c._n 1.8_o greg._n l._n 4_o 〈◊〉_d 72._o baron_fw-fr a_o 32●_n god_n have_v constitute_v you_o priest_n and_o give_v you_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o we_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v right_o judge_v by_o you_o but_o you_o can_v be_v judge_v by_o man_n wherefore_o expect_v you_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o let_v your_o quarrel_n whatsoever_o be_v refer_v to_o his_o divine_a judgement_n for_o god_n have_v give_v you_o to_o we_o as_o god_n and_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a that_o man_n shall_v judge_v god_n but_o he_o alone_o of_o who_o it_o be_v write_v 81.1_o write_v psal_n 81.1_o god_n stand_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o god_n and_o judge_v god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o in_o these_o word_n constantine_n acknowledge_v the_o episcopal_a power_n to_o be_v above_o the_o imperial_a and_o that_o a_o priest_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v of_o a_o emperor_n if_o he_o be_v in_o his_o parish_n whereas_o contrariwise_o the_o priest_n can_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o emperor_n more_o than_o the_o pastor_n by_o his_o sheep_n or_o god_n by_o man_n but_o you_o object_n 161._o object_n pag._n 161._o constantine_n judge_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a b._n of_o carthage_n and_o this_o you_o esteem_v to_o be_v so_o choice_a a_o argument_n that_o afterward_o you_o repeat_v it_o twice_o again_o 327._o again_o pag._n ●21_n &_o 327._o but_o very_o unaduised_o this_o very_a example_n alone_o be_v of_o itself_o a_o abosolute_a demonstration_n of_o the_o falsehood_n of_o your_o doctrine_n for_o first_o the_o donatist_n that_o require_v judge_n from_o constantine_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a be_v heretic_n who_o as_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o god_n church_n and_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 1st_a say_v ep._n 1st_a be_v guilty_a of_o the_o horrible_a crime_n of_o erect_v altar_n against_o altar_n so_o in_o their_o recourse_n to_o constantine_n they_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v say_v s._n martin_n 2._o martin_n sever_v sulpititius_n ●ist_v s●●●cra_fw-la l._n 2._o to_o the_o emperor_n maximus_n a_o new_a and_o never_o hear_v of_o impiety_n that_o a_o secular_a judge_n shall_v judge_v a_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n and_o s._n athanasius_n solit_fw-la athanasius_n ep._n ad_fw-la solit_fw-la what_o have_v the_o emperor_n to_o do_v with_o the_o judgment_n of_o bishop_n have_v it_o ever_o have_n hear_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o judgment_n of_o the_o church_n do_v take_v their_o force_n from_o the_o emperor_n 355._o emperor_n ep._n add_v constant_a extat_fw-la a●ud_fw-la baron_n anno_o 355
be_v the_o definitive_a sentence_n pronounce_v by_o bless_a melchlade_n how_o entire_a how_o prudent_a how_o peaceable_a in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n augustine_n great_o commend_v he_o for_o it_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n o_o bless_a man_n o_o son_n of_o christian_a peace_n and_o father_n of_o christian_a people_n nevertheless_o those_o rebellious_a donatist_n rest_v not_o but_o from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n appeal_v again_o to_o the_o emperor_n which_o he_o so_o much_o mislike_v that_o he_o call_v it_o felic_n it_o ep._n ad_fw-la episc_n cathol_n ad_fw-la calc_n gest_n purgat_fw-la cecil_n &_o felic_n a_o great_a frenzy_n incredible_a arrogancy_n a_o thing_n not_o fit_a to_o be_v speak_v or_o hear_v a_o mad_a impudence_n of_o fury_n a_o recourse_n to_o a_o secular_a judgement_n from_o a_o heavenly_a and_o a_o contempt_n of_o christ_n authority_n and_o yet_o out_o of_o a_o great_a desire_n he_o have_v to_o gain_v they_o yield_v to_o their_o importunity_n or_o as_o s._n augustine_n say_v 166._o say_v ep._n 166._o give_v way_n to_o their_o perverseness_n and_o hope_v that_o what_o he_o do_v will_v be_v avow_a by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a he_o grant_v they_o another_o council_n of_o 200._o bishop_n at_o arles_n which_o have_v due_o examine_v their_o cause_n confirm_v the_o pope_n sentence_n &_o therefore_o give_v they_o no_o more_o satisfaction_n than_o the_o roman_a council_n have_v do_v wherefore_o from_o this_o council_n they_o have_v recourse_n again_o to_o the_o emperor_n beseech_v he_o to_o take_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o cause_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n which_o he_o do_v but_o yet_o a_o sanctis_fw-la antistitibus_fw-la postea_fw-la veniam_fw-la petiturus_fw-la 162._o petiturus_fw-la s._n aug._n ep_v 162._o with_o intention_n to_o ask_v pardon_n afterward_o of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n for_o meddle_v in_o a_o cause_n that_o belong_v not_o to_o his_o court_n but_o to_o they_o but_o what_o do_v constantine_n judgement_n appease_v the_o fury_n of_o those_o obstinate_a heretic_n no_o the_o emperor_n say_v s._n augustine_n ibid._n augustine_n ibid._n be_v choose_v judge_n the_o emperor_n judgement_n be_v despise_v but_o no_o wonder_n for_o what_o else_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o such_o rebellious_a spirit_n but_o that_o as_o they_o have_v refuse_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o church_n so_o also_o they_o shall_v contemn_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o emperor_n who_o be_v there_o then_o that_o see_v not_o how_o far_o this_o history_n be_v from_o prove_v that_o constantine_n acknowledge_v in_o himself_o any_o authority_n to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n since_o he_o dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o charge_v the_o donatist_n with_o never_o hear_v of_o impudence_n arrogancy_n impiety_n fury_n pernersnesse_n porensy_n and_o contempt_n of_o christ_n authority_n in_o fly_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n to_o his_o secular_a tribunal_n and_o that_o if_o in_o this_o cause_n he_o do_v any_o way_n assume_v to_o himself_o the_o person_n of_o a_o judge_n it_o be_v with_o protestation_n to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o holy_a bishop_n and_o in_o hope_n it_o will_v be_v avow_a by_o they_o for_o as_o much_o as_o what_o he_o do_v be_v out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o quiet_a the_o donatist_n and_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o peace_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o how_o far_o this_o example_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v from_o help_v your_o cause_n or_o hurt_v we_o s._n augustine_n will_v yet_o better_o inform_v you_o 166._o you_o cont._n lic_a petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 92._o &_o ep._n 166._o for_o as_o when_o they_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n they_o flee_v to_o constantine_n so_o when_o they_o be_v repulse_v and_o condemn_v by_o he_o they_o despise_v his_o judgement_n and_o appeal_v to_o julian_n a_o apostata_fw-la from_o christian_a religion_n and_o a_o profess_a enemy_n to_o christ_n beseech_v he_o to_o restore_v unto_o they_o the_o church_n which_o catholic_a prince_n have_v take_v from_o they_o and_o to_o that_o end_n honour_v he_o with_o this_o elegy_n 166._o elegy_n ep._n 166._o that_o in_o he_o alone_o all_o justice_n remain_v which_o give_v s._n augustine_n cause_n to_o say_v unto_o they_o ibid._n they_o ibid._n if_o it_o be_v in_o your_o power_n you_o will_v not_o now_o call_v against_o we_o constantine_n a_o christian_a emperor_n because_o he_o defend_v the_o truth_n but_o you_o will_v rather_o raise_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la from_o hell_n how_o far_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n may_v touch_v you_o for_o produce_v this_o example_n of_o the_o sacrilegious_a donatist_n as_o a_o precedent_n of_o your_o doctrine_n and_o constantine_n as_o a_o pattern_n for_o secular_a prince_n to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a judgment_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n censure_n for_o if_o as_o you_o pretend_v this_o example_n of_o the_o donatist_n fly_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n to_o constantine_n be_v of_o force_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n will_v suffer_v a_o high_a appeal_n why_o shall_v it_o not_o also_o be_v of_o force_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o constantine_n will_v suffer_v a_o high_a appeal_n to_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la for_o the_o example_n of_o these_o donatist_n be_v a_o precedent_n for_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o for_o the_o other_o a_o second_o history_n which_o you_o object_n 16●_n object_n pag._n 16●_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n will_v suffer_v a_o high_a appeal_n be_v that_o in_o the_o case_n of_o athanasius_n constantine_n charge_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o tyre_n to_o appear_v before_o he_o without_o delay_n and_o to_o show_v how_o sincere_o and_o true_o the_o have_v give_v their_o judgement_n the_o case_n be_v this_o diverse_a heretical_a bishop_n of_o the_o east_n arian_n meletian_o and_o colluthians_n assemble_v themselves_o at_o tyre_n to_o accuse_v athanasius_n of_o many_o crime_n which_o themselves_o have_v malicious_o forge_v and_o suborn_v false_a witness_n to_o testify_v against_o he_o that_o so_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v just_a occasion_n to_o abstain_v from_o his_o communion_n &_o condemn_v he_o constantine_n be_v inform_v thereof_o at_o the_o entreaty_n of_o athanasius_n call_v they_o to_o he_o to_o yield_v account_n of_o their_o proceed_n ergo_fw-la say_v you_o the_o pope_n judgement_n will_v suffer_v a_o high_a appeal_n a_o false_a consequence_n for_o s._n athanasius_n flee_v from_o the_o say_a council_n of_o tyrus_n unto_o constantine_n not_o as_o to_o his_o competent_a judge_n but_o as_o to_o the_o protector_n of_o innocency_n and_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v maintain_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o bishopric_n honour_n &_o life_n against_o which_o his_o arian_n adversary_n be_v with_o such_o violent_a and_o insuperable_a malignity_n bend_v as_o he_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o avoid_v so_o great_a mischief_n tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o catholic_a religion_n but_o by_o implore_v the_o aid_n of_o the_o supreme_a secular_a power_n that_o in_o this_o case_n clergyman_n and_o bishop_n may_v have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o arm_n of_o temporal_a prince_n s._n paul_n caesarem_fw-la paul_n act._n 28._o coactus_fw-la sum_fw-la appellare_fw-la caesarem_fw-la show_v by_o his_o example_n as_o constantium_fw-la as_o athanas_n apolog._n 2._o ad_fw-la constantium_fw-la s._n athanasius_n and_o 204._o and_o august_n epist_n 48.50_o &_o 204._o s._n augustine_n and_o out_o of_o they_o suarez_n 5._o suarez_n suarez_n defensio_fw-la fidei_fw-la lib._n 4._o c._n 10._o n._n 5._o observe_v last_o you_o object_n 162._o object_n pag._n 161._o fin_n 162._o that_o when_o the_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a require_v constantine_n proceed_v to_o denounce_v punishment_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n against_o whosoever_o that_o shall_v honour_v the_o memory_n of_o those_o bishop_n theognis_n and_o eusebius_n these_o two_o bishop_n be_v arian_n and_o great_a fyrebrand_n of_o that_o blasphemous_a sect_n which_o have_v be_v condemn_v &_o a_o athematize_v by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a and_o moreover_o have_v commit_v many_o other_o most_o enormous_a crime_n some_o of_o which_o constantine_n have_v mention_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o people_n of_o nicomedia_n add_v 20._o add_v theod._n l._n 1._o hist._n c._n 20._o if_o any_o one_o shall_v be_v so_o temerarious_a and_o audacious_a as_o to_o go_v about_o to_o praise_n and_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o those_o plague_n of_o the_o church_n theognis_n and_o eusebius_n he_o shall_v present_o be_v punish_v by_o i_o for_o his_o folly_n these_o word_n of_o constantine_n show_v that_o he_o do_v not_o threaten_v punishment_n to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a person_n but_o to_o the_o people_n of_o nicomedia_n if_o they_o shall_v audacious_o presume_v to_o honour_v those_o heretic_n who_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v which_o be_v not_o to_o assume_v any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o
himself_o but_o to_o do_v his_o duty_n and_o what_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n require_v at_o the_o hand_n of_o every_o good_a christian_a prince_n which_o be_v to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o must_v advertise_v you_o of_o some_o ignorant_a mistake_n you_o say_v 161._o say_v pag._n 161._o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o constantine_n commit_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a to_o melchiade_n pope_n but_o in_o three_o other_o place_n 328._o place_n pag._n 221._o 327._o 328._o contradict_v yourself_o and_o s._n augustine_n you_o say_v he_o commit_v it_o to_o pope_n julius_n show_v therein_o your_o ignorance_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o if_o as_o s._n augustine_n true_o say_v it_o be_v commit_v to_o melchiade_n how_o can_v it_o be_v commit_v to_o julius_n who_o be_v not_o choose_v pope_n till_o above_o 20._o year_n after_o melchiade_n his_o death_n and_o between_o who_o and_o julius_n be_v other_o two_o pope_n sylvester_n &_o mark_n with_o like_a ignorance_n you_o say_v 161._o say_v pag._n 161._o the_o emperor_n charge_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o tyre_n to_o appear_v before_o he_o for_o tyre_n have_v not_o many_o bishop_n nor_o be_v it_o a_o province_n but_o a_o city_n in_o the_o province_n of_o phenicia_n in_o which_o the_o arian_n hold_v their_o wicked_a council_n against_o s._n athanasius_n sect_n ii_o doctor_n mortons_n second_o example_n of_o theodosius_n examine_v that_o theodosius_n acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o prove_v by_o his_o intere_a himself_o in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n say_v you_o 161._o you_o pag._n 161._o we_o read_v that_o he_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n dioscorus_n authority_n and_o superiority_n of_o place_n to_o moderate_a cause_n in_o a_o council_n this_o you_o speak_v of_o that_o most_o godly_a and_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n the_o elder_a for_o here_o and_o in_o your_o index_n of_o the_o ten_o chapter_n prefix_v before_o this_o your_o grand_a imposture_n you_o name_v he_o immediate_o after_o constantine_n and_o before_o theodosius_n the_o young_a and_o both_o in_o the_o same_o index_n and_o page_n 167._o you_v express_o declare_v that_o the_o emperor_n which_o you_o object_n against_o we_o immediate_o after_o constantine_n be_v theodosius_n the_o elder_a and_o final_o because_o unless_o by_o this_o theodosius_n you_o mean_v the_o elder_a you_o object_n nothing_o at_o all_o out_o of_o he_o against_o we_o which_o yet_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v you_o profess_v to_o do_v in_o this_o chapter_n wherefore_o i_o must_v make_v bold_a to_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o this_o your_o instance_n you_o discover_v extreme_a ignorance_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o theodosius_n the_o elder_a die_v the_o year_n 394._o which_o be_v 50._o year_n before_o dioscorus_n be_v make_v bishop_n how_o then_o can_v he_o give_v to_o dioscorus_n authority_n and_o superiority_n of_o place_n to_o moderate_a cause_n in_o a_o council_n if_o you_o have_v not_o be_v ignorant_a and_o willing_a to_o lay_v hold_n of_o any_o thing_n true_a or_o false_a to_o help_v yourself_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o a_o bad_a cause_n you_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o theodosius_n not_o the_o elder_a but_o the_o young_a savour_v the_o archheretic_n eutyches_n and_o seduce_v by_o his_o high_a chamberlain_n chrysaphius_n a_o eutychian_a heretic_n give_v authority_n to_o dioscorus_n a_o heretical_a bishop_n of_o alexandria_n &_o of_o the_o same_o sect_n with_o eutyches_n to_o moderate_a cause_n not_o in_o a_o true_a council_n but_o in_o a_o sacrilegion_n conventicle_n at_o ephesus_n in_o which_o eutyches_n be_v absolve_v his_o heresy_n approve_v the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o have_v condemn_v he_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o constantinople_n under_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n not_o permit_v to_o speak_v all_o such_o as_o be_v know_v to_o be_v zealous_a maintainer_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n against_o eutyches_n depose_v other_o send_v into_o banishment_n the_o pope_n legate_n thrust_v out_o of_o the_o council_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n flavianus_n by_o the_o faction_n of_o dioscorus_n barbarous_o misuse_v beat_v and_o wound_v to_o death_n the_o bishop_n that_o fign_v compel_v thereto_o by_o famine_n and_o force_v of_o arm_n the_o emperor_n soldier_n rule_v all_o by_o violence_n and_o tyranny_n and_o many_o other_o outrageous_a villainy_n commit_v in_o so_o much_o that_o this_o conventicle_n have_v never_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o lawful_a council_n but_o by_o all_o writer_n be_v call_v synodus_fw-la piratica_fw-la and_o latrocinium_fw-la ephesinum_fw-la the_o piratical_a synod_n and_o the_o ephesine_n thievery_n or_o as_o socrates_n term_v it_o 10._o it_o l._n 1._o c._n 9_o &_o 10._o vesanum_fw-la ephesi_n conciliabulum_fw-la the_o frantic_a conventicle_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o act_n thereof_o be_v soon_o after_o condemn_v by_o leo_n pope_n 24._o pope_n ep._n 24._o and_o repeal_v by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n 1._o chalcedon_n act._n 1._o i_o appeal_v now_o to_o the_o reader_n whether_o you_o have_v not_o show_v great_a ignorance_n and_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n wrong_v that_o most_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n the_o elder_a in_o make_v he_o patron_n of_o the_o eutychian_a heresy_n and_o charge_v he_o false_o with_o assemble_v that_o sacrilegious_a synagogue_n of_o ephesus_n and_o most_o of_o all_o in_o produce_v he_o for_o your_o protestant_a doctrine_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o which_o he_o so_o firm_o adhere_v that_o he_o hold_v she_o to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o centre_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o therefore_o intend_v to_o establish_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o free_a the_o whole_a empire_n from_o the_o pernicious_a doctrine_n of_o diverse_a heretic_n which_o live_v in_o those_o day_n he_o make_v that_o famous_a law_n which_o justinian_n have_v insert_v into_o his_o code_n and_o march_v in_o the_o front_n thereof_o 1._o thereof_o cod._n tit_n 1._o l._n 1._o our_o will_n be_v that_o all_o the_o people_n rule_v by_o the_o empire_n of_o our_o clemency_n shall_v live_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n which_o the_o divine_a apostle_n peter_n deliver_v to_o the_o roman_n as_o the_o religion_n insinuate_v by_o he_o witness_v until_o this_o present_a day_n and_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o high_a priest_n damasus_n follow_v and_o peter_n of_o alexandria_n a_o man_n of_o apostolical_a sanctity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v peter_z who_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o seat_n of_o alexandria_n by_o lucius_n the_o arian_n intruder_n appeal_v to_o rome_n 36._o rome_n socrat._v l._n 4._o c._n 36._o and_o have_v be_v new_o restore_v &_o confirm_v by_o damasus_n in_o the_o patriarchall_a seat_n of_o that_o city_n and_o the_o same_o or_o not_o unlike_a to_o this_o law_n of_o theodosius_n be_v that_o which_o gratian_n that_o govern_v the_o empire_n together_o with_o theodosius_n make_v to_o reduce_v all_o heretic_n to_o the_o true_a church_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n he_o make_v a_o law_n say_v theodoret_n 2._o theodoret_n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 2._o by_o which_o he_o command_v the_o holy_a church_n to_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o that_o agree_v in_o communion_n with_o damasus_n which_o commandment_n as_o he_o further_o express_v init_fw-la express_v ibid._n c._n 2._o init_fw-la be_v without_o contradiction_n execute_v throughout_o all_o nation_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o if_o doctor_n morton_n have_v live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o theodosius_n &_o gratian_n they_o will_v have_v take_v from_o he_o the_o church_n of_o dutham_n &_o deliver_v it_o to_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n sect_n iii_o doctor_n mortons_n three_o instance_n of_o theodosius_n the_o young_a and_o honorius_n examine_v you_o go_v on_o object_v 162._o object_v pag._n 162._o out_o of_o the_o gloss_n in_o c._n renovantes_fw-la theodosius_n the_o young_a and_o honorius_n both_o emperor_n say_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v the_o same_o right_n over_o those_o in_o subjection_n to_o he_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v ever_o he_o why_o do_v you_o falsify_v the_o chapter_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o trullan_n synod_n under_o justinian_n the_o young_a who_o live_v long_o after_o theodosius_n &_o honorius_n again_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gloss_n be_v imperator_fw-la dicit_fw-la the_o emperor_n say_v but_o mention_n of_o honorius_n or_o theodosius_n there_o be_v none_o that_o be_v your_o false_a comment_n the_o gloss_n cit_v the_o emperor_n in_o authentica_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la titulis_fw-la which_o be_v not_o write_v by_o honorius_n nor_o by_o theodosius_n but_o by_o justinian_n the_o elder_a and_o how_o far_o he_o be_v from_o equal_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o pope_n you_o may_v understand_v not_o only_o by_o other_o his_o law_n sequent_a law_n see_v sect._n sequent_a but_o even_o by_o this_o very_a
pag._n 367._o and_o eudaemon_n joan._n parallel_n torti_n ac_fw-la tortoris_fw-la c._n 5_o pag._n 224._o &_o seqq_fw-la this_o they_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n out_o of_o s._n augustine_n out_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o with_o solid_a and_o forcible_a reason_n 3._o reason_n see_v valent_n in_o 212_o d._n 5._o q._n 8._o punct_a 3._o but_o you_o tell_v we_o 24._o we_o serm._n pag._n 24._o of_o a_o principle_n of_o we_o that_o subject_n must_v obey_v while_o they_o can_v resist_v in_o proof_n of_o this_o you_o allege_v 35._o allege_v serm._n p._n 35._o alane_n in_o his_o moderate_a defence_n but_o you_o neither_o mention_v any_o word_n of_o he_o nor_o any_o chapter_n in_o particular_a and_o with_o good_a reason_n for_o alane_n have_v no_o such_o doctrine_n you_o produce_v 24._o produce_v serm._n pag._n 24._o creswell_n in_o his_o philopater_n and_o bellarmine_n the_o one_o you_o slander_v false_o the_o other_o you_o understand_v not_o or_o else_o which_o i_o fear_v witting_o misconstrue_v his_o meaning_n for_o creswell_n eudaemon_n joannes_n 58._o joannes_n apol._n pro_fw-la henr._n garn._n c._n 3._o pag._n 58._o have_v make_v answer_n long_o since_o to_o sir_n edward_n cook_n who_o cite_v creswell_n in_o his_o philopater_n as_o you_o do_v borrow_v your_o objection_n from_o he_o the_o answer_n be_v and_o of_o certain_a knowledge_n i_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a that_o you_o temerarious_o vent_v the_o fiction_n of_o your_o own_o brain_n for_o truth_n philopater_n be_v not_o creswell_n he_o never_o write_v any_o such_o book_n and_o whoev_a philopater_n be_v the_o book_n be_v of_o a_o competent_a bulk_n and_o you_o cite_v out_o of_o it_o some_o nine_o or_o ten_o word_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o frame_n of_o their_o contexture_n divide_v into_o two_o different_a sentence_n and_o this_o also_o at_o random_n for_o the_o book_n be_v divide_v into_o chapter_n and_o the_o chapter_n into_o number_n you_o neither_o specify_v chapter_n nor_o number_n which_o if_o you_o have_v do_v philopater_n may_v have_v speak_v for_o himself_o and_o show_v the_o wrong_n you_o do_v he_o and_o no_o less_o be_v the_o injury_n you_o offer_v to_o bellarmine_n 24._o bellarmine_n serm._n pag._n 24._o his_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v nero_n dioclesian_n or_o other_o heathenish_a tyrant_n that_o persecute_v christ_n but_o do_v prudent_o abstain_v from_o the_o use_n thereof_o for_o want_v force_n the_o use_n of_o her_o authority_n can_v no_o way_n avail_n christian_n but_o give_v occasion_n of_o raise_v great_a storm_n of_o persecution_n against_o they_o which_o opinion_n of_o he_o can_v quit_v you_o from_o accuse_v &_o slander_v he_o wrongful_o for_o do_v he_o ever_o say_v or_o insinuate_v that_o those_o emperor_n be_v not_o lawful_a prince_n or_o that_o they_o be_v so_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o christian_n or_o any_o other_o their_o subject_n to_o rebel_v against_o they_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n you_o impute_v to_o he_o and_o this_o you_o shall_v have_v prove_v to_o be_v his_o but_o can_v &_o therefore_o change_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n to_o father_n on_o he_o the_o seditious_a doctrine_n of_o your_o lutheran_n and_o caluinian_a brethren_n and_o to_o suggest_v to_o his_o majesty_n that_o the_o scot_n have_v learn_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o rebellion_n from_o we_o which_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n 38._o confession_n serm_n pag._n 38._o they_o profess_v to_o have_v learn_v from_o luther_n caluin_n and_o beza_n last_o as_o i_o have_v admonish_v you_o of_o slander_v vrbane_n pope_n and_o other_o catholic_n so_o must_v i_o advertise_v you_o of_o the_o like_a wrong_n do_v to_o garnet_n the_o jesuit_n who_o say_v you_o ibid._n you_o serm._n ibid._n i_o know_v at_o his_o arraignment_n to_o confess_v that_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o powder-treason_n out_o of_o confession_n belike_o you_o know_v it_o by_o hear-say_n from_o some_o one_o that_o be_v deaf_a or_o if_o he_o be_v not_o deaf_a make_v no_o scruple_n of_o lie_v for_o no_o man_n that_o be_v present_a and_o have_v his_o hear_n will_v be_v so_o shameless_a as_o to_o say_v he_o hear_v he_o confess_v that_o which_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o never_o speak_v but_o direct_o the_o contrary_a and_o take_v it_o upon_o his_o death_n which_o may_v yet_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o attestation_n of_o so_o many_o and_o such_o witness_n that_o if_o it_o be_v as_o free_v for_o garnets_n friend_n and_o kinsfolk_n to_o sue_v you_o with_o a_o action_n of_o slander_n as_o it_o be_v free_a for_o you_o with_o controlment_n to_o write_v your_o pleasure_n against_o they_o that_o have_v not_o freedom_n to_o answer_n for_o themselves_o your_o accusation_n of_o garnet_n will_v prove_v aswell_o to_o your_o cost_n as_o to_o your_o shame_n you_o confess_v ibid._n confess_v ibid._n that_o at_o his_o death_n he_o public_o exhort_v the_o romish_a professor_n to_o avoid_v all_o act_n of_o treason_n and_o it_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a that_o in_o his_o life_n time_n he_o never_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n &_o that_o when_o he_o hear_v of_o that_o damnable_a plot_n in_o confession_n he_o enjoin_v he_o of_o who_o he_o hear_v it_o to_o use_v his_o uttermost_a endeavour_v to_o dissuade_v and_o hinder_v it_o yea_o moreover_o as_o eudaemon_n joannes_n 9_o joannes_n apol._n pro_fw-la henr._n garn._n c._n 1._o pag._n 8._o 9_o report_v from_o relation_n of_o they_o that_o have_v best_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o truth_n the_o very_a hear_n of_o it_o in_o confession_n be_v so_o great_a a_o torment_n to_o his_o mind_n that_o he_o can_v not_o sleep_v nor_o take_v any_o rest_n for_o many_o day_n and_o that_o with_o prayer_n and_o sacrifice_n he_o do_v beg_v of_o the_o divine_a goodness_n most_o earnest_o to_o provide_v some_o remedy_n for_o so_o execrable_a a_o design_n which_o he_o can_v not_o disclose_v to_o the_o magistrate_n without_o violate_v the_o seule_fw-fr of_o sacramental_a secrecy_n which_o christ_n himself_o have_v command_v to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o garnet_n cardinal_n alane_n bellarmine_n creswell_n and_o other_o catholic_n who_o you_o defame_v with_o false_a accusation_n be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o they_o of_o who_o our_o saviour_n say_v 5.11.12_o say_v math._n 5.11.12_o bless_a be_v you_o when_o they_o shall_v revile_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o and_o speak_v all_o that_o naught_o be_v against_o you_o untrue_o for_o my_o sake_n be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v for_o your_o reward_n be_v very_o great_a in_o heaven_n chap._n xxxiv_o doctor_n mortons_n doctrine_n condemn_v the_o saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o god_n have_v now_o go_v through_o your_o sermon_n preach_v to_o his_o majesty_n out_o of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n i_o return_v to_o the_o continuance_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o same_o imposture_n you_o have_v before_o object_v some_o father_n and_o have_v part_v with_o they_o long_o since_o now_o after_o many_o chapter_n you_o come_v to_o scrape_v acquaintance_n with_o some_o of_o they_o again_o but_o their_o doctrine_n be_v to_o ancient_a to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o your_o novelty_n sect_n i._o s._n polycarpe_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n you_o begin_v your_o twelth_n chapter_n oppose_v 183._o oppose_v pag._n 183._o that_o s._n polycarpe_n go_v to_o rome_n in_o time_n of_o anicetus_n pope_n to_o consult_v with_o he_o about_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n will_v not_o yield_v to_o forsake_v the_o asian_a custom_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o anicetus_n and_o polycarpe_n do_v still_o communicate_v with_o each_o other_o true_o but_o if_o the_o asian_a custom_n have_v be_v then_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o mantayner_n thereof_o anathematise_v as_o heretic_n as_o afterward_o they_o be_v by_o victor_n pope_n and_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a anicetus_n will_v not_o have_v hold_v polycarpe_n in_o his_o communion_n unless_o he_o have_v forsake_v the_o asian_a custom_n and_o conform_v himself_o to_o the_o roman_a practise_v by_o all_o other_o church_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o will_v polycarpe_n have_v stand_v out_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o asian_a custom_n have_v he_o not_o see_v that_o anicetus_n though_o he_o mislike_v it_o yet_o do_v not_o condemn_v it_o but_o permit_v he_o still_o the_o practice_n thereof_o until_o the_o church_n define_v otherwise_o which_o anicetus_n do_v be_v desirous_a to_o give_v he_o all_o content_n for_o the_o great_a reverence_n due_a unto_o he_o as_o well_o for_o his_o year_n as_o also_o because_o he_o have_v be_v disciple_n to_o s._n john_n evangelist_n and_o be_v then_o actual_o bishop_n of_o smyrna_n a_o principal_a church_n of_o asia_n but_o how_o great_a reverence_n polycarpe_n bare_a to_o anicetus_n and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n appear_v in_o this_o that_o be_v
with_o all_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o we_o be_v and_o will_v ever_o be_v obedient_a to_o you_o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o felix_n pope_n for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o predecessor_n and_o we_o have_v always_o receive_v assistance_n from_o your_o holy_a apostolic_a see_v and_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o care_n you_o have_v of_o we_o we_o follow_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n fly_v for_o succour_n unto_o it_o as_o unto_o a_o mother_n from_o whence_o our_o predecessor_n have_v receive_v their_o order_n doctrine_n and_o relief_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n which_o by_o no_o mean_n we_o dare_v presume_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v you_o the_o canon_n command_v that_o in_o mayor_n cause_v nothing_o be_v determine_v without_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n for_o therefore_o christ_n have_v place_v you_o and_o your_o predecessor_n in_o the_o height_n of_o eminency_n and_o command_v you_o to_o have_v care_n of_o all_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o bishop_n if_o therefore_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o his_o judge_n if_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o power_n to_o restore_v the_o great_a patriarch_n to_o their_o see_z if_o to_o profess_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o that_o all_o mayor_n cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o his_o tribunal_n if_o to_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o final_o if_o to_o profess_v actual_a and_o promise_v perpetual_a obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v argument_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o belief_n of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o of_o his_o obligation_n to_o obey_v she_o and_o to_o live_v in_o union_n with_o she_o and_o in_o subjection_n to_o she_o then_o be_v you_o guilty_a of_o imposture_n in_o omit_v these_o and_o other_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n extant_a in_o his_o second_o apology_n and_o object_v in_o lieu_n of_o they_o a_o false_a tale_n of_o liberius_n excommunicate_v athanasius_n devise_v by_o yourself_o to_o seduce_v your_o reader_n and_o hereby_o you_o be_v convince_v of_o another_o untruth_n in_o say_v 191._o say_v pag._n 191._o that_o athanasius_n seek_v not_o any_o union_n with_o felix_n who_o be_v pope_n instead_o of_o liberius_n for_o these_o his_o testimony_n show_v that_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o you_o say_v 190._o say_v pag._n 190._o and_o that_o impertinent_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v s._n athanasius_n his_o no_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o when_o we_o esteem_v felix_n to_o be_v the_o legitimat_fw-la pope_n and_o liberius_n a_o schismatic_n remove_v from_o the_o society_n of_o catholic_n and_o from_o his_o papal_a function_n we_o fight_v notable_o against_o our_o own_o principle_n which_o be_v 1._o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o and_o 2._o that_o no_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v unless_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n which_o if_o he_o be_v he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n without_o any_o judgement_n at_o all_o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o we_o nor_o do_v it_o happen_v otherwise_o in_o the_o case_n of_o liberius_n for_o when_o he_o return_v to_o the_o papacy_n it_o be_v by_o acceptation_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n of_o rome_n equivalent_a to_o a_o new_a election_n and_o this_o not_o until_o after_o felix_n his_o death_n for_o as_o sozomen_n prudent_o observe_v 14._o observe_v l._n 4._o c._n 14._o god_n by_o his_o special_a providence_n call_v felix_n out_o of_o this_o life_n soon_o after_o liberius_n return_v to_o rome_n lest_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n shall_v be_v defame_v with_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n two_o pope_n govern_v at_o once_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n be_v not_o we_o but_o a_o ignorance_n of_o you_o for_o a_o pope_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a &_o consequent_o fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n not_o only_o by_o public_a profession_n of_o heresy_n but_o also_o by_o make_v public_a profession_n of_o schism_n and_o outward_a communion_n with_o heretic_n though_o in_o his_o hart_n he_o detest_v their_o doctrine_n for_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a faith_n inward_o but_o also_o to_o make_v profession_n thereof_o outward_o abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n wherefore_o the_o syllogism_n which_o here_o you_o make_v 191._o make_v pag._n 190._o sin_n 191._o conclude_v nothing_o the_o minor_a proposition_n that_o liberius_n notwithstanding_o his_o consent_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n be_v a_o catholics_n bishop_n be_v absolute_o false_a and_o whereas_o you_o profess_v to_o set_v down_o this_o minor_a as_o the_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n you_o falsify_v he_o for_o albeit_o he_o say_v that_o if_o a_o pope_n become_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n he_o cease_v eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la to_o be_v pope_n yet_o in_o the_o same_o place_n sententia_fw-la place_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 30._o §._o eadem_fw-la est_fw-la sententia_fw-la he_o sufficient_o express_v that_o not_o only_a heretic_n but_o also_o schismatics_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o loose_v all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n over_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n sect_n iu_o s._n basills_n belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v and_o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n answer_v it_o seem_v to_o we_o say_v s._n basil_n 52._o basil_n ep._n 52._o write_v to_o athanasius_n to_o be_v to_o good_a purpose_n that_o we_o write_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n that_o he_o consider_v the_o affair_n of_o these_o part_n and_o give_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o send_v from_o thence_o person_n by_o a_o common_a and_o synodical_a decree_n he_o may_v use_v his_o authority_n and_o choose_v man_n capable_a of_o the_o labour_n of_o such_o a_o journey_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o have_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n they_o may_v disannul_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v do_v by_o force_n bellarmine_n 15._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 15._o bring_v this_o testimony_n you_o except_v against_o he_o as_o pervert_v s._n basil_n by_o false_a translation_n which_o you_o prove_v out_o of_o baronius_n for_o where_o bellarmine_n translate_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la videas_fw-la that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n see_v or_o view_v our_o affair_n baronius_n render_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la consideret_fw-la that_o he_o consider_v our_o affair_n but_o who_o see_v not_o this_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a cavil_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o take_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n into_o his_o consideration_n as_o baronius_n read_v or_o to_o see_v and_o look_v into_o they_o as_o bellarmine_n translate_v whether_o you_o follow_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o s_n basil_n think_v it_o a_o fit_a way_n to_o redress_v the_o calamity_n of_o those_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v take_v they_o into_o his_o consideration_n or_o have_v a_o vigilant_a eye_n over_o they_o the_o require_v whereof_o from_o he_o live_v in_o a_o country_n so_o remote_a and_o in_o another_o patriarkship_n show_v that_o s._n basil_n believe_v some_o charge_n of_o visit_v those_o church_n to_o belong_v to_o he_o superior_a to_o that_o which_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n have_v nor_o do_v your_o answer_n satisfy_v say_v 195._o say_v pag._n 195._o he_o require_v not_o from_o the_o pope_n any_o help_n or_o visitation_n of_o dominion_n or_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o of_o confortation_n of_o love_v and_o brotherly_a consideration_n hope_v that_o the_o persuasion_n of_o stranger_n especial_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n grace_n will_v be_v more_o prevalent_a with_o the_o eastern_a people_n than_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n for_o this_o evasion_n be_v convince_v of_o falsehood_n by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n basil_n it_o be_v fit_a say_v he_o 52._o he_o ep._n 52._o that_o we_o beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o show_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o business_n send_v man_n that_o may_v bring_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n and_o disannul_v the_o thing_n do_v by_o force_n and_o immediate_o after_o he_o profess_v himself_o ready_a to_o be_v correct_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n if_o
in_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v err_v and_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o pope_n authority_n of_o a_o judge_n we_o be_v ready_a say_v he_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o you_o provide_v that_o they_o which_o slander_v we_o may_v appear_v face_n to_o face_n with_o we_o before_o your_o reverence_n do_v all_o this_o import_n nothing_o but_o a_o request_n of_o love_a and_o brotherly_a visitation_n or_o consideration_n can_v s._n basil_n in_o more_o effectual_a word_n express_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n then_o by_o request_v he_o to_o send_v his_o legate_n with_o authority_n to_o annul_v the_o act_n of_o a_o general_a council_n as_o that_o of_o arimin_n be_v no_o they_o be_v testimony_n so_o forcible_a that_o with_o no_o gloss_n can_v be_v elude_v but_o you_o reply_v 194._o reply_v pag._n 194._o against_o bellarmine_n that_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v s._n basil_n to_o desire_v the_o pope_n decree_n whereas_o baronius_n read_v counsel_n or_o advice_n here_o again_o you_o cavil_v for_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o by_o interpretation_n of_o budaeus_fw-la signify_v voluntatem_fw-la sententiam_fw-la iudicium_fw-la why_o then_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o bellarmine_n to_o say_v s._n basil_n desire_v the_o pope_n decree_n for_o to_o desire_v he_o to_o give_v his_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n with_o power_n to_o sentence_n to_o judge_v to_o decree_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o the_o east_n which_o power_n he_o also_o declare_v in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n for_o do_v not_o both_o he_o 74._o he_o ep._n 73._o al._n 74._o and_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n clede_n nazianzen_n epist_n ad_fw-la clede_n testify_v that_o eustathius_n b._n of_o sebaste_n by_o virtue_n of_o liberius_n his_o letter_n present_v to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o command_n intimate_v in_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a eastern_a church_n and_o restore_v to_o his_o see_n eustathius_n say_v s._n basil_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n because_o he_o be_v depose_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o melitine_n advise_v himself_o to_o find_v mean_n to_o be_v restore_v travail_v to_o you_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v propose_v to_o he_o by_o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n liberius_n and_o what_o submission_n be_v make_v we_o know_v not_o only_o he_o bring_v a_o letter_n that_o restore_v he_o which_o be_v show_v to_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n he_o be_v reestablish_v in_o his_o bishop_n seat_n again_o do_v not_o s._n basil_n 77._o basil_n ep._n 77._o compare_v the_o church_n to_o a_o body_n whereof_o the_o western_a part_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o eastern_a the_o foot_n and_o do_v he_o not_o from_o this_o very_a metaphor_n denominate_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n fellow-member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n 1603._o body_n ep._n 70._o ad_fw-la episc_n transmar_n edit_fw-la paris_n a_o 1603._o again_o do_v he_o not_o beseech_v pope_n damasus_n ibid._n damasus_n ibid._n to_o send_v legate_n with_o order_n to_o examine_v the_o accusation_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n and_o to_o appoint_v a_o place_n for_o he_o to_o meet_v they_o that_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v judge_v by_o they_o and_o he_o punish_v if_o he_o be_v find_v guilty_a and_o do_v he_o not_o require_v the_o same_o pope_n 74._o pope_n ep._n 74._o to_o give_v order_n by_o his_o letter_n to_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n that_o they_o admit_v into_o their_o communion_n all_o such_o as_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a truth_n shall_v disclaim_v from_o their_o error_n and_o to_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v persist_v obstinate_o in_o their_o novelty_n and_o last_o declare_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o determine_v all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n he_o say_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o your_o piety_n be_v worthy_a of_o that_o most_o excellent_a voice_n which_o proclaim_v you_o bless_v to_o wit_n that_o you_o may_v discern_v between_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_a and_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o pure_a and_o without_o any_o diminution_n may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o if_o s._n basil_n believe_v aright_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o restore_v bishop_n depose_v to_o their_o see_v to_o send_v legate_n with_o power_n to_o dissolve_v the_o act_n of_o general_a counsel_n to_o condemn_v heretical_a doctrine_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n to_o punish_v delinquent_n and_o be_v this_o nothing_o else_o but_o charitable_a advice_n but_o persuasion_n but_o counsel_n be_v it_o not_o to_o use_v authority_n to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n but_o you_o object_n 1●6_n object_n pag._n 1●6_n that_o s._n basil_n in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n in_o the_o east_n have_v write_v often_o to_o pope_n damasus_n and_o other_o western_a bishop_n and_o send_v to_o rome_n four_o several_a legation_n require_v help_n and_o comfort_n from_o they_o in_o their_o affliction_n can_v not_o receive_v any_o answer_n in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n basil_n tax_v they_o with_o supercilious_a pride_n &_o haughtiness_n and_o that_o they_o do_v neither_o know_v the_o truth_n nor_o will_v learn_v it_o this_o you_o object_n out_o of_o baronius_n from_o who_o you_o may_v have_v take_v the_o solution_n which_o be_v that_o s._n basil_n be_v oppress_v and_o as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o wave_n of_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n not_o only_o for_o the_o common_a calamity_n of_o the_o oriental_a church_n but_o also_o for_o his_o own_o particular_a for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o eustathius_n b._n of_o sebaste_n and_o other_o who_o hide_v the_o venom_n of_o their_o heresy_n feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n he_o be_v accuse_v and_o defame_v of_o heresy_n in_o the_o east_n and_o bring_v into_o suspicion_n even_o with_o his_o own_o monk_n and_o his_o dear_o belove_v neocaesarians_n and_o this_o make_v he_o likewise_o not_o to_o be_v well_o think_v of_o in_o the_o west_n in_o so_o much_o that_o damasus_n pope_n for_o a_o time_n desist_v from_o that_o familiar_a communication_n by_o letter_n which_o basil_n expect_v and_o differ_v the_o send_n of_o legate_n to_o examine_v his_o cause_n and_o clear_v the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v require_v &_o great_o desire_v yet_o as_o you_o 198._o you_o pag._n 198._o confess_v be_v he_o than_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o charity_n nor_o be_v damasus_n so_o whole_o want_v to_o his_o comfort_n but_o that_o even_o then_o when_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n upon_o his_o letter_n he_o call_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n in_o which_o he_o condemn_v apollinarius_n vitalis_n and_o timotheus_n 25._o timotheus_n baron_fw-fr anno_o 373._o sozo_n l._n 6._o c._n 25._o call_v vitalis_n to_o rome_n and_o excommunicate_v timotheus_n as_o he_o testify_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n 11._o bishop_n apud_fw-la theodo_fw-la l._n 5._o histor_n c._n 11._o express_v withal_o the_o profession_n which_o they_o have_v make_v to_o he_o of_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o if_o s._n basil_n in_o these_o affliction_n and_o grieve_v at_o the_o intermission_n of_o such_o communicatory_a letter_n from_o the_o western_a bishop_n and_o chief_o from_o damasus_n as_o he_o expect_v let_v fall_v from_o his_o mouth_n some_o hasty_a word_n as_o other_o holy_a man_n who_o baronius_n 373._o baronius_n an._n 373._o name_v in_o like_a occasion_n have_v do_v be_v that_o by_o you_o to_o be_v reproach_v unto_o he_o or_o be_v it_o any_o argument_n of_o his_o denial_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v so_o clear_o so_o constant_o so_o effectual_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o his_o work_n yea_o albeit_o s._n basil_n give_v a_o little_a way_n to_o the_o motion_n of_o nature_n yet_o by_o virtue_n he_o soon_o recall_v himself_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v say_v as_o his_o letter_n full_a of_o humility_n write_v soon_o after_o to_o damasus_n &_o the_o other_o western_a bishop_n express_v you_o say_v addi●_n say_v ep._n 1._o in_o addi●_n he_o be_v praise_v by_o all_o mortal_a man_n that_o you_o remain_v pure_a and_o without_o blemish_n in_o faith_n keep_v entire_a the_o doctrine_n teach_v you_o by_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o we_o among_o who_o there_o be_v some_o
that_o presume_v to_o bring_v in_o novelty_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v fall_v into_o heresy_n wherefore_o o_o belove_a brethren_n you_o as_o physician_n cure_v our_o soul_n etc._n etc._n so_o s._n basil_n free_v the_o western_a church_n &_o especial_o the_o roman_n to_o which_o he_o chief_o write_v both_o from_o pride_n and_o error_n wherefore_o when_o you_o object_n 197._o object_n pag._n 197._o that_o s._n basil_n express_v his_o grief_n say_v the_o western_a bishop_n neither_o know_v the_o truth_n themselves_o nor_o will_v learn_v it_o he_o tax_v they_o not_o of_o error_n or_o ignorance_n in_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o you_o false_o interpret_v but_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o asian_a affair_n they_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o understand_v they_o from_o he_o and_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o may_v right_o inform_v they_o but_o give_v to_o much_o credit_n to_o the_o lie_a report_n of_o heretic_n who_o slander_v he_o false_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v sect_n v._o whether_o s._n hilary_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n to_o persuade_v that_o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o poictou_n so_o you_o write_v he_o he_o be_v not_o bishop_n of_o poictou_n which_o be_v a_o province_n of_o france_n but_o of_o poitiers_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o that_o province_n hold_v it_o not_o necessary_a to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o say_v 199._o say_v pag._n 199._o s._n hilary_n no_o soon_o understand_v that_o pope_n liberius_n as_o your_o cardinal_n have_v confess_v have_v subscribe_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n heretic_n but_o he_o make_v bold_a to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o his_o communion_n and_o fellowship_n say_v i_o anathematise_v thou_o o_o liberius_n and_o thy_o fellow_n and_o you_o add_v that_o hilary_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o do_v this_o 200._o this_o pag._n 199._o sin_n 200._o because_o it_o be_v always_o lawful_a for_o any_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o excommunicate_v any_o heretical_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n here_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o ordinary_a principle_n of_o divinity_n for_o to_o excommunicate_v a_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o person_n be_v not_o only_o to_o abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n else_o every_o man_n yea_o every_o woman_n may_v excommunicate_v her_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o person_n whatsoever_o for_o she_o may_v abandon_v his_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n denounce_v anathema_n unto_o he_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o anathema_n the_o one_o judiciary_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n pronounce_v by_o a_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n against_o they_o over_o who_o he_o have_v lawful_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n whereby_o he_o abandon_v their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n and_o command_v all_o other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a and_o withal_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n this_o anathema_n be_v a_o excommunication_n and_o this_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o howbeit_o every_o protestant_a minister_n may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n abandon_v the_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n of_o any_o other_o man_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n denounce_v anathema_n unto_o he_o yet_o never_o any_o be_v so_o absurd_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v he_o can_v excommunicate_v any_o one_o over_o who_o he_o have_v not_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o when_o you_o excommunicate_a catholic_n or_o other_o you_o do_v not_o only_o deny_v they_o your_o own_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n but_o by_o virtue_n thereof_o forbid_v all_o other_o to_o have_v commerce_n and_o communication_n with_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a pronounce_v anathema_n against_o the_o arian_n in_o these_o word_n 5._o word_n socrat._v l._n ●_o hist._n c._n 5._o they_o that_o say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n anathematize_v they_o that_o be_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o command_v all_o man_n to_o renounce_v their_o fellowship_n and_o communion_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n hilary_n neither_o do_v nor_o be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v he_o can_v denounce_v anathema_n to_o liberius_n be_v not_o his_o superior_a and_o therefore_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v excommunicate_v he_o another_o kind_n of_o anathema_n there_o be_v which_o be_v not_o judiciary_n but_o only_o executory_a whereby_o every_o particular_a person_n ecclesiastic_a or_o laic_a man_n or_o woman_n protest_v and_o declare_v to_o hold_v for_o anathema_n such_o as_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n s._n hilary_n pronounce_v anathema_n to_o liberius_n for_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o banishment_n of_o athanasius_n and_o thereby_o enter_v into_o communion_n with_o the_o arian_n the_o judiciary_n anathema_n that_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n have_v be_v pronounce_v before_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o sardica_n against_o the_o arian_n in_o general_a into_o who_o communion_n liberius_n be_v enter_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o pronounce_v a_o new_a sentence_n of_o anathema_n against_o he_o but_o of_o apply_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o counsel_n unto_o he_o by_o abiur_v and_o abhor_v he_o as_o one_o fall_v into_o the_o sentence_n which_o the_o counsel_n have_v pronounce_v against_o the_o arian_n and_o therefore_o s._n hilary_n add_v to_o his_o anathema_n these_o word_n for_o my_o part_n say_v for_o my_o part_n anathema_n to_o thou_o o_o liberius_n to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o with_o a_o judiciary_n but_o with_o a_o abiuratory_n anathema_n in_o this_o sense_n john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n hormisd_v constantinople_n ep._n ●ad_a hormisd_v anathematise_v timothy_n the_o parricide_n surname_v aelurus_n who_o felix_n pope_n excommunicate_v and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n justine_n the_o emperor_n 4._o emperor_n euagr._fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 4._o denounce_v anathema_n to_o all_o heretic_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n who_o yet_o be_v a_o secular_a prince_n have_v not_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v any_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o you_o confound_v these_o two_o anathema_n and_o because_o s._n hilary_n pronounce_v a_o abiuratory_n anathema_n against_o liberius_n infer_v ignorant_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o if_o for_o argument_n sake_n i_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o anathema_n pronounce_v by_o s._n hilary_n be_v indiciary_n and_o that_o he_o excommunicate_v liberius_n it_o will_v make_v nothing_o for_o you_o against_o the_o pope_n for_o when_o hilary_n pronounce_v this_o anathema_n liberius_n be_v not_o pope_n but_o fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n and_o felix_n substitute_v pope_n in_o his_o place_n this_o i_o have_v say_v not_o question_v but_o suppose_v liberius_n his_o subscription_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n which_o yet_o some_o have_v deny_v 9_o deny_v see_v bellar._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pontif_n c_o 9_o but_o be_v it_o true_a it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o be_v therefore_o a_o formal_a heretic_n in_o his_o judgement_n believe_v the_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o only_o interpretatiuè_fw-fr for_o so_o much_o as_o sign_v with_o they_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o out_o ward_o communicate_v with_o they_o he_o give_v to_o some_o that_o judge_v of_o he_o by_o his_o outward_a action_n occasion_n to_o think_v he_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n only_o it_o be_v in_o which_o some_o catholic_a writer_n condemn_v he_o of_o heresy_n and_o in_o no_o other_o for_o the_o very_a arian_n themselves_o never_o pretend_v that_o athanasius_n agree_v in_o faith_n with_o they_o but_o condemn_v he_o only_o for_o other_o crime_n which_o they_o have_v malicious_o compose_v against_o he_o wherein_o though_o liberius_n for_o a_o time_n yield_v outward_o to_o they_o yet_o he_o be_v ever_o most_o constant_a in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o you_o may_v see_v testify_v by_o antiquity_n 11._o antiquity_n apud_fw-la jodoc_n cocci_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 11._o last_o i_o must_v advertise_v you_o that_o whereas_o you_o often_o repeat_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v no_o saluarion_n here_o 199._o here_o pag._n 199._o and_o afterward_o 345._o afterward_o pag._n 345._o again_o you_o say_v part_n of_o that_o our_o article_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a this_o you_o prove_v by_o impose_v on_o bellarmine_n your_o own_o fiction_n his_o opinion_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o the_o contrary_n be_v erroneous_a and_o near_o to_o heresy_n but_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o affirm_v this_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v anarticle_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o contrary_a to_o be_v heretical_a that_o he_o direct_o say_v 2._o say_v l._n 4._o
de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 2._o it_o be_v defend_v by_o gerson_n and_o almain_n doctor_n of_o paris_n as_o also_o by_o castro_n and_o adrianus_n sextus_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v tolerate_v by_o the_o church_n do_v not_o you_o then_o overlash_n say_v that_o bellarmine_n opinion_n be_v part_n of_o our_o belief_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n when_o he_o so_o express_o teach_v the_o contrary_a sect_n vi_o s._n hieroms_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n 77._o judgement_n ep._n 77._o when_o to_o assure_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o regard_v not_o the_o communion_n of_o paulinus_n in_o who_o patriarship_n of_o antioch_n he_o live_v but_o profess_v himself_o to_o stick_v fast_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o damasus_n pope_n that_o be_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o which_o say_v he_o i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v you_o answer_v 203._o answer_v pag._n 203._o that_o by_o chair_n he_o mean_v not_o the_o see_v and_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n but_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n then_o preach_v at_o rome_n even_o as_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n that_o be_v say_v s._n hierome_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n this_o satisfi_v not_o both_o because_o when_o some_o father_n expound_v faith_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o christ_n build_v his_o church_n they_o exclude_v not_o but_o include_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n and_o chief_o because_o s._n hierome_n follow_v not_o that_o exposition_n but_o ever_o understand_v the_o person_n of_o peter_n &_o his_o see_n to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o christ_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n christ_n say_v he_o math._n he_o ad_fw-la cap._n 16._o math._n give_v to_o simon_n that_o believe_v in_o he_o the_o name_n of_o a_o rock_n and_o according_a to_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o rock_n it_o be_v right_o say_v to_o he_o i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n on_o thou_o and_o a_o little_a after_o christ_n do_v not_o then_o actual_o build_v his_o church_n on_o peter_n but_o promise_v to_o build_v it_o on_o he_o afterward_o say_v i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n on_o thou_o and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n wherefore_o as_o he_o promise_v not_o to_o deliver_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o faith_n but_o to_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n so_o on_o he_o and_o they_o he_o promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n and_o the_o same_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o contexture_n of_o this_o his_o epistle_n to_o damasus_n for_o do_v he_o not_o say_v i_o be_o join_v in_o communion_n to_o your_o blessedness_n that_o be_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v whosoever_o shall_v eat_v the_o lamb_n out_o of_o this_o house_n he_o be_v profane_a if_o any_o one_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o ark_n of_o nöe_n he_o shall_v perish_v in_o the_o deluge_n these_o word_n convince_v that_o s._n hierome_n by_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n understand_v not_o faith_n but_o the_o church_n build_v on_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n for_o the_o house_n out_o of_o which_o no_o man_n can_v eat_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v offer_v sacrifice_n be_v not_o faith_n to_o which_o the_o denomination_n of_o a_o house_n can_v agree_v but_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o peter_n which_o s._n ambrose_n 3.15_o ambrose_n in_o 1._o timoth_n 3.15_o call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n whereof_o damasus_n be_v then_o governor_n and_o the_o same_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o s._n hierome_n himself_o for_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o ark_n of_o nöe_n but_o the_o church_n of_o peter_n out_o of_o which_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o come_n of_o the_o deluge_n shall_v perish_v and_o i_o can_v but_o admonish_v you_o of_o a_o fraudulent_a reticence_n for_o be_v you_o make_v so_o great_a account_n of_o erasmus_n &_o produce_v he_o for_o your_o only_a author_n 204._o author_n pag._n 204._o that_o s._n hierome_n by_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n understand_v faith_n why_o do_v you_o conceal_v that_o upon_o this_o very_a passage_n erasmus_n show_v s._n hierome_n to_o condemn_v your_o doctrine_n of_o falsehood_n here_o say_v he_o hieron_n he_o anotat_fw-la in_o ep._n 77._o s._n hieron_n hierome_n seem_v to_o be_v whole_o of_o opinion_n that_o all_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o roman_a see_n or_o sure_o not_o divide_v from_o she_o which_o peculiar_o glori_v in_o this_o apostle_n that_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o which_o be_v so_o orthodoxal_a that_o of_o all_o orthodoxal_a church_n she_o be_v the_o chief_a in_o dignity_n this_o you_o know_v to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o s._n hierome_n but_o shift_v it_o of_o repeat_v often_o and_o with_o great_a variety_n of_o word_n that_o if_o s._n hierome_n point_v out_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o ark_n of_o noah_n yet_o thereby_o he_o conceive_v not_o a_o perpetuity_n thereof_o that_o virgin_n jerusalem_n may_v become_v a_o harlot_n and_o that_o she_o have_v no_o privilege_n never_o to_o apostatate_v but_o this_o evasion_n i_o have_v already_o disprove_v 2._o disprove_v see_v above_o chap._n 12._o sect_n 1._o &_o 2._o by_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n that_o their_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n build_v upon_o they_o to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o s._n hierome_n acknowledge_v damasus_n to_o be_v his_o pastor_n 77._o pastor_n ep_v 77._o and_o therefore_o pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o when_o he_o write_v that_o epistle_n he_o be_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o palestine_n which_o be_v in_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n paulinus_n that_o be_v then_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n be_v actual_o his_o pastor_n and_o he_o actual_o a_o sheep_n of_o paulinus_n &_o therefore_o can_v not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v actual_o a_o sheep_n of_o damasus_n if_o the_o sheep_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n be_v not_o actual_o subject_a to_o the_o pastoral_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n yes_o say_v you_o 202._o you_o pag._n 202._o he_o may_v be_v hold_v a_o sheep_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o baptism_n but_o this_o i_o deny_v for_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v in_o one_o diocese_n leave_v that_o and_o become_v a_o inhabitant_n of_o another_o eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la become_v a_o sheep_n of_o that_o diocese_n which_o he_o inhabit_v and_o leave_v to_o be_v a_o sheep_n of_o the_o former_a in_o which_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o as_o the_o bishop_n under_o who_o he_o be_v baptize_v can_v have_v no_o authority_n over_o he_o after_o he_o have_v leave_v his_o diocese_n unless_o he_o be_v superior_a in_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o the_o bishop_n who_o diocese_n he_o now_o inhabit_v so_o neither_o can_v damasus_n be_v actual_o pastor_n to_o s._n hierome_n have_v leave_v the_o diocese_n and_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n and_o inhabit_v that_o of_o antioch_n if_o damasus_n have_v not_o have_v pastoral_a authority_n over_o the_o sheep_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n now_o to_o your_o objection_n the_o first_o be_v 205._o be_v pag._n 205._o s._n hierome_n twit_v and_o taunt_v damasus_n say_v but_o away_o envy_v and_o let_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o roman_a height_n depart_v which_o he_o do_v not_o say_v so_o much_o in_o regard_n of_o damasus_n his_o own_o pride_n otherwise_o a_o excellent_a godly_a pope_n as_o for_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o roman_a top_n or_o height_n namely_o the_o ambition_n of_o his_o state_n this_o be_v impertinent_a and_o untrue_a impertinent_a for_o be_v it_o true_a as_o it_o be_v not_o that_o s._n hierome_n reprehend_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n pride_n be_v not_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o a_o fault_n in_o manner_n and_o therefore_o no_o warrant_n for_o you_o to_o disavow_v the_o faith_n or_o forsake_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v also_o untrue_a for_o s._n hierome_n do_v not_o only_o not_o twit_v damasus_n but_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o his_o blessedness_n and_o much_o less_o do_v he_o taunt_v his_o see_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o indeed_o who_o but_o you_o will_v have_v charge_v s._n hierome_n with_o twit_v and_o taunt_a damasus_n a_o excellent_a godly_a pope_n who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o pastor_n and_o spiritual_a father_n &_o that_o not_o for_o any_o fault_n of_o his_o own_o but_o for_o fault_n feign_v by_o you_o against_o
other_o pope_n those_o word_n away_o with_o envy_n let_v the_o ambition_n of_o the_o roman_a height_n depart_v be_v not_o speak_v by_o s._n hierome_n to_o tax_v the_o person_n of_o damasus_n or_o his_o seat_n of_o pride_n but_o to_o signify_v that_o albeit_o his_o seat_n be_v place_v in_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o imperial_a city_n &_o head_n of_o the_o world_n glory_v in_o she_o own_o greatness_n yet_o he_o be_v and_o ought_v to_o be_v free_a from_o pride_n as_o be_v successor_n to_o a_o fisher_n man_n and_o a_o disciple_n of_o the_o cross_n in_o regard_v whereof_o he_o deem_v it_o no_o presumption_n in_o himself_o to_o write_v unto_o he_o that_o by_o his_o authority_n he_o may_v know_v who_o communion_n to_o embrace_v and_o who_o to_o avoid_v your_o second_o objection_n 206._o objection_n pag._n 206._o be_v a_o repetition_n of_o what_o you_o have_v former_o say_v of_o liberius_n his_o fall_n from_o the_o catholic_a faith_n into_o heresy_n by_o subscribe_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n &_o communicate_v with_o the_o arian_n you_o have_v be_v answer_v that_o liberius_n assent_v to_o his_o condemnation_n not_o for_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o for_o crime_n forge_v against_o he_o by_o the_o arian_n in_o so_o much_o that_o athanasius_n himself_o even_o in_o that_o excuse_v he_o say_v solit_fw-la say_v ep._n ad_fw-la solit_fw-la he_o be_v compel_v thereto_o by_o force_n of_o torment_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o terror_n and_o fear_n extort_a from_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o bethink_v his_o sentence_n but_o that_o which_o he_o pronounce_v free_o when_o no_o violence_n be_v offer_v unto_o he_o three_o you_o object_n s._n hierome_n in_o despite_n and_o indignation_n call_v rome_n babylon_n and_o land_n of_o captivity_n and_o term_v it_o a_o purple_a whore_n and_o strange_a land_n wherein_o he_o can_v not_o sing_v the_o lord_n song_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n yea_o he_o bespot_n the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o that_o city_n with_o the_o note_n of_o ignorance_n and_o at_o last_o after_o the_o death_n of_o damasus_n he_o quit_v rome_n as_o a_o land_n of_o bondage_n that_o he_o may_v enjoy_v his_o liberty_n in_o judaea_n among_o the_o christian_a jew_n can_v this_o be_v say_v of_o a_o city_n privilege_v with_o a_o perpetual_a residence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o motherhood_n over_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n this_o be_v your_o question_n and_o my_o answer_n be_v that_o s._n hierome_n when_o he_o call_v rome_n babylon_n a_o land_n of_o captivity_n and_o a_o purple_a whore_n give_v those_o name_n to_o rome_n not_o as_o to_o the_o seat_n of_o religion_n but_o of_o the_o empire_n not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o imperial_a court_n and_o senate_n not_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a but_o to_o the_o politic_a state_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o troop_n of_o courtier_n solicitor_n &_o negotiant_n &_o final_o not_o so_o much_o in_o regard_n of_o secular_a christian_n as_o of_o monk_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o distraction_n that_o the_o noise_n confusion_n and_o tumult_n of_o man_n and_o affair_n in_o so_o great_a a_o city_n bring_v to_o monastical_a silence_n &_o recollection_n for_o so_o it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o marcelia_n 16._o marcelia_n ep._n 16._o in_o which_o though_o invite_v she_o to_o leave_v rome_n and_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n he_o call_v rome_n babylon_n yet_o he_o present_o add_v it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o that_o city_n be_v the_o holy_a church_n there_o be_v the_o trophy_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n there_o be_v the_o true_a confession_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n celebrate_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o christian_a name_n every_o day_n exalt_v by_o the_o depression_n of_o paganism_n tread_v under_o foot_n but_o the_o ambition_n the_o power_n and_o greatness_n of_o that_o city_n to_o visit_v and_o to_o be_v visit_v to_o salute_v &_o to_o be_v salute_v to_o flatter_v and_o detract_v to_o hear_v and_o speak_v nay_o to_o see_v though_o unwilling_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o man_n be_v thing_n far_o from_o the_o purpose_n and_o quiet_a of_o those_o that_o will_v follow_v a_o monastical_a life_n this_o show_v that_o when_o s._n hierome_n call_v rome_n babylon_n &_o purple_a whore_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o rome_n and_o when_o he_o call_v it_o a_o land_n of_o captivity_n he_o speak_v it_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o noise_n confusion_n and_o tumult_n not_o suit_v with_o the_o retirement_n of_o monk_n which_o inconvenience_n he_o note_v also_o in_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o otherwise_o say_v monachis_fw-la say_v ep._n 13._o ad_fw-la pauli_n de_fw-fr instit_fw-la monachis_fw-la he_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o place_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o resurrection_n be_v a_o dwell_n much_o to_o be_v desire_v by_o monk_n the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o objection_n that_o s._n hierome_n bespote_v the_o whole_a clergy_n of_o that_o city_n with_o the_o note_n of_o ignorance_n be_v your_o false_a comment_n he_o complain_v only_o of_o a_o few_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o rome_n who_o be_v jealous_a of_o his_o faour_n with_o pope_n damasus_n and_o enui_v the_o great_a reverence_n which_o the_o devout_a lady_n of_o rome_n bear_v to_o his_o person_n damasus_n be_v dead_a take_v boldness_n to_o raise_v slander_n against_o he_o accuse_v he_o that_o he_o have_v translate_v didymus_n a_o heretical_a author_n that_o he_o have_v converse_v too_o familiar_o with_o the_o great_a lady_n of_o rome_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o quit_v their_o country_n child_n and_o friend_n to_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o shut_v themselves_o up_o as_o recluse_n in_o the_o monastery_n of_o palestine_n which_o complaint_n no_o way_n touch_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o the_o succession_n of_o s._n peter_n nor_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a nor_o make_v against_o the_o perpetual_a residence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o that_o church_n s._n hierome_n himself_o cry_v out_o 3._o out_o adverse_a ruffin_n l._n 3._o that_o her_o faith_n suffer_v no_o delusion_n and_o be_v fence_a by_o s._n paul_n authority_n can_v be_v alter_v your_o four_o objection_n 207._o objection_n pag._n 207._o out_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o euagrius_n of_o the_o deacon_n of_o rome_n sit_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v already_o answer_v 2_o answer_v above_o chap._n 15._o sect_n 2_o but_o you_o add_v to_o it_o 218._o it_o pag._n 208._o &_o 218._o as_o a_o five_o argument_n that_o every_o patriarch_n have_v a_o principality_n &_o height_n of_o a_o pastoral_a watchtower_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o greatness_n and_o dignity_n of_o his_o patriarkship_n above_o all_o metropolitan_o and_o bishop_n whatsoever_o and_o yet_o have_v they_o not_o over_o all_o bishop_n power_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_a principality_n of_o order_n if_o by_o principality_n of_o order_n you_o understand_v priority_n of_o place_n every_o patriarch_n have_v in_o that_o sense_n priority_n of_o order_n over_o all_o bishop_n that_o be_v not_o patriarch_n and_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o pope_n have_v priority_n of_o order_n over_o all_o bishop_n &_o patriarch_n but_o if_o by_o principality_n of_o order_n you_o understand_v the_o sacerdotal_a and_o episcopal_a dignity_n confer_v on_o they_o by_o their_o ordination_n &_o consecration_n your_o doctrine_n be_v untrue_a for_o the_o inequality_n of_o bishop_n consist_v not_o in_o any_o principality_n of_o sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a order_n which_o one_o bishop_n have_v over_o another_o but_o in_o the_o inequality_n of_o pastoral_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n a_o bishop_n in_o his_o order_n be_v equal_a to_o his_o metropolitan_a the_o metropolitan_a to_o his_o patriarch_n and_o the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o pope_n himself_o in_o this_o sense_n s._n hierome_n say_v euag_n say_v ep._n ad_fw-la euag_n whersoever_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o bishop_n either_o at_o rome_n or_o at_o eugubium_n at_o constantinople_n or_o at_o rhegium_n at_o alexandria_n or_o at_o tanais_n he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o merit_n and_o priesthood_n because_o all_o bishop_n if_o we_o consider_v only_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o order_n and_o priesthood_n be_v equal_a even_o he_o of_o eugubium_n a_o small_a city_n in_o italy_n to_o the_o pope_n erasmus_n his_o comment_n upon_o this_o passage_n of_o s._n hierome_n which_o you_o bring_v 208._o bring_v pag._n 208._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o inequality_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n be_v not_o measure_v by_o the_o amplitude_n of_o diocese_n i_o approve_v not_o and_o much_o less_o do_v i_o allow_v your_o inference_n out_o of_o his_o comment_n that_o according_a to_o the_o divine_a law_n the_o pope_n have_v not_o any_o great_a jurisdiction_n than_o whatsoever_o other_o inferior_a bishop_n for_o christ_n when_o he_o give_v to_o s._n peter_n
it_o in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o receive_v it_o to_o wit_n as_o sufficient_a to_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o confirmation_n hereof_o he_o number_v this_o book_n among_o other_o canonical_a scripture_n say_v principiam_fw-la say_v ep._n ad_fw-la principiam_fw-la ruth_n hester_n judith_n be_v of_o so_o great_a renown_n that_o they_o give_v name_n to_o sacred_a volume_n and_o in_o other_o his_o work_n he_o often_o cit_v it_o as_o divine_a scripture_n 14._o scripture_n ep._n 9_o ad_fw-la salu._n ep._n 22._o ad_fw-la bustoch_n &_o in_o isa_n c._n 14._o but_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o hold_v it_o apocryphal_a you_o object_n stapleton_n 303._o stapleton_n pag._n 303._o salmeron_n lindanus_n &_o acosta_n who_o you_o call_v our_o less_o precipitant_a author_n stapleton_n you_o falsify_v cite_v he_o l._n 2._o de_fw-la authorit_fw-la script_n cap._n 4._o for_o he_o have_v no_o book_n so_o entitle_v and_o much_o less_o any_o such_o word_n as_o you_o set_v down_o for_o he_o yea_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o say_v that_o s._n hierome_n deni_v this_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a that_o he_o say_v direct_o the_o contrary_a for_o discourse_v 6._o discourse_v de_fw-fr princip_n doct_v l._n 9_o c._n 6._o how_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v hold_v apocryphal_a or_o doubtful_a be_v afterward_o by_o her_o authority_n certain_o believe_v to_o be_v canonical_a he_o exemplifi_v in_o this_o of_o judith_n which_o say_v he_o s._n hierome_n move_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a hold_v to_o be_v canonical_a have_v former_o account_v it_o to_o be_v apocryphal_a this_o be_v stapletons_n doctrine_n be_v you_o not_o ashamed_a to_o produce_v he_o as_o a_o witness_n for_o the_o contrary_a and_o as_o little_a truth_n have_v your_o citation_n of_o salmeron_n for_o he_o allege_v s._n hieromes_n word_n express_o declare_v that_o the_o rule_n to_o distinguish_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o apocryphal_a be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n whereupon_o salmeron_n true_o say_v that_o if_o s._n hierome_n shall_v deny_v this_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a his_o authority_n alone_o can_v not_o be_v prevalent_a against_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o ancient_a father_n hold_v the_o contrary_a their_o testimony_n you_o may_v read_v in_o jodocus_n coccius_n lindanus_n and_o acosta_n i_o have_v not_o see_v but_o you_o that_o have_v deal_v so_o with_o stapleton_n and_o salmeron_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o deal_v no_o better_o with_o they_o sect_n vii_o s._n ambrose_n his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n s._n ambrose_n declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o report_v satyri_fw-la report_v orat._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la how_o his_o holy_a brother_n satyrus_n in_o his_o return_n out_o of_o africa_n be_v cast_v by_o ship_n wrack_n upon_o the_o isle_n of_o sardinia_n infect_v with_o schism_n he_o say_v satyrus_n not_o esteem_v any_o favour_n to_o be_v true_a but_o that_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n call_v unto_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n and_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o be_v say_v s._n ambrose_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o show_v that_o s._n ambrose_n and_o satyrus_n believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o all_o that_o be_v not_o in_o her_o communion_n to_o be_v schismatics_n you_o answer_v 213._o answer_v pag._n 213._o that_o the_o reason_n why_o satyrus_n will_v not_o communicate_v with_o any_o bishop_n that_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v because_o sardinia_n be_v then_o divide_v into_o diverse_a schism_n by_o heretical_a spirit_n no_o marvel_v therefore_o though_o satyrus_n ask_v of_o a_o bishop_n who_o faith_n he_o suspect_v whether_o he_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n do_v who_o faith_n be_v know_v to_o be_v true_o catholic_a even_o as_o if_o in_o time_n of_o rebellion_n the_o citizen_n of_o some_o one_o city_n for_o example_n york_n be_v more_o general_o know_v to_o profess_v loyalty_n to_o their_o sovereign_n a_o honest_a man_n come_v into_o the_o kingdom_n may_v ask_v the_o inhabitant_n whether_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o city_n of_o york_n thereby_o to_o know_v whether_o they_o be_v loyal_a subject_n and_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o therefore_o york_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o kingdom_n this_o your_o answer_n frame_v to_o puzzle_v a_o ignorant_a reader_n be_v easy_o reject_v satyrus_n do_v well_o know_v and_o it_o be_v general_o know_v both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n that_o at_o that_o time_n not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o that_o of_o milan_n of_o which_o ambrose_n his_o own_o brother_n be_v then_o actual_o bishop_n and_o famous_a over_o all_o the_o world_n be_v sound_a in_o faith_n and_o true_o catholic_a why_o then_o do_v not_o satyrus_n to_o inform_v himself_o whether_o that_o sardinian_a bishop_n be_v catholic_a ask_v he_o whether_o he_o agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o milan_n but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n nor_o any_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o head_n of_o catholic_a communion_n as_o s._n ambrose_n himself_o teach_v say_v imperat._n say_v l._n 1._o ep._n 4._o ad_fw-la imperat._n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o right_n of_o venerable_a communion_n do_v flow_v to_o all_o and_o why_o else_o do_v he_o say_v this_o but_o because_o he_o know_v that_o neither_o to_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n nor_o to_o any_o other_o but_o the_o roman_a christ_n have_v promise_v that_o her_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v 22.31_o fail_v luc._n 22.31_o and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o 16.18_o she_o math._n 16.18_o in_o regard_v whereof_o it_o be_v say_v that_o not_o to_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n but_o to_o her_o all_o church_n and_o all_o the_o faithful_a from_o all_o place_n must_v have_v recourse_n 3._o recourse_n iren._n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o and_o unless_o you_o can_v show_v that_o york_n have_v a_o especial_a privilege_n from_o god_n not_o to_o fail_v in_o her_o loyalty_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o to_o fail_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o profession_n thereof_o your_o example_n be_v impertinent_a york_n may_v fail_v in_o loyalty_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v a_o citizen_n of_o york_n and_o to_o be_v a_o good_a subject_n be_v not_o term_n convertible_a but_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v neither_o fail_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n nor_o in_o the_o profession_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o to_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o in_o themselves_o they_o be_v so_o be_v they_o hold_v by_o s._n ambrose_n by_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n and_o by_o the_o general_a accord_n of_o antiquity_n to_o be_v all_o one_o 3._o one_o see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 3._o 2._o s._n ambrose_n declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o he_o call_v damasus_n pope_n rector_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o church_n t●moth_n church_n in_o cap._n 3._o prioris_fw-la ad_fw-la t●moth_n you_o answer_v that_o we_o mistake_v the_o word_n respective_o speak_v to_o one_o person_n pope_n damasus_n and_o circumstantial_o for_o one_o time_n as_o if_o they_o be_v absolute_o so_o mean_v for_o the_o person_n of_o all_o pope_n at_o all_o time_n this_o answer_n be_v not_o respective_o but_o absolute_o insufficient_a for_o what_o dignity_n superiority_n or_o power_n of_o government_n have_v damasus_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o his_o person_n and_o for_o his_o time_n which_o every_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v in_o his_o person_n and_o for_o his_o time_n the_o power_n of_o ruler_n &_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o damasus_n have_v be_v by_o his_o popedom_n and_o as_o he_o by_o the_o right_n of_o his_o popedom_n be_v so_o all_o his_o predecessor_n and_o successor_n in_o that_o see_v have_v by_o the_o same_o title_n and_o right_a be_v rector_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n this_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o you_o pass_v light_o over_o this_o first_o answer_n fly_v to_o a_o second_o 212.213_o second_o pag._n 212.213_o that_o the_o title_n of_o rector_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n argue_v not_o damasus_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o athanasius_n basil_n &_o gregory_n nazianzen_n have_v receive_v title_n equivalent_a if_o not_o more_o excellent_a as_o of_o prop_n and_o buttress_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n eye_n of_o the_o world_n and_o other_o in_o which_o ascription_n say_v you_o there_o be_v not_o any_o acknowledgement_n of_o authority_n but_o a_o commendation_n of_o their_o care_n and_o diligence_n judgement_n and_o direction_n in_o behalf_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o
her_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n promise_v 16.18_o promise_v math._n 16.18_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 22.32_o and_o luc._n 22.32_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n see_v shall_v never_o fail_v wherefore_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o christ_n shall_v fail_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n so_o be_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v perpetual_a last_o you_o bring_v example_n of_o antiquity_n 125._o antiquity_n pag._n 125._o require_v union_n with_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o with_o the_o roman_a this_o argument_n you_o have_v prosecute_v before_o 100.101_o before_o pag_n 100.101_o out_o of_o your_o own_o observation_n of_o antiquity_n with_o many_o example_n some_o of_o which_o you_o repeat_v here_o add_v other_o unto_o they_o 229.230_o they_o pag._n 229.230_o the_o answer_n you_o have_v receive_v 9_o receive_v chap._n 15._o sect_n 9_o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o your_o argument_n be_v as_o if_o you_o persuade_v rebel_n to_o join_v not_o only_o with_o their_o sovereign_n but_o also_o with_o other_o his_o loyal_a subject_n i_o shall_v lay_v to_o your_o charge_n that_o you_o hold_v loyal_a subject_n to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o their_o sovereign_n it_o be_v true_a that_o while_o subject_n stand_v loyal_a to_o their_o prince_n he_o that_o join_v in_o loyalty_n with_o they_o be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n be_v not_o because_o he_o join_v with_o they_o but_o because_o both_o he_o and_o they_o join_v in_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o sovereign_n in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v true_a that_o whatsoever_o church_n be_v in_o communion_n with_o other_o orthodoxal_a church_n that_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v 162._o flourish_v aug._n ep_v 162._o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a church_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v catholic_a be_v not_o for_o their_o agreement_n among_o themselves_o but_o because_o they_o all_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n and_o original_a source_n of_o catholic_a communion_n for_o which_o cause_n s._n cyprian_a explicate_v what_o a_o catholic_a be_v make_v no_o mention_n of_o other_o apostolical_a church_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o his_o day_n but_o absolute_o define_v 8._o define_v l._n 4._o ep._n 2._o &_o 8._o that_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a be_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n orat._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la that_o to_o agree_v with_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o which_o say_v he_o imperat._n he_o l._n 1._o ep_v 4._o ad_fw-la imperat._n the_o right_n of_o venerable_a communion_n do_v flow_v unto_o all_o other_o church_n she_o be_v the_o source_n and_o they_o stream_n derive_v from_o she_o as_o from_o their_o native_a fountain_n 91._o fountain_n innocent_n apud_fw-la aug._n ap_fw-mi 91._o and_o s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o pronounce_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n not_o except_v the_o apostolical_a to_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n that_o be_v because_o her_o say_v can_v fail_v she_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v build_v damas_n build_v hieron_n ep._n 57_o add_v damas_n and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v donati_n prevail_v aug_n in_o psal_n count_v partem_fw-la donati_n as_o they_o have_v do_v against_o all_o the_o other_o apostolical_a church_n sect_n ix_o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o arles_n acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n the_o last_o witness_n you_o bring_v 225._o bring_v pag._n 225._o to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v s._n hilary_n b._n of_o arles_n in_o france_n who_o though_o he_o deserve_v great_a commendation_n for_o his_o labour_n against_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o defence_n of_o s._n augustine_n work_n yet_o for_o a_o time_n he_o stain_v his_o glory_n when_o exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o due_a moderation_n and_o insist_v in_o the_o step_n of_o patroclus_n a_o invasor_n of_o that_o see_v he_o presume_v to_o usurp_v to_o himself_o the_o right_n of_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o vienna_n and_o narbona_n ordain_v &_o depose_v bishop_n in_o their_o district_n a_o thing_n which_o no_o way_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o have_v be_v forbid_v by_o the_o council_n of_o turin_n 13._o turin_n c._n 13._o this_o be_v complain_v of_o against_o patroclus_n first_o to_o boniface_n and_o then_o to_o celestine_n pope_n &_o last_o to_o the_o bless_a pope_n leo_n against_o hilary_n that_o he_o have_v presume_v to_o depose_v celidonius_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n and_o he_o be_v still_o live_v to_o ordain_v proiectus_fw-la in_o his_o place_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o persist_v in_o this_o crime_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n that_o he_o go_v himself_o in_o person_n to_o rome_n in_o a_o most_o submissive_a and_o penitent_a manner_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o his_o offence_n he_o undertake_v say_v the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n 38._o life_n apud_fw-la cuiac_n obseruat_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 38._o a_o journey_n to_o rome_n on_o foot_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n without_o any_o horse_n or_o beast_n of_o carriage_n and_o present_v himself_o to_o pope_n leo_n reverent_o offer_v he_o obedience_n and_o humble_o entreat_v that_o he_o may_v ordain_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o accustom_a manner_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n he_o will_v not_o importune_v and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n he_o apply_v himself_o whole_o to_o appease_v the_o spirit_n of_o leo_n with_o a_o prostrate_a humility_n have_v plead_v his_o cause_n &_o be_v find_v guilty_a he_o depart_v from_o rome_n without_o stay_v his_o sentence_n and_o return_v present_o to_o arles_n never_o lay_v any_o further_a claim_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o former_o he_o have_v usurp_v as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n which_o leo_n write_v against_o he_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n 89._o vienna_n leo_fw-la ep._n 89._o wherein_o have_v full_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n himself_o he_o annul_v what_o have_v be_v injust_o presume_v by_o hilary_n and_o prescribe_v a_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o bishop_n and_o lest_o hilary_n shall_v raise_v tumult_n seek_v to_o support_v his_o cause_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n as_o former_o he_o have_v do_v leo_n require_v of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o that_o if_o any_o such_o attempt_n be_v make_v he_o will_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v suppress_v by_o aetius_n commander_n of_o the_o soldier_n in_o france_n this_o the_o emperor_n perform_v write_v to_o aetius_n that_o famous_a rescript_n which_o afterward_o theodosius_n the_o young_a insert_v in_o his_o new_a constitution_n intitul_a it_o the_o law_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n in_o which_o he_o relate_v the_o whole_a story_n of_o hilary_n and_o profess_v his_o great_a veneration_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o of_o the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o church_n &_o bishop_n and_o particular_o his_o right_n to_o convent_n they_o before_o he_o and_o prescribe_v law_n unto_o they_o ordain_v withal_o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v summon_v by_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o appear_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n shall_v enforce_v he_o to_o obey_v to_o the_o end_n say_v he_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o reverence_n be_v observe_v which_o our_o parent_n bare_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o be_v the_o history_n of_o hilary_n true_o relate_v out_o of_o the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o leo_n &_o out_o of_o the_o rescript_n of_o valentinian_n be_v it_o not_o then_o unshamefastnesse_n in_o you_o to_o say_v 225._o say_v pag._n 225._o that_o we_o without_o any_o proof_n will_v make_v you_o believe_v that_o at_o length_n hilary_n yield_v to_o the_o pope_n make_v no_o further_a apology_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o cause_n what_o be_v the_o relation_n make_v by_o the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n no_o proof_n be_v the_o epistle_n of_o that_o renown_a pope_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a no_o proof_n be_v the_o rescript_n of_o valentinian_n insert_v into_o the_o civil_a law_n by_o theodosius_n &_o never_o doubt_v of_o by_o any_o man_n of_o learning_n or_o judgement_n no_o proof_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o jacobus_n
for_o even_o bellarmine_n 18._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 18._o against_o who_o you_o write_v and_o in_o that_o very_a place_n which_o you_o cite_v for_o the_o contrary_a prove_v that_o all_o archbishop_n metropolitan_o and_o patriarch_n be_v institute_v or_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o by_o send_v they_o the_o pal_z he_o confer_v on_o they_o the_o plenitude_n of_o pastoral_n power_n which_o be_v a_o act_n of_o supreme_a authority_n &_o a_o convince_a argument_n of_o his_o universal_a jurisdiction_n and_o perform_v by_o he_o alone_o prove_v unanswerable_o that_o he_o institute_v bishop_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n alone_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o council_n and_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o particular_a example_n when_o agapetus_n pope_n come_v to_o constantinople_n he_o depose_v anthinus_n in_o the_o imperial_a city_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n and_o this_o alone_a without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o council_n yea_o and_o without_o any_o support_n at_o all_o 2._o all_o see_v this_o prove_v above_o chap._n 20._o sect_n 2._o and_o honorius_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o edwin_n king_n of_o england_n and_o honorius_n b._n of_o dover_n 994.995_o dover_n extant_a epistola_fw-la apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 994.995_o according_a to_o the_o petition_n make_v to_o he_o by_o honorius_n send_v to_o he_o and_o paulinus_n then_o pall_v 17._o pall_v beda_n hist_o anglor_n l._n 2._o c._n 17._o with_o apostolical_a authority_n that_o the_o superuiver_n of_o the_o two_o may_v ordain_v a_o archbishop_n in_o place_n of_o he_o that_o first_o depart_v this_o life_n and_o s._n gregory_n a_o little_a before_o that_o time_n send_v the_o pal_z to_o augustine_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n 29._o canterbury_n bed_n l._n 1._o hist._n angl_n c._n 29._o who_o convert_v we_o to_o christ_n give_v he_o thereby_o full_a authority_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n subject_a to_o he_o and_o to_o erect_v a_o new_a archbishopric_n at_o york_n and_o do_v not_o socrates_n report_n 35._o report_n l._n 7._o c._n 35._o that_o perigenes_n be_v ordain_v b._n of_o patras_n in_o achaia_n and_o the_o citizen_n not_o receive_v he_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n command_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o corinth_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o he_o govern_v in_o that_o church_n all_o the_o day_n of_o his_o life_n and_o when_o in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n anatolius_n have_v be_v ordain_v patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o maximus_n of_o antioch_n by_o what_o mean_n be_v their_o ordination_n legitimate_a and_o they_o confirm_v in_o those_o see_v but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o leo_n pope_n alone_a you_o wish_v we_o 296._o we_o pag._n 296._o in_o good_a faith_n to_o tell_v you_o whether_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o maximus_n of_o antioch_n be_v iuridical_o institute_v or_o confirm_v by_o pope_n leo_n because_o his_o own_o legate_n say_v so_o we_o tell_v you_o in_o good_a faith_n that_o you_o be_v quite_o mistake_v for_o not_o only_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n say_v so_o but_o also_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n 10._o chalcedon_n conc._n chale_n act._n 10._o my_o voice_n be_v say_v he_o that_o none_o of_o the_o thing_n ordain_v by_o the_o pretend_a council_n of_o ephesus_n remain_v firm_a but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o maximus_n b._n of_o great_a antioch_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n of_o rome_n leo_n receive_v he_o into_o his_o communion_n have_v judge_v that_o he_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o because_o you_o ask_v we_o in_o good_a faith_n we_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o you_o be_v no_o less_o mistake_v concern_v anatolius_n for_o when_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n request_v leo_n pope_n to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n leo_n answer_v 33._o answer_v ep._n 33._o beeseech_v the_o emperor_n not_o to_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n if_o he_o do_v not_o confirm_v he_o until_o he_o have_v perform_v the_o thing_n which_o he_o ordain_v and_o when_o anatolius_n have_v perform_v they_o pulcheria_n the_o empress_n give_v notice_n thereof_o to_o leo_n chalced._n leo_n ep._n ad_fw-la leo._n inter_fw-la ep._n pream_fw-la bull_n conc._n chalced._n he_o confirm_v he_o verify_v that_o by_o his_o assent_n anatolius_n obtain_v the_o bishopric_n of_o so_o great_a a_o city_n but_o what_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o proof_n extant_a but_o the_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o leo_n be_v not_o leo_n a_o most_o holy_a prelate_n worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o anatolius_n by_o his_o assent_n obtain_v the_o bishopric_n of_o so_o great_a a_o city_n do_v he_o not_o speak_v it_o to_o martian_a the_o emperor_n who_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o business_n but_o what_o need_v we_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o more_o particular_n do_v not_o s._n leo_n alone_o 84._o alone_o ep._n 84._o without_o any_o council_n make_v anastasius_n b._n of_o thessalonica_n his_o vicar_n in_o the_o east_n with_o full_a power_n to_o confirm_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n lawful_o make_v in_o the_o oriental_a church_n &_o to_o annul_v those_o that_o be_v make_v against_o order_n and_o do_v not_o s._n gregory_n 7._o gregory_n l._n 4._o ep_n 7._o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o illyria_n follow_v the_o desire_n of_o your_o demand_n we_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o our_o authority_n our_o brother_n john_n in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o first_o justinianca_n and_o this_o power_n it_o be_v which_o s._n bernard_n express_v say_v 131._o say_v ep._n 131._o the_o roman_a church_n ●ath_v power_n be_v ●rect_v new_a bishopric_n where_o hitherto_o no●●_n have_v be_v of_o those_o that_o be_v in_o be_v the_o way_n depress_v some_o &_o advance_v other_o as_o reaso_n be_v shall_v ●●ctare_fw-la unto_o she_o so_o that_o of_o bishop_n she_o have_v power_n to_o make_v archbishop_n and_o contrarity_n if_o be_v seem_v con●●●ient_a sect_n iv_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n without_o a_o council_n prove_v by_o example_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o depose_v bishop_n alone_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o council_n why_o do_v s._n cyptian_n steph●_n cyptian_n l._n 2._o ep_n 13._o ad_fw-la steph●_n write_v to_o stephen_n pope_n that_o by_o his_o letter_n address_v into_o the_o province_n &_o to_o the_o people_n of_o arles_n marcian_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n may_v be_v depose_v and_o another_o substitute_v in_o his_o place_n and_o s._n cyprian_n do_v so_o title_n doubt_v of_o stephen_n authority_n in_o this_o kind_n that_o he_o beseech_v he_o to_o let_v he_o understand_v who_o be_v institute_v in_o marcian_n place_n at_o arles_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v know_v to_o who_o to_o direct_v his_o brethren_n and_o letter_n wherefore_o you_o be_v much_o mistake_v when_o you_o say_v mark_fw-mi say_v pag._n 295._o text_n &_o mark_fw-mi stephen_n letter_n be_v but_o admonitory_a signify_v that_o marcianus_n ought_v to_o be_v depose_v if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v s._n cyprian_a believe_v danaeus_n your_o protestant_a brother_n who_o speak_v of_o this_o very_a example_n 317._o example_n respon_n ad_fw-la bellarm._n part_n 1._o pag._n 317._o find_v it_o so_o convince_a that_o he_o be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v ancient_o depose_v other_o bishop_n which_o say_v he_o they_o have_v no_o right_a to_o do_v but_o only_a tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n so_o he_o confute_v you_o and_o confess_v against_o you_o &_o himself_o that_o cyprian_n speak_v absolute_o of_o depose_v marcian_n not_o of_o admonish_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v depose_v this_o power_n be_v likewise_o acknowledge_v when_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n beseech_v damasus_n pope_n to_o depose_v timothy_n a_o heretical_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o damasus_n answer_v they_o say_v 10._o say_v apud_fw-la theodoret._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 10._o whereas_o your_o charity_n my_o dear_a child_n yield_v due_a reverence_n to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v it_o shall_v turn_v you_o to_o great_a honour_n etc._n etc._n but_o what_o need_n be_v there_o to_o require_v from_o i_o the_o deposition_n of_o timothy_n see_v he_o be_v long_o since_o depose_v be_v with_o his_o master_n apostimarius_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o again_o superiùs_fw-la again_o ibid._n paulo_fw-la superiùs_fw-la know_v yea_o brethren_n that_o we_o have_v long_o since_o depose_v that_o profane_a timothy_n disciple_n to_o apollinarius_n the_o heretic_n and_o theodoret_n report_v the_o same_o ibid._n same_o ibid._n damasus_n a_o man_n most_o worthy_a of_o all_o praise_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o understand_v
without_o their_o help_n that_o they_o make_v themselves_o executor_n of_o his_o authority_n &_o cause_v the_o letter_n of_o restitution_n which_o he_o he_o have_v grant_v to_o bishop_n injust_o depose_v to_o be_v obey_v sect_n vi_o doctor_n morton_n to_o cross_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o restore_a bishop_n depose_v take_v part_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o justify_v their_o impious_a proceed_n against_o s._n athanasius_n and_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n authority_n of_o restore_a bishop_n by_o his_o letter_n &_o authority_n alone_o we_o have_v for_o precedent_n the_o example_n of_o the_o great_a prelate_n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n of_o constantinople_n marcellus_n primate_n of_o ancyra_n in_o galatia_n asclepas_n b._n of_o gaza_n in_o palestine_n &_o lucius_n of_o adrianopolis_n in_o thracia_n who_o be_v injust_o depose_v by_o the_o arian_n appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o he_o by_o his_o authority_n restore_v they_o to_o their_o seat_n you_o not_o know_v how_o otherwise_o to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o these_o example_n have_v think_v best_a to_o take_v part_n with_o the_o arian_n against_o s._n athanasius_n to_o iustlify_v their_o opposition_n against_o pope_n julius_n &_o maintain_v their_o contempt_n of_o his_o authority_n to_o this_o end_n you_o say_v 290._o say_v pag._n 290._o among_o those_o eastern_a bishop_n which_o condemn_v athanasius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n there_o be_v many_o orthodox_n there_o be_v indeed_o in_o that_o council_n according_a to_o the_o relation_n of_o s._n athanasius_n synod_n athanasius_n de_fw-fr synod_n and_o socrates_n 5._o socrates_n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o 90._o bishop_n and_o according_a to_o s._n hilary_n syn._n hilary_n l._n de_fw-fr syn._n 97._o or_o if_o we_o believe_v sozomen_n 5._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o 96._o of_o this_o number_n there_o be_v only_o 36._o arian_n bishop_n these_o only_o be_v they_o that_o plot_v the_o deposition_n of_o athanasius_n these_o only_o make_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n and_o subscribe_v to_o they_o as_o julius_n in_o his_o epistle_n afterward_o write_v to_o they_o and_o out_o of_o it_o athanasius_n 2._o athanasius_n apolog._n 2._o testify_v these_o only_o be_v they_o that_o capitulate_v with_o julius_n pope_n to_o have_v communion_n with_o he_o not_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v communicate_v with_o those_o bishop_n who_o they_o have_v ordain_v as_o you_o ignorant_o affirm_v but_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o shall_v abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n which_o be_v depose_v by_o they_o have_v appeal_v to_o he_o for_o redress_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n recover_v their_o church_n again_o and_o because_o the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n be_v make_v by_o arian_n only_o they_o have_v ever_o be_v hold_v to_o be_v absolute_o heretical_a the_o arian_n say_v sozomen_n 20._o sozomen_n l._n 8._o c._n 20._o after_o they_o have_v with_o calumny_n circumvent_v athanasius_n and_o cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o church_n of_o alexandria_n fear_v lest_o thing_n may_v be_v bring_v about_o again_o make_v this_o canon_n endeavour_v to_o have_v their_o plot_n against_o he_o remain_v indiscuss_v the_o same_o be_v express_o affirm_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n 18._o chrysostome_n apud_fw-la niceph._n l._n 13._o n._n 18._o against_o who_o when_o his_o adversary_n that_o have_v depose_v he_o to_o justify_v their_o fact_n and_o blame_v he_o for_o return_v to_o his_o church_n allege_v a_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n of_o antioch_n he_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o the_o arian_n and_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o the_o holy_a pope_n innocentius_n 31._o innocentius_n apud_fw-la niceph._n l._n 13._o c._n 31._o so_o much_o commend_v by_o s._n augustine_n wherefore_o you_o can_v be_v excuse_v from_o a_o untruth_n in_o say_v that_o among_o those_o eastern_a bishop_n that_o condemn_v athanasius_n &_o reprove_v the_o pope_n for_o restore_v he_o there_o be_v many_o orthodox_n for_o none_o of_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n consent_v thereto_o but_o that_o the_o arian_n who_o have_v spit_v in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n and_o trample_v his_o divinity_n under_o their_o foot_n shall_v also_o contemn_v the_o pope_n his_o vicar_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n as_o neither_o it_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v therein_o bandy_v with_o they_o for_o no_o heretic_n ever_o fall_v from_o the_o church_n but_o he_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o his_o enemy_n at_o the_o same_o tyme._n 2._o to_o justify_v your_o disobey_v and_o resist_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o bishop_n thereof_o you_o say_v text_n say_v pag._n 295._o light_v o._n mark_fw-mi &_o text_n the_o oriental_n to_o wit_n the_o arian_n bishop_n resist_v and_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o set_v down_o in_o your_o margin_n these_o word_n as_o of_o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o illi_fw-la julium_n episcopum_fw-la romanum_fw-la quòd_fw-la cum_fw-la athanasio_fw-la &_o paulo_n communicaret_fw-la abdicarunt_fw-la sozomen_n there_o have_v no_o such_o word_n he_o say_v they_o object_v to_o inlius_fw-la as_o a_o crime_n that_o he_o communicate_v with_o athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v with_o he_o and_o accuse_v he_o that_o in_o annul_v their_o council_n and_o abrogate_a their_o sentence_n he_o have_v do_v against_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n so_o they_o call_v the_o heretical_a canon_n which_o themselves_o have_v make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n to_o justify_v their_o impious_a proceed_n and_o promise_v to_o communicate_v with_o he_o on_o condition_n he_o will_v confirm_v the_o deposition_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n which_o have_v flee_v to_o he_o for_o succour_n 3._o you_o say_v 307._o say_v pag._n 306._o fin_n 307._o the_o pope_n command_n to_o the_o oriental_n who_o have_v depose_v athanasius_n to_o receive_v he_o again_o be_v answer_v with_o contempt_n and_o they_o argue_v àparibus_fw-la with_o he_o what_o else_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o sacrilegious_a arian_n or_o what_o from_o you_o but_o to_o object_v against_o we_o their_o resistance_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o lawful_a to_o make_v good_a you_o not_o unlike_a to_o they_o but_o what_o do_v all_o their_o argue_v avail_v they_o for_o notwithstanding_o their_o contempt_n and_o all_o the_o resistance_n they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v by_o themselves_o and_o by_o the_o power_n of_o constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n their_o abettor_n and_o patron_n athanasius_n paul_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n who_o they_o have_v depose_v be_v by_o virtue_n of_o julius_n his_o letter_n restore_v to_o their_o church_n and_o their_o restitution_n embrace_v as_o just_a by_o universal_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o catholic_n in_o the_o world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o the_o arian_n meet_v at_o philippopolis_n require_v the_o orthodox_n bishop_n assemble_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n to_o abstain_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o athanasius_n and_o those_o other_o catholic_a bishop_n protest_v that_o otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o the_o godly_a bishop_n there_o assemble_v and_o represent_v all_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n of_o the_o world_n answer_v 10._o answer_v sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o that_o they_o never_o have_v nor_o will_v now_o abstain_v from_o their_o communion_n and_o principal_o because_o julius_n b._n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n have_v not_o condemn_v they_o but_o that_o the_o arian_n be_v not_o so_o refractory_a to_o the_o pope_n authority_n as_o you_o be_v and_o will_v make_v they_o to_o be_v to_o countenance_v your_o error_n be_v a_o truth_n easy_o prove_v for_o at_o last_o vrsacius_n and_o valens_n the_o two_o principal_a adversary_n of_o s._n athanasius_n depart_v from_o their_o pursuit_n and_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o come_v in_o person_n say_v severus_n sulpitius_n 2._o sulpitius_n hist._n sacraae_fw-la l._n 2._o to_o ask_v pardon_n of_o julius_n b._n of_o rome_n and_o themselves_o in_o the_o act_n of_o their_o penance_n 1._o penance_n athan._n apol._n 1._o your_o piety_n in_o your_o natural_a goodness_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o pardon_v our_o error_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o their_o act_n they_o make_v this_o protestation_n ibid._n protestation_n athanas_n ibid._n moreover_o we_o promise_v that_o if_o upon_o this_o occasion_n those_o of_o the_o east_n or_o athanasius_n himself_o shall_v malicious_o appeal_v we_o in_o judgement_n we_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o what_o you_o shall_v ordain_v 4._o you_o tell_v we_o k._n we_o pag._n 306._o light_v k._n out_o of_o sozomen_n the_o restore_n of_o s._n athanasius_n to_o his_o bishopric_n again_o by_o julius_n be_v only_o by_o his_o communicatory_a letter_n to_o declare_v that_o he_o think_v he_o worthy_a to_o be_v restore_v for_o if_o we_o inquire_v
after_o the_o authority_n whereby_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v it_o be_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n as_o the_o same_o historian_n record_v these_o be_v your_o word_n than_o which_o none_o can_v be_v more_o untrue_a for_o that_o julius_n in_o his_o letter_n do_v not_o only_o give_v his_o advice_n declare_v that_o he_o think_v athanasius_n worthy_a to_o be_v restore_v but_o operative_o exercise_v his_o power_n &_o authority_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o effectual_o and_o absolute_o restore_v athanasius_n and_o those_o other_o bishop_n be_v a_o truth_n not_o only_o acknowledge_v by_o your_o protestant_a writer_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v 2._o hear_v chap._n 37._o sect_n 2._o but_o in_o itself_o so_o certain_a that_o i_o think_v no_o man_n but_o doctor_n morton_n can_v have_v the_o face_n to_o deny_v it_o julius_n b._n of_o rome_n say_v socrates_n 11._o socrates_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o church_n above_o other_o defend_v their_o cause_n and_o send_v they_o back_o with_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n whereby_o each_o of_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o place_n and_o reprehend_v severe_o those_o that_o have_v rash_o depose_v they_o and_o they_o go_v from_o rome_n and_o rely_v upon_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n recover_v their_o seat_n again_o which_o be_v also_o express_v in_o the_o title_n of_o that_o chapter_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n say_v sozomen_n 7._o sozomen_n l_o 3_o c._n 7._o have_v examine_v their_o complaint_n and_o find_v that_o they_o agree_v touch_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n and_o because_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o see_n the_o charge_n of_o all_o belong_v to_o he_o he_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o title_n of_o that_o chapter_n athanasius_n &_o paul_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n receive_v their_o seat_n again_o be_v not_o these_o word_n clear_a enough_o but_o yet_o moreover_o do_v not_o nicephorus_n say_v 8._o say_v l._n 9_o c._n 8._o that_o julius_n by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o see_n and_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a privilege_n &_o prerogative_n thereof_o know_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o all_o bishop_n whersoever_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o judge_n arm_v each_o of_o they_o with_o powerful_a letter_n and_o send_v they_o back_o into_o the_o east_n restore_v their_o church_n unto_o they_o and_o do_v not_o he_o and_o sozomen_n add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n that_o he_o rebuke_v the_o arian_n for_o that_o they_o have_v rash_o depose_v those_o bishop_n and_o trouble_v the_o church_n not_o stand_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o command_v that_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o shall_v on_o a_o set_a day_n appear_v at_o rome_n to_o give_v account_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o their_o sentence_n and_o threaten_v not_o to_o let_v they_o pass_v without_o punishment_n unless_o they_o do_v cease_v to_o innovate_v and_o do_v not_o felix_n pope_n egypt_n pope_n ep._n ad_fw-la athanas_n &_o cet_fw-fr episc_n egypt_n who_o live_v soon_o after_o that_o time_n deliver_v the_o same_o in_o most_o clear_a and_o effectual_a word_n and_o final_o do_v not_o he_o theodoret_n 4._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o hist_o c._n 4._o sozomen_n 7._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o and_o s._n athanasius_n himself_o 2._o himself_o apolog._n 2._o out_o of_o the_o undoubted_a epistle_n of_o julius_n report_n that_o julius_n follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n command_v the_o arian_n bishop_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o summon_v the_o divine_a athanasius_n canonical_o to_o present_v himself_o in_o judgement_n and_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o receive_v this_o citation_n he_o transport_v himself_o in_o diligence_n to_o rome_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o tragedy_n go_v not_o because_o they_o know_v their_o lie_n will_v be_v open_o discover_v how_o think_v you_o now_o do_v not_o julius_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n restore_v those_o orthodox_n bishop_n to_o their_o church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o see_n and_o because_o the_o charge_n of_o all_o bishop_n belong_v unto_o he_o do_v he_o not_o command_v and_o canonical_o cite_v both_o athanasius_n and_o his_o adversary_n to_o appear_v in_o judgement_n at_o rome_n and_o appoint_v they_o a_o day_n for_o it_o and_o find_v athanasius_n to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o crime_n which_o his_o enemy_n have_v malicious_o forge_v against_o he_o do_v he_o not_o threaten_v to_o punish_v they_o unless_o they_o desist_v to_o innovate_v and_o trouble_v the_o church_n be_v this_o nothing_o but_o to_o declare_v that_o he_o think_v those_o orthodox_n bishop_n worthy_a to_o be_v restore_v be_v it_o not_o to_o exercise_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o this_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o your_o addition_n fin_n addition_n pag._n 306._o fin_n that_o the_o authority_n whereby_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v be_v the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n for_o he_o be_v a_o arian_n be_v so_o far_o from_o command_v he_o or_o any_o of_o those_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o be_v restore_v that_o as_o socrates_n write_v 12._o write_v l._n 2._o c._n 12._o when_o he_o hear_v that_o paul_n b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v restore_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n he_o storm_v thereat_o and_o cause_v the_o perfect_a of_o the_o city_n by_o his_o secular_a power_n to_o thrust_v he_o out_o again_o as_o he_o in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o before_o have_v do_v 8._o do_v see_v spon_n anno_o 342._o n._n 7._o &_o 8._o and_o the_o arian_n crew_n support_v by_o he_o so_o molest_v athanasius_n that_o they_o enforce_v he_o to_o fly_v again_o to_o rome_n and_o constantius_n himself_o persevere_v in_o persecute_v he_o as_o long_o as_o he_o dare_v which_o be_v witness_n sozamen_n 19_o sozamen_n l._n 3._o c._n 19_o and_o theodoret_n 12._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o &_o 12._o until_o athanasius_n and_o julius_n make_v complaint_n thereof_o to_o his_o brother_n constans_n a_o catholic_a emperor_n who_o assist_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n of_o julius_n with_o his_o imperial_a power_n write_v threthe_v letter_n to_o constantius_n and_o so_o effectual_a that_o he_o dare_v resist_v no_o long_o but_o permit_v athanasius_n according_a to_o the_o just_a sentence_n give_v by_o julius_n to_o return_v to_o his_o church_n and_o assi_v he_o therein_o and_o how_o far_o constantius_n be_v from_o have_v any_o power_n to_o restore_v bishop_n or_o to_o forbid_v they_o from_o return_v to_o their_o seat_n appear_v in_o this_o that_o when_o he_o command_v the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o ariminum_n 29._o ariminum_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 29._o not_o to_o dissolve_v their_o council_n but_o to_o expect_v his_o answer_n they_o send_v a_o peremptory_a message_n unto_o he_o and_o neglect_v his_o command_n as_o of_o one_o that_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n present_o dissolve_v their_o council_n and_o return_v to_o their_o church_n let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_v how_o many_o untruth_n you_o have_v tell_v in_o this_o one_o history_n and_o whether_o you_o may_v not_o be_v think_v guilty_a of_o impiety_n in_o defend_v and_o canonise_a the_o outrageous_a proceed_n of_o blasphemous_a heretic_n and_o iultify_v the_o sacrilegious_a violence_n offer_v to_o catholic_a bishop_n for_o not_o subscribe_v to_o their_o heresy_n and_o final_o in_o answer_v 285._o answer_v pag._n 285._o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a pope_n in_o proof_n of_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v confute_v and_o indeed_o confound_v by_o as_o ancient_a opposition_n as_o of_o the_o oriental_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n julius_n such_o example_n we_o allow_v you_o to_o maintain_v your_o doctrine_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o i_o presume_v that_o every_o understanding_n protestant_n will_v disclaim_v from_o such_o a_o advocate_n and_o think_v that_o by_o such_o precedent_n his_o cause_n be_v not_o defend_v but_o disgrace_v condemn_a and_o parallal_v with_o arianisme_n sect_n vii_o other_o passage_n of_o doctor_n morton_n examine_v bellarmine_n in_o proof_n 18._o proof_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 18._o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n allege_v that_o sixtus_n the_o three_o depose_v polychronius_n you_o say_v l._n say_v pag._n 195._o margin_n light_v l._n he_o number_v he_o as_o one_o of_o the_o eight_o patriarch_n which_o nicolas_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n reckon_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n this_o be_v another_o untruth_n the_o eight_o patriarch_n which_o bellarmine_n mention_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o nicolas_n be_v of_o constantinople_n namely_o maximus_n nestorius_n acacius_n anthymus_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n petrus_n all_o these_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o
rome_n and_o be_v so_o many_o witness_n against_o you_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n acknowledge_v and_o practise_v over_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n polichronius_fw-la be_v b._n of_o jerusalem_n and_o depose_v by_o sixtus_n pope_n as_o bellarmine_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o sixtus_n which_o act_n witness_n baronius_n fin_n baronius_n anno_fw-la 432._o fin_n be_v cite_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o by_o petrus_n damiani_n and_o other_o late_a writer_n and_o if_o as_o you_o object_n 295._o object_n pag._n 295._o baronius_n find_v no_o other_o record_n of_o any_o polychronius_n that_o be_v b._n of_o jerusalem_n at_o that_o time_n do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v there_o be_v none_o such_o to_o omit_v the_o late_a writer_n he_o mention_v petrus_n damiani_n and_o nicolas_n be_v man_n eminent_o learn_v the_o one_o live_v 600._o the_o other_o 800._o year_n near_a the_o time_n of_o sixtus_n than_o baronius_n do_v and_o the_o act_n of_o sixtus_n be_v yet_o more_o ancient_a then_o either_o of_o they_o wherefore_o in_o those_o day_n record_n may_v be_v extant_a of_o polychronius_n and_o his_o deposition_n by_o sixtus_n report_v in_o those_o act_n which_o before_o baronius_n his_o time_n be_v lose_v or_o if_o not_o lose_v yet_o may_v not_o come_v to_o his_o knowledge_n 2._o you_o answer_v 295._o answer_v pag._n 295._o your_o pope_n must_v be_v think_v to_o have_v restore_v bishop_n only_o by_o endeavour_v and_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v you_o exemplify_v in_o basilides_n who_o cause_n show_v it_o be_v a_o know_a truth_n in_o those_o day_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o restore_v bishop_n depose_v for_o why_o else_o do_v basilides_n travail_v from_o spain_n to_o rome_n to_o procure_v letter_n of_o restitution_n from_o he_o of_o this_o basilides_n you_o say_v 190._o say_v pag._n 289._o fin_n 190._o cyprian_n constitute_v sabinus_n bishop_n instead_o of_o basilides_n who_o he_o have_v depose_v but_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o cyprian_n neither_o depose_v basilides_n nor_o constitute_v sabinus_n in_o his_o place_n basilides_n be_v not_o a_o african_a nor_o any_o way_n belong_v to_o cyprian_n jurisdiction_n who_o be_v primate_n of_o africa_n only_a but_o bishop_n of_o leon_n in_o spain_n and_o for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n be_v just_o depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o country_n flee_v to_o stephen_n pope_n and_o by_o a_o false_a information_n of_o his_o own_o innocency_n deceive_v he_o that_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o command_v he_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n who_o have_v condemn_v he_o scent_n sabinus_n and_o felix_n into_o africa_n to_o inform_v s._n cyprian_n true_o of_o the_o case_n to_o ask_v his_o advice_n and_o require_v his_o intercession_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v not_o restore_v basilides_n s._n cyprian_n approve_v their_o proceed_n and_o answer_v that_o if_o basilides_n have_v obtain_v from_o the_o pope_n any_o sentence_n of_o restitution_n it_o be_v surreptitious_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o false_a information_n he_o have_v give_v which_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v his_o restitution_n void_a as_o not_o only_o the_o civil_a etsi_fw-la civil_a cod._n count_v ius_o l._n etsi_fw-la but_o also_o the_o canon_n law_n dilectus_fw-la law_n de_fw-fr rescrip_n c._n dilectus_fw-la declare_v decree_a in_o a_o case_n like_o to_o this_o of_o basilides_n that_o sentence_n procure_v from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a by_o surreption_n be_v invalid_a and_o of_o no_o force_n wherefore_o s._n cyprian_n right_o answer_v that_o albeit_o stephen_n for_o his_o incircumspection_n may_v be_v argue_v of_o negligence_n in_o give_v so_o easy_a credit_n to_o a_o false_a information_n and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v deceive_v thereby_o yet_o the_o chief_a fault_n be_v in_o basilides_n who_o with_o lie_n have_v seek_v to_o justify_v himself_o this_o be_v all_o that_o antiquity_n record_v of_o this_o controversy_n which_o show_v that_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n the_o custom_n of_o bishop_n when_o they_o think_v themselves_o wrong_v by_o their_o metropolitan_o be_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o basilides_n do_v against_o which_o custom_n nor_o against_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o admit_v of_o appeal_v neither_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n nor_o s._n cyprian_n except_v as_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o they_o blame_v not_o basilides_n for_o appeal_n to_o one_o that_o have_v no_o power_n to_o reiudge_v his_o cause_n but_o for_o his_o surprise_n make_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n want_n of_o circumspection_n in_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o a_o false_a information_n 3._o you_o say_v 290._o say_v pag._n 290._o cyprian_n confirm_v the_o election_n of_o pope_n cornelius_n who_o communion_n both_o he_o as_o himself_o speak_v &_o his_o colleague_n and_o fellow-bishop_n give_v approbation_n unto_o to_o confirm_v the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o therefore_o can_v proceed_v from_o none_o but_o a_o superior_a this_o authority_n though_o you_o deny_v to_o the_o pope_n yet_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o annihilate_v his_o authority_n you_o overshoote_a your_o mark_n so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v he_o inferior_a to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o their_o confirmation_n a_o thing_n which_o s._n cyprian_n mention_v not_o he_o only_o signify_v to_o cornelius_n that_o novatianus_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o set_v himself_o up_o as_o antipope_v in_o opposition_n to_o cornelius_n and_o the_o african_n be_v doubtful_a which_o of_o the_o two_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v and_o obey_v as_o true_a pope_n s._n cyprian_n say_v he_o exhort_v all_o that_o sail_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n to_o abandon_v novatianus_n and_o adhere_v to_o cornelius_n and_o procure_v letter_n from_o his_o brethren_n at_o rome_n to_o those_o of_o africa_n that_o be_v full_o certify_v of_o the_o truth_n they_o may_v say_v he_o to_o cornelius_n acknowledge_v and_o firm_o embrace_v you_o and_o your_o communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o therefore_o that_o you_o have_v gain_v out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v to_o prove_v yourself_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o to_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n and_o to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o s._n cyprian_n belief_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n 4._o the_o like_a abuse_n you_o offer_v to_o s._n gregory_n say_v 29●_n say_v pag._n 29●_n that_o he_o seek_v approbation_n from_o the_o four_o patriarch_n as_o soon_o as_o this_o holy_a pope_n be_v place_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o his_o predecessor_n he_o write_v a_o circular_a or_o synodical_a letter_n for_o so_o ancient_o those_o letter_n be_v call_v to_o the_o four_o eastern_a patriarch_n that_o have_v notice_n of_o his_o election_n they_o may_v know_v who_o to_o obey_v and_o who_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o in_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o mayor_n cause_n which_o be_v no_o more_o to_o seek_v confirmation_n or_o approbation_n from_o they_o then_o if_o a_o king_n of_o poland_n or_o any_o other_o electiu●_n prince_n be_v choose_v shall_v write_v a_o circular_a letter_n to_o hi●_n noble_n give_v they_o notice_n of_o his_o election_n and_o admonish_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n unto_o he_o this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o those_o synodical_a letter_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o gelasius_n because_o say_v he_o to_o laurence_n bishop_n of_o lignidis_n with_o fraternal_a love_n you_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o we_o shall_v send_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o certain_a medicine_n to_o the_o bishop_n throughout_o illyria_n and_o other_o although_o this_o have_v be_v most_o ample_o perform_v by_o our_o predecessor_n of_o bless_a memory_n yet_o because_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o when_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v new_o make_v he_o send_v a_o form_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o the_o holy_a church_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o renew_v the_o same_o in_o a_o compendious_a brevity_n to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n by_o this_o our_o epistle_n may_v understand_v in_o what_o faith_n he_o be_v to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v choose_v do_v send_v these_o synodical_a letter_n prescribe_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o bishop_n so_o likewise_o all_o metropolitan_o do_v send_v to_o the_o pope_n new_o choose_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o do_v s._n cyprian_n to_o cornelius_n pope_n call_v it_o 10._o it_o l._n 2._o ep_n 10._o a_o divine_a
tradition_n and_o a_o ecclesiastical_a institution_n and_o moreover_o add_v that_o he_o have_v command_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o province_n to_o do_v the_o like_a sect_n viii_o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v excommunication_n and_o of_o heretic_n excommunicate_v the_o pope_n excommunication_n be_v a_o most_o grievous_a ecclesiastical_a censure_n which_o can_v be_v inflict_v by_o none_o but_o a_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n that_o have_v jurisdiction_n &_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_a to_o punish_v &_o absolve_v the_o person_n excommunicate_v a_o thing_n so_o certain_a that_o no_o puny-divine_a can_v be_v ignorant_a thereof_o wherefore_o you_o discover_v more_o than_o vulgar_a ignorance_n in_o define_v 290._o define_v pag._n 290._o excommunicate_v of_o other_o to_o be_v but_z a_o deny_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o by_o this_o definition_n every_o subject_n may_v excommunicate_v his_o superior_a ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a for_o every_o subject_n of_o never_o so_o mean_a a_o rank_n ecclesiastic_a or_o laic_a may_v deny_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o his_o bishop_n or_o his_o sovereign_n and_o thereby_o excommunicate_v they_o yea_o by_o the_o same_o definition_n any_o heretic_n may_v excommunicate_v the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n or_o council_n by_o which_o he_o be_v condemn_v for_o he_o may_v deny_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o be_v this_o good_a divinity_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v you_o who_o from_o this_o definition_n as_o from_o a_o true_a principle_n deduce_v that_o when_o ancient_a pope_n excommunicate_v heretical_a bishop_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n it_o be_v no_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o they_o over_o those_o bishop_n but_o ibid._n but_o ibid._n only_o a_o disunit_a of_o themselves_o from_o they_o by_o deny_v to_o have_v communion_n with_o they_o which_o also_o the_o same_o bishop_n may_v deny_v to_o have_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o this_o ground_n you_o justify_v as_o well_o you_o may_v the_o arian_n who_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o julius_n pope_n take_v to_o themselves_o liberty_n to_o excommunicate_v he_o in_o their_o false_a council_n at_o philippopolis_n 10._o philippopolis_n sozom._n l._n 3._o c._n 10._o and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n when_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n grow_v to_o so_o great_a a_o height_n of_o madness_n as_o to_o pronounce_v a_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o leo_n the_o great_a and_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n because_o he_o have_v condemn_v eutyches_n and_o his_o heresy_n you_o say_v 291._o say_v pag._n 290._o fin_n 291._o he_o do_v it_o upon_o the_o know_a judgement_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o upon_o a_o common_a right_n and_o hability_n to_o do_v it_o which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o answer_n full_a of_o ignorance_n so_o i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o excuse_v it_o from_o impiety_n for_o although_o dioscorus_n be_v a_o archheretic_n though_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v by_o his_o own_o authority_n assemble_v a_o council_n at_o ephesus_n and_o approve_v in_o it_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n and_o condemn_v the_o orthodox_n doctrine_n and_o not_o only_o excommunicate_v but_o beat_v and_o wound_v to_o death_n flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n a_o stout_a champion_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n yet_o none_o of_o these_o crime_n be_v allege_v against_o he_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n but_o only_o his_o presumptuous_a attempt_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o disobedience_n to_o he_o dioscorus_n say_v anatolius_n archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n 18._o constantinople_n conc._n chalced._n act._n 9_o socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 18._o speak_v to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v not_o be_v depose_v for_o the_o faith_n but_o because_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v my_o lord_n the_o archbishop_n leo_n and_o that_o have_v be_v thrice_o cite_v he_o will_v not_o appear_v and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n itself_o write_v to_o leo_n leon._n leo_n relat._n ad_fw-la leon._n after_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o frenzy_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o your_o holiness_n &_o have_v moditate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o you_o who_o hasten_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n so_o enormous_a a_o crime_n do_v this_o holy_a council_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v for_o any_o bishop_n even_o the_o great_a patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n as_o dioscorus_n be_v to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o make_v this_o matter_n more_o evident_a what_o christian_a ever_o hear_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o bishop_n can_v be_v valid_a against_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o primary_n see_v which_o say_v the_o council_n of_o sinuessa_n imper._n sinuessa_n nicol._n papa_n ep._n ad_fw-la micha_n imper._n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o no_o man_n the_o primitive_a father_n think_v it_o so_o unlawful_a to_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n that_o they_o pronounce_v all_o that_o be_v divide_v from_o his_o communion_n to_o be_v branch_n cut_v of_o from_o the_o vine_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v heretic_n of_o a_o perverse_a judgement_n or_o else_o presumptuous_a selfe-liking_a schismatics_n and_o sinner_n not_o to_o gather_v but_o to_o scatter_v not_o to_o be_v of_o christ_n but_o of_o antichrist_n 4._o antichrist_n see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o and_o final_o so_o absurd_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v ever_o hold_v for_o any_o christian_a to_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n that_o the_o emperor_n martian_a writing_n to_o certain_a heretical_a monk_n of_o palestine_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v presume_v to_o excommunicate_a leo_n pope_n tell_v they_o 144._o they_o apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 144._o that_o thereby_o they_o have_v and_o with_o good_a cause_n make_v themselves_o a_o laugh_v stook_v to_o the_o heathen_n themselves_o what_o you_o object_n 290._o object_n pag._n 290._o out_o of_o nicephorus_n that_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n excommunicate_v pope_n vigilius_n cardinal_n peron_n have_v learned_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o mere_a fable_n and_o be_v it_o true_a it_o be_v a_o unlawful_a attempt_n and_o invalid_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v sect_n ix_o adrian_n and_o nicolas_n pope_n object_v by_o doctor_n morton_n adrian_n and_o nicolas_n the_o two_o first_o pope_n of_o those_o name_n require_v of_o constantine_n and_o michael_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n the_o restitution_n not_o only_o of_o the_o temporal_a patrimony_n of_o s._n peter_n injust_o take_v away_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o heretical_a emperor_n their_o predecessor_n &_o still_o withhold_v by_o they_o but_o also_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a right_n of_o ordain_v and_o govern_v ten_o province_n of_o the_o east_n as_o their_o peculiar_a diocese_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o predecessor_n this_o objection_n you_o 292._o you_o pag._n 291._o 292._o take_v from_o baronius_n 800._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 800._o he_o have_v give_v you_o a_o answer_n to_o he_o i_o remit_v you_o but_o whereas_o you_o say_v these_o pope_n do_v not_o think_v themselves_o to_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o nothing_o that_o they_o even_o in_o those_o very_a epistle_n which_o you_o object_n not_o only_o affirm_v but_o most_o effectual_o prove_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o of_o adrian_n something_o to_o this_o purpose_n have_v be_v say_v already_o ●_o already_o chap._n 33._o sect_n ●_o sect_n x._o of_o the_o deposition_n of_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n bellarmine_n 18._o bellarmine_n l._n ●_o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 18._o produce_v many_o example_n of_o eastern_a bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o answer_n whereto_o you_o say_v 296._o say_v pag._n 295._o fin_n 296._o the_o chief_a example_n which_o your_o cardinal_n may_v seem_v principal_o to_o insiston_n be_v that_o pope_n damasus_n as_o he_o call_v it_o depose_v flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o therefore_o have_v i_o single_v out_o this_o example_n for_o a_o singular_a argument_n of_o retorsion_n to_o prove_v the_o no-iuridicall_a or_o judicial_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n bellarmine_n first_o and_o chief_a example_n be_v of_o eight_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o be_v so_o many_o witness_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n against_o you_o among_o these_o he_o chief_o inssi_v on_o the_o example_n of_o anthymus_n who_o agapet_n pope_n depose_v in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n itself_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v 4._o hear_v in_o this_o chap._n sect_n 4._o and_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o nicolas_n the_o first_o liberatus_n zonaras_n and_o gelasius_n the_o reason_n therefore_o why_o you_o pass_v over_o these_o example_n single_a
of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v unite_v and_o so_o full_o agree_v in_o the_o chief_a question_n which_o be_v most_o in_o controversy_n that_o no_o further_a speech_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a but_o that_o our_o agreement_n may_v be_v so_o absolute_a &_o firm_a that_o hereafter_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o we_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o that_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o celebrate_v in_o leaven_a or_o unleavened_a bread_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n those_o bishop_n answer_v we_o o_o most_o holy_a father_n have_v no_o licence_n to_o treat_v of_o these_o thing_n which_o word_n you_o set_v down_o as_o the_o answer_n of_o all_o the_o greek_a prelate_n when_o as_o they_o be_v speak_v only_o by_o four_o of_o they_o who_o have_v receive_v no_o commission_n to_o treat_v of_o those_o question_n refuse_v to_o make_v answer_n unto_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o their_o brethren_n but_o nevertheless_o which_o you_o conceal_v they_o declare_v their_o own_o judgement_n concern_v the_o three_o first_o to_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n add_v moreover_o that_o of_o the_o four_o which_o be_v transubstantiation_n they_o can_v not_o treat_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n how_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n agree_v not_o in_o doctrine_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n especial_o since_o these_o four_o bishop_n declare_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o concern_v the_o three_o first_o point_n of_o the_o four_o propose_v by_o he_o they_o believe_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v and_o concern_v the_o four_o as_o at_o that_o time_n they_o do_v not_o affirm_v it_o so_o neither_o do_v they_o deny_v it_o and_o soon_o after_o not_o only_o they_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o greek_a bishop_n and_o abbot_n together_o with_o their_o emperor_n in_o the_o letter_n of_o union_n express_o declare_v that_o not_o only_o in_o the_o three_o first_o namely_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o celebrate_v mass_n in_o unleavened_a bread_n they_o believe_v as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v but_o also_o in_o the_o four_o of_o transubstantiation_n say_v that_o by_o the_o priest_n upon_o the_o altar_n of_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ._n all_o this_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o and_o yet_o blush_v not_o to_o deny_v it_o and_o to_o add_v another_o untruth_n say_v init_fw-la say_v pag._n 331._o fin_n 332._o init_fw-la yea_o and_o their_o emperor_n palaeologus_n that_o be_v so_o earnest_a to_o piece_n they_o together_o be_v himself_o but_o hardly_o welcome_v home_o to_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o be_v now_o much_o more_o exasperate_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o do_v now_o pronounce_v their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o supreme_a and_o chief_a of_o all_o bishop_n these_o your_o word_n can_v be_v free_v from_o a_o notable_a imposture_n for_o you_o falsify_v bellarmine_n allege_v these_o word_n in_o a_o different_a letter_n as_o he_o the_o greek_n do_v now_o to_o wit_n after_o their_o return_n from_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n pronounce_v their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o supreme_a and_o chief_a of_o all_o bishop_n bellarmine_n speak_v of_o their_o fall_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o year_n 1054._o which_o be_v not_o after_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n but_o almost_o 400._o year_n before_o it_o you_o to_o persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o fall_n after_o their_o return_n from_o that_o council_n cunning_o insert_v into_o his_o word_n this_o adverbe_n now_o and_o falsify_v the_o year_n put_v in_o stead_n of_o anno_fw-la 1054._o which_o bellarmine_n have_v anno_fw-la 1454._o can_v there_o be_v more_o wilful_a fraud_n than_o this_o but_o you_o show_v no_o less_o folly_n than_o fraud_n for_o whereas_o you_o say_v 331._o say_v pag._n 331._o the_o council_n of_o florence_n be_v the_o year_n 1549._o to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_n after_o their_o return_n from_o that_o council_n deny_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o say_v 332._o say_v pag._n 332._o now_o to_o wit_n the_o year_n 1454._o which_o be_v in_o your_o account_n 100_o year_n before_o that_o council_n they_o do_v pronounce_v their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o supreme_a and_o chief_a of_o all_o bishop_n i_o deny_v not_o that_o the_o greek_n a_o few_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n return_v to_o vomit_n and_o that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o they_o still_o persi_v in_o the_o error_n which_o then_o they_o abjure_v i_o only_o speak_v here_o of_o your_o simplicity_n who_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o fall_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n after_o their_o return_n from_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n say_v mark_fw-mi say_v pag._n 332._o mark_fw-mi they_o fall_v the_o year_n 1454._o which_v according_a to_o your_o account_n be_v 100_o year_n before_o that_o council_n with_o these_o imposture_n you_o delude_v your_o reader_n who_o not_o doubt_v of_o your_o fidelity_n take_v your_o doctrine_n upon_o your_o word_n sect_n iii_o that_o many_o of_o the_o grecian_n at_o this_o day_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a communion_n and_o profess_v subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n that_o many_o of_o the_o grecian_n be_v at_o this_o day_n accordant_a in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o profess_v subjection_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v a_o thing_n notorious_a for_o who_o be_v ignorant_a that_o as_o in_o rome_n there_o be_v a_o seminary_n wherein_o many_o youth_n of_o our_o english_a nation_n be_v train_v up_o in_o virtue_n and_o learning_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v ordain_v priest_n and_o return_v into_o england_n they_o may_v help_v to_o reduce_v their_o country_n to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n so_o likewise_o there_o have_v be_v many_o year_n another_o of_o grecian_n for_o the_o reduction_n of_o greece_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o cardinal_n peron_n 22._o peron_n repliqu_n chap._n 22._o advertise_v our_o late_a sovereign_a k._n james_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o malta_n cyprus_n candia_n xante_n chios_n naxos_n and_o other_o greek_a and_o asian_a island_n the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n have_v place_n even_o at_o this_o day_n either_o whole_o or_o for_o the_o great_a part_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o you_o affirm_v 335._o affirm_v pag._n 335._o russia_n a_o good_a part_n of_o polonia_n dalmatia_n and_o croatia_n belong_v to_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n with_o what_o forehead_n can_v you_o challenge_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o these_o country_n in_o general_a to_o dissent_v in_o faith_n &_o communion_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o in_o dalmatia_n croatia_n polonia_n as_o also_o in_o lituania_n and_o transiluania_n the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o only_o allow_v but_o public_o profess_v and_o for_o the_o russian_n michael_n hipation_n and_o cyrill_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o nation_n have_v late_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o same_o church_n as_o both_o their_o epistle_n and_o profession_n of_o faith_n address_v to_o clement_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o year_n 1595._o abundant_o testify_v ●_o testify_v apud_fw-la cocci_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n ●_o sect_n iv_o of_o the_o egyptian_n your_o second_o example_n of_o remote_a nation_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n 417._o church_n pag._n 304.342.400.409_o 417._o be_v of_o the_o egyptian_n to_o show_v your_o error_n herein_o these_o evidence_n may_v serve_v for_o as_o jacobus_n navarchus_n asi●●_n navarchus_n ep._n asi●●_n coccius_n 6._o coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o and_o doctor_n sanders_n 1121._o sanders_n monar_n visib_n l._n 7._o n._n 1121._o relate_v eugenius_n pope_n have_v actual_o unite_v the_o greek_n and_o latin_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o wrirten_v to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n they_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o he_o write_v back_o honourable_o catholike_o and_o resolute_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o particular_a john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o christian_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o all_o the_o country_n which_o first_o belong_v to_o the_o empire_n of_o egypt_n and_o afterward_o to_o the_o prefecture_n thereof_o style_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n the_o perfection_n of_o priesthood_n the_o apostolical_a father_n of_o all_o church_n the_o prince_n of_o priest_n the_o guide_n of_o pilgrim_n that_o show_v the_o way_n to_o the_o rest_n the_o physician_n of_o the_o disease_a and_o his_o vicar_n of_o
n._n 1555.1556_o by_o coccius_n 6._o coccius_n to._n ●_o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o and_o by_o the_o protestant_a edition_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o which_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o profession_n of_o abdisus_n be_v make_v in_o presence_n of_o two_o cardinal_n and_o subscribe_v by_o they_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o 338.339_o you_o pag._n 338.339_o reject_v this_o whole_o story_n as_o a_o tale_n of_o robin_n hood_n and_o mere_o fabulous_a which_o argue_v in_o you_o much_o unshamefastnesse_n for_o who_o be_v so_o little_o verse_v in_o the_o history_n of_o these_o time_n as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o albeit_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o east_n indies_n live_v so_o many_o year_n under_o heathenish_a or_o mahometan_a prince_n be_v debar_v from_o entercouse_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o run_v into_o diverse_a error_n yet_o they_o think_v themselves_o still_o to_o retain_v entire_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n s_o thomas_n have_v preach_v unto_o they_o and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v under_o the_o king_n of_o portugal_n be_v instruct_v by_o preacher_n send_v out_o of_o europe_n they_o reform_v their_o error_n and_o yield_v due_a subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o particular_a those_o very_a place_n which_o abdisus_n in_o his_o profession_n name_v to_o wit_n cuscho_n cananor_n goa_n calicut_n and_o carangol_n and_o many_o more_o be_v name_v by_o jacobus_n payva_n and_o radius_fw-la jesu_n radius_fw-la l._n the_o orig_n soc._n jesu_n who_o testify_v that_o even_o in_o those_o beginning_n in_o his_o time_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 80000._o of_o those_o indian_n be_v reduce_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o likewise_o know_v not_o that_o ormus_n and_o other_o place_n under_o the_o persian_a which_o both_o abdisus_n &_o andradius_fw-la nominate_v be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n and_o that_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n have_v give_v licence_n to_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o religious_a man_n which_o go_v thither_o to_o that_o end_n to_o erect_v house_n &_o build_v church_n in_o his_o dominion_n by_o which_o mean_v many_o be_v convert_v and_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o bold_o pronounce_v that_o these_o christian_n acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o stand_v in_o christian_a union_n with_o protestant_n which_o to_o be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v sect_n ix_o of_o the_o antiochian_o your_o seven_o example_n 330._o example_n pag._n 330._o be_v of_o the_o antiochian_o who_o with_o their_o patriarch_n you_o untrue_o deny_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v any_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o maronites_n 22._o maronites_n peron_n repliq._n chap._n 22._o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o branch_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n with_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n have_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n always_o live_v and_o persevere_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whereof_o your_o historian_n m._n grimston_n speak_v 1053._o speak_v descript_n of_o country_n pag._n 1053._o say_v the_o maronites_n have_v for_o these_o 400._o year_n make_v profession_n of_o follow_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o same_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o their_o patriarch_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o leo_n the_o ten_o 6._o ten_o cocci_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o moreover_o as_o genebrard_n record_v 1555._o record_v chron._n a_o 1555._o moses_n mardenn_n be_v send_v out_o of_o mesopotamia_n by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o come_v to_o vienna_n in_o austria_n after_o he_o have_v procure_v the_o new_a testament_n to_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o syriack_n tongue_n and_o character_n at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n go_v to_o rome_n and_o as_o well_o in_o his_o own_o name_n as_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n make_v a_o public_a and_o solemn_a profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n which_o andreas_n masius_n have_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o syriack_n original_a into_o latin_a and_o both_o coccius_n 6._o coccius_n cocc_fw-la to_o 1._o l._n 7._o art_n 6._o &_o sanders_n 1494._o sanders_n mon._n vis_fw-la l_o 7._o n._n 1494._o have_v insert_v into_o their_o work_n moreover_o the_o nestorian_n of_o seleucia_n who_o belong_v to_o that_o patriarkship_n have_v abjure_v their_o heresy_n by_o persuasion_n of_o julius_n pope_n the_o year_n 1553._o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o he_o profess_v their_o belief_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o their_o subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o send_v it_o by_o three_o chief_a man_n of_o their_o nation_n and_o with_o they_o sin_v a_o monk_n who_o they_o beseech_v julius_n to_o ordain_v and_o send_v back_o unto_o they_o consecrate_v as_o their_o patriarch_n cit_fw-la patriarch_n cocc_fw-la sand._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la sect_n x._o of_o the_o african_n your_o eight_o example_n 409._o example_n pag._n 341._o 406._o 407._o 409._o be_v of_o the_o african_n among_o who_o the_o kingdom_n of_o congo_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n 1503._o communion_n peron_n repliq_n chap._n 21._o geneb_n chron._n a_o 1503._o and_o a_o ambassador_n that_o come_v from_o thence_o a_o few_o year_n since_o and_o die_v in_o rome_n make_v public_a profession_n thereof_o from_o before_o luther_n tyme._n and_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o all_o the_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o the_o border_n of_o africa_n under_o the_o conquest_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n &_o portugal_n be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n sect_n xi_o of_o the_o asian_o your_o nine_o example_n 409._o example_n pag._n 341._o 406._o 407._o 409._o be_v of_o the_o asian_o as_o untrue_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o antiochian_o armenian_n and_o maronites_n who_o with_o their_o patriarch_n we_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o be_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n be_v asian_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o in_o asia_n since_o the_o expulsion_n of_o godfrey_n king_n of_o palestine_n and_o of_o boemond_n prince_n of_o antioch_n the_o guard_n of_o the_o holy_a sepulchre_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v always_o remain_v to_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n chap._n xli_o that_o in_o the_o aforenamed_a country_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o agree_v in_o faith_n &_o communion_n with_o protestant_n have_v prove_v that_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o remote_a nation_n which_o you_o have_v nominate_v there_o to_o be_v many_o catholic_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n it_o rest_v that_o your_o denial_n of_o so_o certain_a a_o truth_n either_o proceed_v from_o gross_a ignorance_n or_o be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n and_o no_o less_o be_v your_o affirm_v the_o same_o church_n to_o be_v of_o your_o protestant_a communion_n for_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n be_v damnable_a heretic_n and_o have_v no_o communion_n at_o all_o with_o protestant_n as_o the_o follow_a section_n will_v demonstrate_v sect_n i._o the_o grecian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n and_o doctor_n morton_n falsifi_v catholic_a author_n to_o excuse_v they_o that_o the_o grecian_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o therefore_o you_o challenge_v as_o accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n err_v fundamental_o in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bless_a tinity_n by_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v a_o thing_n most_o certain_a out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n where_o the_o chief_a dispute_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n be_v of_o this_o subject_n and_o the_o greek_n be_v convince_v acknowledge_v their_o error_n as_o the_o letter_n of_o union_n extant_a in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n record_n the_o same_o be_v testify_v not_o only_o by_o the_o latin_a writer_n but_o also_o by_o laonicus_n chalcondylas_n a_o greek_a historian_n the_o greek_n say_v he_o 6._o he_o de_fw-fr reb_fw-mi turcicis_fw-la l._n 6._o in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n first_o defend_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o but_o afterward_o be_v convince_v with_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o latin_n they_o confess_v he_o to_o proceed_v also_o from_o the_o son_n yet_o after_o their_o return_n inte_fw-mi greece_n they_o obstinate_o defend_v their_o former_a opinion_n and_o when_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n send_v a_o profession_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o the_o lutheran_n of_o germany_n in_o the_o first_o article_n thereof_o which_o be_v concern_v the_o bless_a trinity_n he_o affirm_v and_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
have_v do_v nothing_o but_o bring_v witness_n against_o yourself_o for_o all_o of_o they_o condemn_v the_o greek_n of_o heresy_n and_o convince_v you_o of_o a_o notorious_a untruth_n in_o say_v l_o 336._o l_o pag_n 336._o that_o in_o our_o judgement_n the_o greek_n be_v no_o heretic_n except_v for_o the_o deny_v a_o necessity_n of_o subjection_n and_o union_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o do_v these_o only_a censure_n they_o for_o their_o heresy_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o other_o writer_n more_o ancient_a condemn_v they_o as_o guilty_a of_o other_o error_n sect_n ii_o of_o the_o lutheran_n of_o germany_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patritriarke_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o the_o pelagian_o be_v conden_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v to_o be_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o to_o julian_n the_o pelagian_a 4._o pelagian_a cont._n julian_n pelag._n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o say_v i_o think_v that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o suffice_v thou_o in_o which_o our_o lord_n will_v have_v the_o chief_a of_o his_o apostle_n to_o be_v crown_v with_o a_o most_o glorious_a martyrdom_n to_o the_o precedent_n of_o which_o church_n bless_a innocentius_n if_o thou_o will_v have_v give_v ear_n thou_o have_v ere_o now_o free_v thy_o dangerous_a youth_n from_o the_o pelagian_a snare_n the_o same_o we_o say_v to_o you_o who_o have_v imitate_v the_o pelagian_o in_o your_o pretence_n of_o union_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n your_o german_a brethren_n write_v to_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n send_v he_o a_o procession_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o desit_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o church_n he_o answer_v they_o addressing_z his_o letter_n to_o the_o protestant_n of_o prague_n in_o bohemia_n these_o letter_n of_o hieremy_n set_v forth_o by_o the_o lutheran_n of_o wittenberg_n you_o object_n 334._o object_n pag._n 334._o to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n accord_n in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n but_o with_o your_o wont_a sincerity_n for_o as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o edition_n of_o stanislaus_n socolovius_fw-la divine_v to_o the_o king_n of_o poland_n print_v at_o colen_n apud_fw-la maternum_n cholinum_fw-la 1582._o that_o epistle_n as_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o lutheran_n divine_v of_o wittenberg_n anno_fw-la 1584._o be_v corrupt_v and_o falsify_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n just_o forbid_v prohib_o forbid_v in_o ind._n lib._n prohib_o nevertheless_o that_o very_a edition_n of_o wittenberg_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o claim_n you_o make_v to_o the_o grecian_n as_o to_o man_n of_o your_o communion_n to_o be_v a_o grand_a imposture_n for_o it_o express_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n to_o this_o day_n teach_v invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n veneration_n of_o relic_n worship_n of_o image_n transubstantiation_n with_o the_o mass_n and_o significant_a ceremony_n thereof_o auricular_a confession_n enjoined_a satisfaction_n all_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n &_o in_o particular_a confirmation_n with_o chrism_n and_o extreme_a unction_n prayer_n sacrifice_n and_o alm_n for_o the_o dead_a free_a will_n monachisme_n vow_n of_o chastity_n the_o fast_a of_o lent_n and_o other_o set_v fast_v day_n that_o priest_n may_v not_o marry_v after_o order_n take_v that_o the_o tradition_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v with_o many_o other_o thing_n as_o m._n brereley_o 202._o brereley_o prot._n apol_n tract_n 1._o sect_n ●_o sub_fw-la 12._o pag._n 202._o show_v set_v down_o exact_o the_o page_n and_o part_n of_o the_o page_n where_o every_o one_o of_o these_o particular_n be_v to_o be_v read_v in_o that_o protestant_n edition_n and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v out_o of_o sir_n edwin_n sands_n who_o in_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o religion_n use_v in_o the_o west_n part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o five_o leaf_n before_o the_o end_n affirm_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n agree_v with_o rome_n in_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n &_o general_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o pray_v to_o saint_n in_o auricular_a confession_n in_o offer_v sacrifice_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n worship_v of_o picture_n etc._n etc._n and_o i_o must_v not_o omit_v the_o testimony_n of_o justus_n caluinus_n who_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o protestancy_n be_v afterwards_o convert_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o be_v tax_v for_o it_o by_o many_o of_o his_o friend_n write_v a_o book_n to_o satisfy_v they_o and_o the_o world_n in_o which_o he_o declare_v the_o morive_v of_o his_o conversion_n and_o among_o they_o the_o agreement_n of_o extern_a church_n with_o the_o roman_a in_o condemn_a protestant_n and_o he_o insi_v particular_o on_o this_o epistle_n of_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o censure_n which_o in_o it_o be_v give_v of_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n acknowledge_v that_o thereby_o he_o be_v great_o confirm_v in_o his_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o say_v he_o seqq_n he_o pag._n ●_o fin_fw-fr &_o seqq_n the_o greek_n and_o latin_n agree_v so_o precise_o in_o the_o chief_a head_n of_o doctrine_n that_o i_o wonder_v much_o the_o novellist_n have_v not_o the_o same_o opinion_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n that_o they_o have_v of_o the_o pope_n for_o if_o the_o one_o be_v antichrist_n the_o other_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v antichrist_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o accordance_n in_o doctrine_n and_o so_o much_o more_o to_o be_v pity_v be_v the_o simplicity_n of_o some_o of_o they_o who_o dream_v still_o of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o accordance_n with_o the_o greek_a church_n cease_v not_o to_o inquire_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o east_n by_o send_v letter_n and_o catechism_n what_o have_v they_o so_o soon_o forget_v how_o fatal_o the_o confession_n of_o augusta_n be_v reject_v and_o how_o deep_o censure_v by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n let_v they_o go_v to_o tubinga_fw-mi and_o inquire_v crusius_n will_v inform_v they_o or_o if_o the_o journey_n seem_v tedious_a let_v they_o read_v the_o oration_n of_o chytraeus_n print_v at_o francford_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n in_o greece_n asia_n bohemia_n etc._n etc._n there_o p._n 113.115.116.133_o they_o shall_v find_v something_o to_o this_o purpose_n but_o chief_a pag._n 132._o where_o out_o of_o crusius_n he_o set_v down_o a_o sum_n of_o that_o censure_n in_o these_o few_o proposition_n first_o the_o patriarch_n labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v only_o from_o the_o father_n 2._o he_o attribute_n too_o much_o to_o freewill_n 3._o he_o hold_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n hope_v and_o charity_n 4._o he_o allow_v seven_o sacrament_n 5._o he_o invocate_v saint_n decease_v and_o mary_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o adore_v their_o sacred_a image_n not_o with_o latria_n for_o that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o but_o coniunctive_o that_o be_v not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n but_o of_o the_o saint_n represent_v by_o the_o matter_n and_o with_o a_o amicable_a affection_n declare_v the_o veneration_n and_o honour_v due_a to_o the_o saint_n 6._o he_o defend_v monastical_a institute_n as_o a_o angelical_a profession_n 7._o he_o take_v his_o proof_n out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o counsel_n 8._o he_o invit_v we_o courteoussy_a to_o agree_v with_o they_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a censure_n relate_v by_o crusius_n which_o if_o any_o one_o with_o we_o please_v to_o read_v at_o large_a throughout_o he_o shall_v find_v more_o and_o great_a argument_n to_o condemn_v the_o new_a faith_n and_o especial_o these_o word_n which_o the_o patriarch_n add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n we_o have_v resolve_v absolute_o to_o be_v silent_a and_o give_v no_o answer_n to_o these_o your_o writing_n which_o so_o manifest_o wrest_v both_o the_o scripture_n &_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n to_o your_o fancy_n since_o we_o have_v this_o exhortation_n from_o paul_n avoid_v a_o heretic_n after_o the_o first_o and_o second_o admonition_n but_o because_o with_o our_o silence_n we_o may_v seem_v to_o assent_v unto_o you_o as_o if_o you_o do_v understand_v and_o believe_v a_o right_n and_o that_o you_o have_v the_o scripture_n and_o holy_a father_n on_o your_o side_n we_o have_v think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o these_o thing_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n albeit_o we_o be_v full_o satisfy_v out_o of_o your_o writing_n that_o you_o can_v never_o accord_v with_o we_o or_o rather_o with_o truth_n and_o in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o answer_n pag._n 370._o wherefore_o we_o desire_v you_o not_o to_o trouble_v we_o
hereafter_o nor_o to_o write_v nor_o send_v to_o we_o any_o writing_n concern_v these_o thing_n for_o you_o treat_v the_o divine_n which_o be_v light_n of_o the_o church_n otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a you_o honour_v and_o extol_v they_o in_o word_n but_o with_o your_o deed_n reject_v they_o seek_v to_o wrest_v out_o of_o our_o hand_n their_o holy_a and_o divine_a word_n with_o we_o may_v use_v to_o confute_v you_o wherefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v we_o you_o have_v free_v we_o from_o care_n and_o therefore_o go_v on_o in_o your_o own_o way_n write_v no_o more_o to_o we_o of_o your_o doctrine_n but_o only_o for_o friendship_n sake_n if_o you_o please_v all_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o justus_n caluinus_n relate_v out_o of_o the_o censure_n or_o epistle_n of_o hieremy_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o chytraeus_n and_o crusius_n two_o chief_a protestant_n of_o germany_n where_o justus_n caluinus_n live_v &_o write_v chytraeus_n and_o crusius_n be_v then_o live_v who_o may_v and_o will_v have_v tax_v he_o of_o falsehood_n if_o he_o have_v misalleage_v they_o wherefore_o i_o can_v sufficient_o admire_v your_o boldness_n who_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o grecian_n accord_n in_o doctrine_n with_o protestant_n and_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n dare_v adventure_n to_o allege_v this_o censure_n of_o the_o patriarch_n out_o of_o which_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_a not_o only_o by_o the_o catholic_a edition_n but_o even_o by_o that_o of_o wittenberg_n and_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o chyrtraeus_n and_o crusius_n that_o the_o greek_n in_o very_a few_o point_n of_o those_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o protestant_n and_o we_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o they_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n as_o heretical_a &_o avoid_v they_o as_o heretic_n for_o so_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o patriarch_n call_v they_o but_o yet_o as_o justus_n caluinus_n fin_fw-fr caluinus_n pag._n 1●_n fin_fw-fr right_o observe_v the_o accordance_n of_o the_o greek_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o so_o many_o chief_a head_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o excuse_v they_o from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o other_o error_n their_o obstinate_a deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n be_v alone_o sufficient_a to_o make_v they_o absolute_a schismatics_n and_o heretic_n incapable_a of_o salvation_n as_o s._n athanasius_n have_v express_o declare_v in_o his_o creed_n you_o therefore_o have_v tell_v a_o most_o solemn_a untruth_n in_o say_v 330._o say_v pag._n 330._o that_o the_o greek_n which_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o ruinate_v any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o save_v truth_n sect_n iii_o a_o particular_a instance_n of_o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n produce_v by_o doctor_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n examine_v for_o the_o corroboration_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n you_o produce_v 387._o produce_v pag._n 387._o ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n as_o a_o especial_a pattern_n of_o disobedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o case_n be_v this_o the_o people_n of_o bulgaria_n have_v send_v for_o preacher_n to_o rome_n and_o be_v instruct_v by_o they_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n submit_v themselves_o voluntary_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n be_v govern_v immediate_o by_o he_o as_o part_v of_o his_o roman_a diocese_n 13._o diocese_n spond_n anno_o 869._o n._n 13._o nevertheless_o because_o the_o grecian_n challenge_v the_o temporal_a state_n of_o that_o province_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n ignatius_n suppose_v the_o spiritualty_n of_o it_o to_o belong_v in_o right_a to_o his_o diocese_n usurp_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o consecrate_v a_o bishop_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n send_v he_o thither_o with_o other_o priest_n for_o which_o he_o be_v check_v by_o adrian_n pope_n 1._o pope_n spond_n anno_o 871._o n._n 1._o and_o afterward_o excommunicate_v by_o john_n the_o eight_o if_o within_o thirty_o day_n after_o notification_n of_o the_o sentence_n unto_o he_o he_o do_v not_o desist_v from_o that_o usurpation_n he_o die_v before_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o sentence_n at_o constantinople_n 8._o constantinople_n spond_n anno_o 878._o n._n 1._o &_o 8._o which_o if_o he_o have_v receive_v before_o his_o death_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o he_o will_v have_v surcease_v from_o that_o claim_n which_o he_o make_v not_o out_o of_o any_o desire_n or_o intention_n of_o oppose_v the_o see_v apostolic_a who_o authority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n he_o acknowledge_v both_o in_o appeal_n to_o it_o against_o photius_n who_o have_v intrude_v himself_o into_o his_o church_n and_o also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o nicolas_n pope_n 3._o pope_n extat_fw-la ep._n in_o syn._n 8._o act._n 3._o and_o final_o that_o he_o always_o live_v &_o die_v in_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n appear_v by_o diverse_a letter_n of_o john_n the_o eight_o write_v after_o his_o death_n 8._o death_n spond_n anno_o 878_o n._n 8._o his_o example_n therefore_o can_v be_v no_o help_n to_o your_o cause_n sect_n iv_o the_o egyptian_n aethiopian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n african_n and_o asian_o which_o call_n themselves_o christian_n and_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v absolute_a heretic_n the_o egyptian_n and_o aethiopian_n that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n embrace_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n which_o hold_v but_o one_o nature_n one_o will_n and_o operation_n in_o christ_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n anathematise_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n twelve_o hundred_o year_n since_o and_o they_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n still_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o error_n in_o so_o much_o that_o when_o of_o late_a year_n go●saluus_fw-la rodericius_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n be_v send_v into_o aethiopia_n 49._o aethiopia_n pran_n sachin_n hist_o soc._n jesu_n l._n 1._o n._n 49._o to_o prepare_v the_o way_n for_o joannes_n nunnez_fw-fr who_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v send_v thither_o honour_v with_o the_o title_n and_o dignity_n of_o patriarch_n claudius_n then_o king_n of_o aethiopia_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o patriarch_n from_o rome_n have_v in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o govern_v the_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n itself_o moreover_o that_o he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n approve_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n nor_o allow_v of_o leo_n pope_n and_o that_o dioscorus_n have_v do_v well_o in_o excommunicate_v he_o final_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o aethiopian_n and_o egyptian_n in_o this_o particular_a error_n of_o eutyches_n be_v the_o sole_a cause_n of_o their_o continuance_n in_o schism_n and_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o as_o cardinal_n peron_n 63._o peron_n repliq._n chap._n 63._o answer_v our_o late_a sovereign_a k._n james_n they_o have_v often_o offer_v and_o be_v all_o ready_a at_o this_o day_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o his_o communion_n without_o oblige_v themselves_o to_o anathematise_v eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n the_o armenian_n which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n &_o communion_n be_v guilty_a of_o many_o heresy_n they_o acknowledge_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o christ_n with_o the_o eutychian_o they_o deny_v his_o divinity_n with_o the_o arian_n they_o affirm_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n alone_o with_o the_o grecian_n they_o rebaptize_v they_o that_o have_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o donatist_n and_o final_o they_o hold_v many_o other_o gross_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n relate_v by_o prateolus_n 67._o prateolus_n l._n 1_o tit_n 67._o out_o of_o guido_n carmelita_n and_o nicephorus_n calixtus_n who_o therefore_o right_o term_v they_o a_o sink_n of_o all_o heresy_n the_o russian_n agree_v with_o the_o grecian_n in_o deni_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n so_o have_v confess_v your_o minister_n thomas_n rogers_n 25._o rogers_n art_n 3._o propos_fw-fr 3._o pag._n 25._o moreover_o they_o defend_v other_o heretical_a tenet_n to_o the_o number_n of_o 40._o relate_v by_o joannes_n sacranius_n rhuten_n sacranius_n elucid_n error_n &_o rit_n rhuten_n and_o prateolus_n 4._o prateolus_n l._n 6._o tit_n 4._o whereunto_o i_o add_v that_o stanislaus_n socolovius_fw-la in_o the_o attendance_n of_o the_o king_n of_o polonia_n who_o divine_a he_o be_v visit_v those_o northern_a country_n and_o come_v to_o leopolis_n the_o metropolitan_a city_n of_o russia_n report_v of_o it_o orient_n it_o praefat._n censura_fw-la orient_n that_o although_o it_o have_v
embrace_v many_o other_o error_n yet_o it_o deserve_v this_o singular_a praise_n that_o by_o the_o special_a gift_n of_o god_n it_o have_v keep_v itself_o free_a from_o the_o heresy_n of_o this_o age_n and_o with_o great_a care_n &_o diligence_n make_v resistance_n unto_o they_o and_o how_o far_o the_o russian_n even_o those_o which_o be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v from_o allow_v your_o protestant_a doctrine_n you_o may_v learn_v from_o m._n grimston_n who_o in_o his_o description_n of_o country_n 698._o country_n pag._n 697._o 698._o write_v that_o the_o russian_n have_v the_o mass_n that_o they_o pray_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n &_o the_o saint_n and_o keep_v their_o body_n with_o great_a reverence_n that_o they_o never_o pass_v by_o any_o cross_n but_o they_o kneel_v down_o &_o pray_v that_o they_o often_o bless_v themselves_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o they_o have_v many_o monastery_n of_o monk_n of_o s._n basils_n order_n who_o in_o their_o quire_n in_o the_o night_n sing_v praise_n to_o god_n that_o they_o use_v the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n and_o receive_v absolution_n and_o penance_n that_o they_o keep_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o their_o church_n in_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o sick_a and_o in_o that_o kind_n alone_o administer_v it_o unto_o they_o that_o they_o say_v mass_n for_o the_o faithful_a decease_a and_o not_o to_o conceal_v what_o other_o protestant_n write_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o russian_n and_o all_o the_o other_o nation_n which_o you_o affirm_v to_o be_v of_o your_o belief_n and_o communion_n osiander_n 970._o osiander_n epit._n centur._n 16._o pag._n 970._o speak_v of_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n ingenuous_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v not_o sincere_a religion_n but_o be_v in_o most_o part_n of_o their_o article_n popish_a doctor_n philippus_n nicolai_n testify_v 22._o testify_v l._n 1._o de_fw-la regno_fw-la christ._n pag._n 22._o that_o not_o only_o the_o greek_a church_n but_o also_o the_o ruthen_n georgian_n armenian_n indian_n aethiopian_n that_o acknowledge_v christ_n hold_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o speak_v of_o the_o armenian_n in_o particular_a he_o reckon_v 35._o reckon_v pag._n 35._o among_o their_o error_n invocation_n and_o intercession_n of_o saint_n and_o oblation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o indian_n he_o say_v 45.46_o say_v ibid._n pag._n 45.46_o that_o they_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n prepare_v themselves_o unto_o it_o by_o confession_n of_o their_o sin_n that_o at_o their_o entrance_n into_o the_o church_n they_o sprinkle_v themselves_o with_o holy_a water_n as_o the_o papist_n do_v that_o they_o pray_v for_o their_o dead_a &_o bury_v they_o with_o the_o same_o ceremony_n the_o papist_n use_n that_o their_o priest_n shave_v their_o crown_n that_o they_o observe_v strict_o the_o fast_n of_o the_o four_o ember_n week_n as_o also_o of_o advent_a &_o lend_v and_o that_o they_o have_v monk_n and_o sacred_a virgin_n recluse_v in_o several_a monastery_n where_o with_o great_a religion_n they_o strict_o observe_v abstinence_n and_o chastity_n these_o doctrine_n though_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a yet_o protestant_n reject_v they_o as_o false_a and_o superstitious_a and_o yourself_o in_o particular_a censure_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o idolatrous_a 403._o idolatrous_a pag._n 403._o not_o blush_v to_o compare_v christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o idol_n moloch_n and_o call_v our_o adoration_n of_o he_o the_o adoration_n of_o our_o romish_a moloch_n in_o the_o mass_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o albeit_o you_o condemn_v these_o doctrine_n in_o we_o as_o heretical_a and_o idolatrous_a yet_o you_o be_v content_v to_o allow_v they_o in_o the_o russian_n and_o other_o nation_n which_o you_o claim_v to_o be_v of_o your_o communion_n and_o to_o canonize_v their_o blasphemous_a error_n against_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o other_o their_o impious_a heresy_n for_o orthodox_n doctrine_n and_o to_o tell_v your_o reader_n that_o the_o russian_n aethiopian_n and_o other_o nation_n which_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v christian_n &_o diffent_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_o profess_v christian_n part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o accordance_n of_o communion_n with_o protestant_n of_o the_o melchites_n your_o historian_n m._n grimston_n in_o like_a manner_n report_v 1051._o report_v pag._n 1051._o that_o they_o hold_v all_o the_o error_n which_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o that_o there_o be_v also_o nestorian_n among_o they_o and_o this_o show_v how_o untrue_o 341.406.407.409_o untrue_o pag._n 341.406.407.409_o you_o affirm_v that_o the_o asian_o and_o atricans_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o fundamental_a error_n for_o the_o egyptian_n aethiopian_n melchites_n and_o armenian_n what_o be_v they_o but_o asian_o or_o african_n and_o so_o likewise_o be_v the_o jacobite_n of_o who_o m._n grimston_n report_v 1052._o report_v pag._n 1052._o that_o they_o follow_v the_o heresy_n of_o dioscorus_n and_o eutiche_n of_o the_o persian_n he_o likewise_o write_v 797._o write_v pag._n 797._o that_o among_o they_o there_o be_v nestorian_n and_o of_o the_o tartarian_n that_o they_o follow_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n and_o hold_v he_o for_o a_o saint_n as_o also_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la theodorus_n of_o mopsuestia_n and_o diodorus_n tharsensis_fw-la and_o that_o they_o condemn_v s._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n and_o reject_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o all_o these_o be_v to_o you_o good_a christian_n and_o member_n of_o your_o protestant_a church_n but_o among_o all_o the_o untruth_n which_o you_o have_v utter_v in_o your_o discourse_n of_o the_o church_n of_o remote_a nation_n there_o be_v none_o more_o remarkable_a then_o that_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_n which_o in_o those_o nation_n be_v not_o of_o the_o roman_a communion_n you_o say_v 336._o say_v pag._n 336._o that_o in_o our_o own_o judgment_n they_o be_v not_o heretic_n except_v for_o the_o deny_v of_o this_o false_a romish_a article_n of_o necessary_a subjection_n and_o union_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o enlarge_a this_o untruth_n you_o add_v 340.341_o add_v pag._n 340.341_o that_o we_o dare_v not_o direct_o charge_v they_o with_o heresy_n and_o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o among_o they_o chargeable_a for_o any_o fundament_n all_o heresy_n for_o to_o omit_v the_o error_n of_o the_o grecian_n deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n which_o if_o you_o believe_v the_o creed_n of_o s._n athanasius_n make_v they_o incapable_a of_o salvation_n the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutiche_n against_o christ_n be_v against_o the_o most_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o s._n paul_n say_v 3.10_o say_v 1._o cor._n 3.10_o none_o can_v lay_v any_o other_o foundation_n beside_o christ._n and_o s._n 7._o s._n 2._o joan._n 7._o if_o any_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n income_n in_o flesh_n he_o be_v a_o seducer_n and_o antichrist_n and_o again_o 12._o again_o ibid._n vers_fw-la 10._o &_o 12._o if_o any_o one_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n receive_v he_o not_o into_o your_o house_n and_o say_v not_o to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o for_o whosoever_o say_v to_o he_o well_o be_v it_o with_o thou_o communicat_o in_o his_o wicked_a work_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o the_o heretic_n of_o remote_a natio_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v err_v fundamental_o if_o any_o error_n can_v be_v fundamental_a and_o that_o as_o you_o by_o profess_v yourself_o to_o accord_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v of_o their_o spirit_n and_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o they_o be_v so_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o roman_a church_n by_o exclude_v they_o and_o you_o from_o her_o communion_n she_o w_v herself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n and_o of_o the_o same_o belief_n with_o the_o holy_a counsel_n of_o constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n in_o which_o those_o heretic_n be_v anathematise_v and_o condemn_v chap._n xlii_o doctor_n mortons_n plea_n for_o his_o protestant_a church_n as_o profuse_a as_o you_o have_v be_v in_o your_o invective_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o brief_a and_o succinct_a you_o be_v in_o set_v forth_o your_o protestant_a congregation_n which_o afford_v you_o so_o little_a matter_n of_o discourse_n that_o come_v to_o treat_v profess_o of_o she_o 341._o she_o pag._n 341._o you_o confine_v her_o praise_n to_o less_o than_o a_o small_a leaf_n of_o paper_n you_o commend_v she_o for_o four_o thing_n for_o great_a extent_n for_o the_o purity_n of_o her_o doctrine_n for_o her_o freedom_n from_o vice_n and_o from_o schism_n sect_n i._o
the_o small_a extent_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n prove_v she_o not_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n when_o first_o you_o begin_v to_o appear_v in_o the_o world_n luther_n complain_v 497._o complain_v pref._n in_o 1._o tom_n &_o cont_n reg._n augl_n fol._n 497._o that_o he_o be_v alone_o that_o he_o alone_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n forsake_v of_o all_o and_o holpen_v by_o none_o the_o centurist_n hist._n centurist_n sleid._n praef_n hist._n confess_v that_o your_o beginning_n be_v slender_a and_o almost_o contemptible_a luther_n bear_v the_o brunt_n of_o all_o the_o world_n then_o you_o boast_v yourselves_o to_o be_v the_o pusillus_n grex_n which_o christ_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o gospel_n 12.31_o gospel_n luc._n 12.31_o but_o now_o luther_n brood_n be_v increase_v partly_o by_o his_o disciple_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o accession_n of_o many_o new_a sect_n spring_v from_o he_o &_o know_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n according_a to_o her_o name_n must_v be_v universal_o spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n whersoever_o christ_n be_v acknowledge_v you_o have_v think_v best_a to_o lay_v claim_n to_o all_o those_o sectary_n and_o to_o shake_v hand_n with_o ancient_a heretic_n that_o you_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v a_o church_n of_o large_a extent_n if_o as_o bellarmine_n apolog._n bellarmine_n cap._n 14._o apolog._n advertise_v our_o late_a sovereign_n you_o draw_v into_o your_o church_n all_o the_o nestorian_n eutychian_o and_o other_o heretic_n of_o the_o east_n and_o south_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v if_o all_o the_o hussites_n lutheran_n zwinglian_n suinkfeldians_n anabaptist_n confessionist_n caluinist_n brownist_n familians_n arian_n samosaten_v and_o many_o other_o sect_n with_o be_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o province_n of_o europe_n by_o you_o name_v 341._o name_v pag._n 341._o they_o will_v i_o confess_v make_v a_o great_a rabble_n of_o sectary_n that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v one_o church_n that_o they_o anathematise_v and_o damn_v each_o other_o to_o the_o very_a pit_n of_o hell_n 7.8.9.10_o hell_n see_v coccius_n to_o 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 7.8.9.10_o again_o these_o sect_n be_v confine_v some_o to_o one_o and_o all_o which_o here_o you_o claim_v as_o part_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n to_o a_o few_o province_n of_o europe_n and_o yet_o those_o not_o whole_o they_o none_o of_o they_o nor_o all_o of_o they_o together_o can_v be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o she_o say_v s._n augustine_n 1._o augustine_n ep._n 170._o add_v sever_v &_o cont_n gaud._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d secundum_fw-la totum_fw-la that_o be_v diffuse_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o well_o where_o these_o sect_n be_v as_o where_o they_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n say_v he_o 104._o he_o cont_n lit._n petil._n l._n 2._o c._n 104._o have_v this_o certain_a mark_n that_o she_o be_v know_v to_o all_o nation_n the_o sect_n of_o donatus_n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n and_o therefore_o that_o can_v be_v she_o so_o likewise_o the_o sect_n of_o luther_n of_o caluin_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v unknown_a to_o many_o nation_n and_o therefore_o no_o one_o of_o they_o nor_o all_o of_o they_o together_o can_v be_v she_o by_o this_o argument_n optatus_n prove_v the_o donatist_n and_o by_o the_o same_o we_o prove_v protestant_n not_o to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n because_o she_o be_v not_o only_o in_o a_o corner_n of_o africa_n or_o in_o a_o few_o province_n of_o europe_n where_o they_o be_v but_o in_o many_o other_o place_n of_o the_o world_n where_o they_o be_v not_o which_o passage_n of_o optatus_n therefore_o i_o know_v not_o to_o what_o end_v you_o allege_v 342._o allege_v pag._n 342._o unless_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v your_o church_n to_o be_v a_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n the_o same_o argument_n s._n augustine_n use_v 20._o use_v de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 20._o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o denine_a and_o most_o certain_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v design_v to_o be_v in_o all_o nation_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o be_v allege_v unto_o we_o by_o they_o that_o say_v here_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v christ_n if_o we_o be_v his_o sheep_n we_o must_v rather_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o our_o shepherd_n who_o say_v believe_v they_o not_o for_o these_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o many_o place_n where_o she_o be_v and_o she_o who_o be_v every_o where_o be_v also_o whersoever_o they_o be_v this_o therefore_o evident_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n for_o she_o be_v not_o only_o in_o england_n scotland_n denmark_n norway_n swedland_n in_o a_o part_n of_o germany_n polonia_n bohemia_n hungaria_n france_n helvetia_n and_o ireland_n which_o be_v all_o the_o province_n you_o cold_a name_n for_o the_o extent_n of_o your_o church_n but_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n where_o you_o have_v no_o foot_n for_o her_o communion_n have_v place_n either_o whole_o or_o in_o part_n in_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n indies_n in_o the_o philippines_n in_o japonia_n in_o china_n in_o persia_n in_o all_o the_o island_n of_o the_o ocean_n and_o medeterranean_a and_o in_o many_o of_o the_o south_n sea_n in_o greece_n egypt_n in_o aechiopia_n armenia_n assyria_n and_o final_o in_o all_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o world_n whersoever_o the_o christian_a name_n be_v acknowledge_v and_o until_o you_o can_v show_v your_o protestant_a congregation_n to_o have_v the_o same_o extent_n you_o must_v confess_v that_o she_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o universal_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o therefore_o not_o the_o catholic_a church_n whosoever_o say_v s._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n ibid._n c._n 4._o do_v so_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o their_o communion_n be_v not_o with_o the_o whole_a whersoever_o diffuse_v but_o with_o themselves_o several_o in_o some_o part_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n in_o doctrine_n to_o prove_v that_o your_o church_n be_v free_a from_o error_n in_o doctrine_n you_o say_v 342._o say_v pag._n 342._o the_o great_a error_n you_o can_v impute_v unto_o protestant_n be_v that_o they_o for_o their_o faith_n immediate_o depend_v upon_o christ_n jesus_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o these_o word_n you_o seem_v tacit_o to_o insinuate_v that_o we_o depend_v not_o immediate_o upon_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v a_o untruth_n that_o need_v no_o refutation_n we_o impute_v not_o that_o to_o you_o as_o your_o great_a error_n nor_o as_o any_o error_n at_o all_o we_o steadfast_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a principal_a immediate_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o we_o impute_v to_o you_o as_o a_o error_n in_o faith_n that_o you_o believe_v not_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o lieutenant_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o under_o he_o the_o secondary_a and_o ministerial_a head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o this_o be_v not_o your_o only_a error_n in_o faith_n for_o you_o hold_v many_o other_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n as_o with_o simon_n magus_n that_o only_a faith_n justifi_v with_o acrius_fw-la you_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o jovinian_a you_o equal_v marriage_n with_o virginity_n yea_o and_o prefer_v it_o surpass_v he_o therein_o with_o virgilantius_n you_o deny_v invocation_n of_o saint_n &_o all_o religious_a veneration_n of_o their_o relic_n with_o manichaeus_n you_o deny_v freewill_n with_o the_o iconoclast_n you_o pull_v down_o and_o break_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n and_o deny_v that_o honour_n be_v to_o be_v exhibit_v unto_o they_o with_o berengarius_fw-la you_o deny_v transubstantiation_n all_o these_o to_o omit_v that_o you_o reject_v five_o of_o the_o sacrament_n &_o race_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n diverse_a canonical_a book_n be_v heresy_n ancient_o condemn_v and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o s._n augustine_n say_v fin_fw-fr say_v de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la fin_fw-fr that_o whosoever_o hold_v any_o one_o heresy_n be_v not_o a_o catholic_a christian_a and_o s._n athanasius_n symbolo_fw-la athanasius_n in_o symbolo_fw-la that_o whosoever_o hold_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n entire_a and_o inviolate_a can_v be_v save_v what_o may_v we_o think_v of_o they_o that_o hold_v so_o many_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a heresy_n or_o what_o christian_a hart_n can_v forbear_v to_o compassionate_v their_o estate_n sect_n iii_o doctor_n mortons_n pretend_a purity_n of_o manner_n in_o his_o protestant_a church_n to_o prove_v that_o
he_o and_o to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n humble_o crave_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o communion_n and_o to_o declare_v themselves_o free_a from_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n with_o which_o they_o have_v be_v charge_v protest_a that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v otherwise_o than_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n do_v and_o that_o they_o have_v hold_v former_o do_v still_o hold_v and_o will_v ever_o hold_v till_o their_o last_o breath_n the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o whereupon_o liberius_n willing_o admit_v they_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o address_v a_o letter_n to_o fifty_o nine_o of_o they_o by_o name_n and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o general_a express_v the_o great_a joy_n he_o conceive_v to_o understand_v that_o they_o have_v always_o agree_v in_o faith_n with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o all_o the_o other_o western_a country_n for_o so_o be_v his_o word_n this_o be_v the_o story_n true_o set_v down_o what_o relief_n do_v you_o find_v here_o for_o your_o invisible_a church_n since_o in_o the_o very_a height_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n which_o be_v the_o great_a wain_n you_o can_v sinde_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n she_o abound_v and_o shine_v like_o a_o sun_n most_o glorious_o with_o orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n show_v we_o such_o a_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n or_o else_o confess_v the_o truth_n that_o you_o have_v no_o church_n before_o luther_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o 369._o we_o pag_n 369._o with_o how_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o obscurity_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v cover_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n &_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o rhemist_n who_o make_v whole_o against_o you_o for_o albeit_o they_o grant_v that_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o public_a seat_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o public_a exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a function_n nor_o public_a intercourse_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v not_o this_o day_n in_o cyprus_n nor_o in_o england_n yet_o there_o shall_v not_o want_v orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n remain_v in_o due_a obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o communicate_v with_o she_o not_o only_o in_o hart_n but_o practise_v the_o same_o in_o secret_a and_o make_v public_a profession_n thereof_o of_o if_o occasion_n require_v it_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rhemist_n and_o of_o all_o catholic_a writer_n wherefore_o as_o catholic_n be_v not_o in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n invisible_a nor_o yet_o so_o obscure_a but_o that_o their_o constaney_n be_v know_v and_o renown_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o likewise_o shall_v the_o faithful_a be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n nor_o do_v costerus_n ribera_n pererius_n acosta_n viegas_n or_o any_o of_o the_o father_n which_o you_o object_n 370._o object_n pag._n 370._o teach_v aught_o to_o the_o contrary_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n hilary_n which_o you_o object_n 3●8_n object_n pag._n 3●8_n s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v long_o since_o 48._o since_o ep._n 48._o for_o it_o be_v object_v to_o he_o by_o vincentius_n the_o rogatist_n of_o who_o spirit_n and_o belief_n you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v urge_v against_o we_o the_o same_o testimony_n he_o urge_v against_o s._n augustine_n who_o not_o only_o in_o that_o place_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v teach_v that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o as_o it_o be_v shadow_v with_o cloud_n by_o the_o multitude_n of_o scandal_n that_o be_v persecution_n when_o sinner_n bend_v their_o bow_n to_o wound_v she_o in_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o moon_n yet_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o constant_a professor_n but_o also_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n 8._o god_n l._n 20._o c._n 8._o speak_v profess_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n he_o say_v she_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o obscure_v that_o either_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o find_v she_o or_o when_o he_o have_v find_v she_o be_v able_a with_o his_o persecution_n to_o overthrow_v she_o but_o that_o even_o then_o faithful_a parent_n shall_v with_o great_a devotion_n procure_v baptism_n for_o their_o child_n &_o that_o as_o many_o shall_v fall_v from_o the_o church_n so_o other_o shall_v stand_v constant_a and_o other_o shall_v enter_v a_o new_a which_o before_o be_v out_o of_o she_o and_o in_o particular_a the_o jew_n who_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o christ_n 29._o christ_n s._n aug._n ibid._n c._n 29._o and_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o s._n gregory_n ezechiel_n gregory_n hom._n 12._o in_o ezechiel_n who_o you_o mis-cite_a 370._o mis-cite_a pag._n 370._o for_o the_o word_n you_o object_n out_o of_o his_o moral_n on_o job_n be_v not_o there_o to_o be_v find_v sect_n iu._n what_o cause_n may_v suffice_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n your_o five_o thesis_n be_v 370._o be_v pag._n 370._o all_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v for_o every_o unsoundnesse_n in_o either_o manner_n worship_n or_o doctrine_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o thesis_n we_o agree_v with_o you_o but_o you_o agree_v not_o with_o yourself_o for_o before_o you_o tell_v we_o 11.12_o we_o pag._n 11.12_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o every_o part_n perfect_a and_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n but_o here_o you_o say_v 371._o say_v pag_n 371._o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v find_v any_o one_o example_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n it_o scarce_o any_o particular_a church_n can_v be_v find_v consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n how_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n for_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n again_o here_o you_o inveigh_v against_o the_o separatist_n for_o divide_v themselves_o from_o you_o for_o only_a scandal_n take_v at_o the_o wicked_a life_n of_o your_o professor_n may_v not_o we_o then_o just_o except_o against_o you_o for_o object_v so_o often_o the_o vice_n of_o some_o few_o pope_n to_o make_v your_o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n more_o justifiable_a the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n be_v false_a for_o no_o worship_n no_o rite_n or_o ceremony_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n allow_v or_o permit_v to_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o in_o any_o part_n of_o their_o service_n be_v unsound_a and_o therefore_o as_o such_o difference_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n for_o one_o particular_a church_n to_o separate_v itself_o from_o other_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o a_o particular_a church_n use_v any_o ecclesiastical_a observation_n or_o ceremony_n disallow_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n that_o worship_n be_v unsound_a and_o such_o a_o church_n be_v schismatical_a and_o to_o be_v forsake_v and_o if_o it_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o that_o schism_n become_v heretical_a so_o many_o of_o the_o asian_a church_n persist_v obstinate_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o jewish_a custom_n after_o the_o prohibition_n of_o pius_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v just_o condemn_v and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o victor_n a_o boly_n pope_n and_o martyr_n and_o his_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o many_o other_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o observer_n of_o that_o custom_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v judge_v heretic_n and_o register_v as_o such_o under_o the_o name_n of_o quartadecimani_fw-la by_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o have_v make_v catalogue_n of_o heresy_n the_o three_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n that_o all_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v in_o some_o point_n as_o the_o corinthian_n do_v in_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o galatian_n in_o teach_v a_o necessary_a observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n together_o with_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o s._n paul_n 1.2_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 1.2_o galat._n 1.2_o call_v they_o both_o church_n and_o church_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v reform_v and_o be_v admonish_v of_o their_o error_n to_o abandon_v it_o and_o obey_v the_o truth_n but_o not_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v and_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o truth_n sufficient_o propose_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a all_o this_o you_o allow_v as_o true_a doctrine_n take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n what_o
peter_n cardinal_z albert_n b._n of_o mentz_n and_o the_o marquis_n of_o brandeburg_n to_o who_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o indulgence_n and_o collect_v the_o alm_n be_v commit_v for_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o indulgence_n make_v choice_n of_o tetzelius_n a_o famous_a preacher_n of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n dominick_n whereat_o the_o friar_n of_o s._n augustine_n order_n and_o especial_o staupitius_n the_o vicar_n general_a and_o martin_n luther_n be_v offend_v oppose_v themselves_o hope_v by_o favour_n of_o frederick_n duke_n of_o saxony_n to_o get_v the_o place_n for_o themselves_o but_o miss_v of_o that_o they_o begin_v to_o reprehend_v the_o abuse_n commit_v as_o they_o pretend_v in_o the_o promulgation_n of_o those_o indulgence_n but_o luther_n be_v of_o a_o fiery_a nature_n and_o of_o a_o contention_n spirit_n rest_v not_o here_o but_o publish_v in_o print_n 95._o proposition_n about_o the_o nature_n institution_n end_n and_o effect_n of_o indulgence_n diverse_a of_o which_o be_v censure_v by_o tetzelius_n as_o heretical_a and_o luther_n thereupon_o complain_v of_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o cite_v to_o appear_v at_o rome_n but_o by_o mediation_n of_o friend_n which_o he_o procure_v the_o hear_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v remit_v to_o cardinal_n caietan_n who_o be_v then_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o germany_n luther_n appear_v before_o he_o and_o give_v up_o a_o protestation_n of_o his_o submission_n promise_v to_o follow_v the_o holy_a roman_a church_n in_o all_o her_o say_n and_o do_n present_a past_a and_o to_o come_v but_o nevertheless_o be_v get_v from_o the_o cardinal_n he_o go_v forward_o in_o his_o former_a contention_n and_o beside_o a_o public_a disputation_n which_o he_o hold_v with_o eckius_fw-la at_o lipsia_n against_o indulgence_n he_o diwlge_v many_o other_o scoff_a pamplet_n &_o treatise_n to_o call_v in_o doubt_n and_o bring_v in_o contempt_n diverse_a other_o point_n of_o religion_n from_o whence_o have_v follow_v all_o the_o calamity_n that_o in_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v ensue_v since_o that_o time_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o occasion_n these_o the_o beginning_n of_o luther_n revolt_n proceed_v mere_o from_o his_o covetousness_n pride_n envy_n and_o grudge_v that_o the_o promulgation_n of_o those_o indulgence_n be_v not_o commit_v to_o he_o and_o his_o order_n for_o he_o protest_v afterward_o at_o that_o time_n he_o neither_o intend_v nor_o dream_v of_o any_o change_n but_o fall_v into_o those_o contention_n casual_o and_o against_o his_o will_n not_o well_o know_v then_o what_o indulgence_n mean_v 1._o mean_v see_v brerel_n luther_n life_n chap._n 1._o sect_n 1._o now_o you_o come_v in_o to_o act_v your_o part_n init_fw-la part_n pag._n 381._o fin_n 382._o init_fw-la and_o promise_v to_o prove_v by_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n the_o falsehood_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n concern_v indulgence_n and_o the_o iniquity_n of_o his_o practice_n heap_v up_o riches_n by_o they_o and_o first_o you_o except_v against_o the_o pope_n 383._o pope_n pag_n 383._o for_o condemn_v this_o proposition_n of_o luther_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n this_o have_v be_v alleady_o answer_v 4._o answer_v see_v above_o chap._n 4._o and_o declare_v what_o power_n the_o church_n have_v or_o have_v not_o herein_o 2._o to_o prone_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n be_v a_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n you_o produce_v many_o author_n 389._o author_n pag._n 382._o 383._o 384._o 385._o 386._o 389._o which_o may_v be_v reduce_v to_o three_o class_n the_o first_o be_v of_o heretic_n as_o cornelius_n agrippa_n a_o magician_n paul_n a_o venetian_a friar_n condemn_v a_o few_o year_n since_o for_o heresy_n fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetendarum_fw-la acta_fw-la concilij_fw-la tridentini_n controversiae_fw-la memorabiles_fw-la all_o of_o they_o be_v treatise_n of_o protestant_n set_v forth_o without_o name_n of_o their_o author_n and_o prohibit_v to_o these_o you_o add_v thuanus_n 385._o thuanus_n pag._n 385._o who_o you_o call_v our_o noble_a historian_n but_o we_o bequeath_v he_o to_o you_o as_o one_o who_o writing_n show_v he_o to_o be_v you_o nor_o be_v you_o content_v to_o cite_v he_o as_o a_o catholic_a author_n but_o falsify_v he_o he_o rail_v against_o pope_n leo_n for_o ordain_v that_o when_o a_o bishopric_n or_o abbacy_n in_o france_n be_v vacant_a for_o the_o avoid_v of_o simony_n and_o other_o inconueniencet_n a_o person_n fit_a for_o those_o dignity_n be_v present_v by_o the_o king_n &_o ordain_v by_o the_o pope_n his_o word_n in_o latin_a as_o you_o cite_v they_o be_v peccatum_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la muneribus_fw-la dispensandis_fw-la leo_fw-la mox_fw-la graviore_fw-la cumulavit_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o which_o word_n he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o indulgence_n but_o only_o of_o confer_v sacred_a or_o ecclesiastical_a dignity_n and_o office_n but_o you_o to_o make_v they_o serve_v your_o turn_n against_o indulgence_n corrupt_v they_o translate_n in_o sacris_fw-la muneribus_fw-la dispensandis_fw-la thus_o of_o ill_o disperse_v indulgence_n leo_fw-la say_v you_o to_o his_o sin_n of_o ill_o disperse_v indulgence_n add_v a_o far_o great_a be_v not_o this_o a_o great_a imposture_n and_o the_o like_v you_o commit_v again_o 389._o again_o pag._n 389._o when_o speak_v of_o luther_n separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n you_o say_v luther_n be_v a_o passive_a therein_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o proceed_n of_o pope_n leo_n against_o he_o else_o why_o be_v it_o that_o your_o own_o thuanus_n speak_v of_o this_o separation_n say_v that_o some_o in_o those_o day_n lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o pope_n leo._n this_o be_v a_o great_a imposture_n than_o the_o former_a for_o thuanus_n speak_v not_o those_o word_n of_o luther_n separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o against_o alter_v the_o custom_n former_o observe_v in_o the_o election_n of_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n in_o france_n which_o he_o attribute_v to_o antonius_n pratensis_n chancellor_n of_o that_o kingdom_n though_o out_o of_o his_o own_o spleen_n against_o the_o pope_n he_o add_v that_o there_o be_v not_o then_o want_v some_o that_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o pope_n leo._n what_o connexion_n have_v this_o with_o luther_n revolt_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n you_o can_v excuse_v it_o from_o a_o grand_a imposture_n to_o the_o second_o class_n may_v be_v reduce_v massonius_n polydore_n virgil_n and_o erasmus_n who_o speak_v not_o aggainst_a the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n but_o against_o the_o abuse_n of_o they_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n and_o particular_o in_o that_o very_a point_n they_o speak_v temeraious_o and_o overlash_v those_o their_o work_n you_o know_v be_v forbid_v by_o the_o church_n why_o do_v you_o allege_v they_o as_o of_o authority_n against_o we_o the_o three_o class_n be_v of_o approve_a catholic_a author_n of_o who_o you_o first_o produce_v fin_n produce_v pag._n 384._o fin_n roffensis_n say_v there_o be_v no_o use_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n christian_n but_o you_o change_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n pass_v from_o the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n of_o which_o roffensis_n speak_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n and_o infer_v that_o because_o roffensis_n find_v not_o the_o use_n or_o practice_v of_o they_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n he_o deni_v the_o doctrine_n and_o lawfulness_n of_o they_o which_o in_o that_o very_a article_n he_o effectual_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v give_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n 2._o he_o yield_v the_o reason_n why_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o necessity_n of_o use_v they_o in_o those_o begining_n as_o afterward_o 3._o he_o show_v that_o catholic_a divines_n prove_v the_o use_n of_o they_o to_o be_v most_o ancient_a out_o of_o the_o station_n so_o much_o frequent_v in_o rome_n and_o that_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a grant_v some_o in_o his_o time_n 4._o his_o own_o opinion_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v when_o they_o begin_v first_o to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o it_o must_v follow_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o s._n augustine_n 24._o augustine_n l_o 4._o de_fw-fr baptism_n c._n 24._o that_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o be_v from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n the_o second_o author_n you_o produce_v 135._o produce_v pag._n 135._o be_v alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n who_o say_v neque_fw-la tamen_fw-la hac_fw-la occasione_n sunt_fw-la contemnendae_fw-la indulgentiae_fw-la quod_fw-la earum_fw-la usus_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la videatur_fw-la sero_fw-la receptus_fw-la which_o word_n you_o pervert_v change_n videatur_fw-la into_o fit_a but_o most_o of_o all_o by_o translate_n they_o false_o for_o you_o render_v they_o thus_o indulgence_n be_v not_o